mirror of https://github.com/dirtbags/moth.git
13311 lines
661 KiB
Plaintext
13311 lines
661 KiB
Plaintext
|
The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Connecticut Yankee in King Arthur's
|
||
|
Court, Complete, by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
|
||
|
|
||
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
||
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
||
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
||
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Title: A Connecticut Yankee in King Arthur's Court, Complete
|
||
|
|
||
|
Author: Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
|
||
|
|
||
|
Release Date: July 20, 2006 [EBook #86]
|
||
|
Last Updated: May 19, 2010
|
||
|
|
||
|
Language: English
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONNECTICUT YANKEE ***
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Produced by David Widger and Janet Blenkinship
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
A CONNECTICUT YANKEE IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT
|
||
|
|
||
|
by
|
||
|
|
||
|
MARK TWAIN
|
||
|
(Samuel L. Clemens)
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
PREFACE
|
||
|
|
||
|
The ungentle laws and customs touched upon in this tale are
|
||
|
historical, and the episodes which are used to illustrate them
|
||
|
are also historical. It is not pretended that these laws and
|
||
|
customs existed in England in the sixth century; no, it is only
|
||
|
pretended that inasmuch as they existed in the English and other
|
||
|
civilizations of far later times, it is safe to consider that it is
|
||
|
no libel upon the sixth century to suppose them to have been in
|
||
|
practice in that day also. One is quite justified in inferring
|
||
|
that whatever one of these laws or customs was lacking in that
|
||
|
remote time, its place was competently filled by a worse one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The question as to whether there is such a thing as divine right
|
||
|
of kings is not settled in this book. It was found too difficult.
|
||
|
That the executive head of a nation should be a person of lofty
|
||
|
character and extraordinary ability, was manifest and indisputable;
|
||
|
that none but the Deity could select that head unerringly, was
|
||
|
also manifest and indisputable; that the Deity ought to make that
|
||
|
selection, then, was likewise manifest and indisputable; consequently,
|
||
|
that He does make it, as claimed, was an unavoidable deduction.
|
||
|
I mean, until the author of this book encountered the Pompadour,
|
||
|
and Lady Castlemaine, and some other executive heads of that kind;
|
||
|
these were found so difficult to work into the scheme, that it
|
||
|
was judged better to take the other tack in this book (which
|
||
|
must be issued this fall), and then go into training and settle
|
||
|
the question in another book. It is, of course, a thing which
|
||
|
ought to be settled, and I am not going to have anything particular
|
||
|
to do next winter anyway.
|
||
|
|
||
|
MARK TWAIN
|
||
|
|
||
|
HARTFORD, July 21, 1889
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
A CONNECTICUT YANKEE IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
A WORD OF EXPLANATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was in Warwick Castle that I came across the curious stranger
|
||
|
whom I am going to talk about. He attracted me by three things:
|
||
|
his candid simplicity, his marvelous familiarity with ancient armor,
|
||
|
and the restfulness of his company--for he did all the talking.
|
||
|
We fell together, as modest people will, in the tail of the herd
|
||
|
that was being shown through, and he at once began to say things
|
||
|
which interested me. As he talked along, softly, pleasantly,
|
||
|
flowingly, he seemed to drift away imperceptibly out of this world
|
||
|
and time, and into some remote era and old forgotten country;
|
||
|
and so he gradually wove such a spell about me that I seemed
|
||
|
to move among the specters and shadows and dust and mold of a gray
|
||
|
antiquity, holding speech with a relic of it! Exactly as I would
|
||
|
speak of my nearest personal friends or enemies, or my most familiar
|
||
|
neighbors, he spoke of Sir Bedivere, Sir Bors de Ganis, Sir Launcelot
|
||
|
of the Lake, Sir Galahad, and all the other great names of the
|
||
|
Table Round--and how old, old, unspeakably old and faded and dry
|
||
|
and musty and ancient he came to look as he went on! Presently
|
||
|
he turned to me and said, just as one might speak of the weather,
|
||
|
or any other common matter--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know about transmigration of souls; do you know about
|
||
|
transposition of epochs--and bodies?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said I had not heard of it. He was so little interested--just
|
||
|
as when people speak of the weather--that he did not notice
|
||
|
whether I made him any answer or not. There was half a moment
|
||
|
of silence, immediately interrupted by the droning voice of the
|
||
|
salaried cicerone:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ancient hauberk, date of the sixth century, time of King Arthur
|
||
|
and the Round Table; said to have belonged to the knight Sir Sagramor
|
||
|
le Desirous; observe the round hole through the chain-mail in
|
||
|
the left breast; can't be accounted for; supposed to have been
|
||
|
done with a bullet since invention of firearms--perhaps maliciously
|
||
|
by Cromwell's soldiers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
My acquaintance smiled--not a modern smile, but one that must
|
||
|
have gone out of general use many, many centuries ago--and muttered
|
||
|
apparently to himself:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wit ye well, _I saw it done_." Then, after a pause, added:
|
||
|
"I did it myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
By the time I had recovered from the electric surprise of this
|
||
|
remark, he was gone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All that evening I sat by my fire at the Warwick Arms, steeped
|
||
|
in a dream of the olden time, while the rain beat upon the windows,
|
||
|
and the wind roared about the eaves and corners. From time to
|
||
|
time I dipped into old Sir Thomas Malory's enchanting book, and
|
||
|
fed at its rich feast of prodigies and adventures, breathed in
|
||
|
the fragrance of its obsolete names, and dreamed again. Midnight
|
||
|
being come at length, I read another tale, for a nightcap--this
|
||
|
which here follows, to wit:
|
||
|
|
||
|
HOW SIR LAUNCELOT SLEW TWO GIANTS, AND MADE A CASTLE FREE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Anon withal came there upon him two great giants,
|
||
|
well armed, all save the heads, with two horrible
|
||
|
clubs in their hands. Sir Launcelot put his shield
|
||
|
afore him, and put the stroke away of the one
|
||
|
giant, and with his sword he clave his head asunder.
|
||
|
When his fellow saw that, he ran away as he were
|
||
|
wood [*demented], for fear of the horrible strokes,
|
||
|
and Sir Launcelot after him with all his might,
|
||
|
and smote him on the shoulder, and clave him to
|
||
|
the middle. Then Sir Launcelot went into the hall,
|
||
|
and there came afore him three score ladies and
|
||
|
damsels, and all kneeled unto him, and thanked
|
||
|
God and him of their deliverance. For, sir, said
|
||
|
they, the most part of us have been here this
|
||
|
seven year their prisoners, and we have worked all
|
||
|
manner of silk works for our meat, and we are all
|
||
|
great gentle-women born, and blessed be the time,
|
||
|
knight, that ever thou wert born; for thou hast
|
||
|
done the most worship that ever did knight in the
|
||
|
world, that will we bear record, and we all pray
|
||
|
you to tell us your name, that we may tell our
|
||
|
friends who delivered us out of prison. Fair
|
||
|
damsels, he said, my name is Sir Launcelot du
|
||
|
Lake. And so he departed from them and betaught
|
||
|
them unto God. And then he mounted upon his
|
||
|
horse, and rode into many strange and wild
|
||
|
countries, and through many waters and valleys,
|
||
|
and evil was he lodged. And at the last by
|
||
|
fortune him happened against a night to come to
|
||
|
a fair courtilage, and therein he found an old
|
||
|
gentle-woman that lodged him with a good-will,
|
||
|
and there he had good cheer for him and his horse.
|
||
|
And when time was, his host brought him into a
|
||
|
fair garret over the gate to his bed. There
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot unarmed him, and set his harness
|
||
|
by him, and went to bed, and anon he fell on
|
||
|
sleep. So, soon after there came one on
|
||
|
horseback, and knocked at the gate in great
|
||
|
haste. And when Sir Launcelot heard this he rose
|
||
|
up, and looked out at the window, and saw by the
|
||
|
moonlight three knights come riding after that
|
||
|
one man, and all three lashed on him at once
|
||
|
with swords, and that one knight turned on them
|
||
|
knightly again and defended him. Truly, said
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot, yonder one knight shall I help,
|
||
|
for it were shame for me to see three knights
|
||
|
on one, and if he be slain I am partner of his
|
||
|
death. And therewith he took his harness and
|
||
|
went out at a window by a sheet down to the four
|
||
|
knights, and then Sir Launcelot said on high,
|
||
|
Turn you knights unto me, and leave your
|
||
|
fighting with that knight. And then they all
|
||
|
three left Sir Kay, and turned unto Sir Launcelot,
|
||
|
and there began great battle, for they alight
|
||
|
all three, and strake many strokes at Sir
|
||
|
Launcelot, and assailed him on every side. Then
|
||
|
Sir Kay dressed him for to have holpen Sir
|
||
|
Launcelot. Nay, sir, said he, I will none of
|
||
|
your help, therefore as ye will have my help
|
||
|
let me alone with them. Sir Kay for the pleasure
|
||
|
of the knight suffered him for to do his will,
|
||
|
and so stood aside. And then anon within six
|
||
|
strokes Sir Launcelot had stricken them to the earth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then they all three cried, Sir Knight, we
|
||
|
yield us unto you as man of might matchless. As
|
||
|
to that, said Sir Launcelot, I will not take
|
||
|
your yielding unto me, but so that ye yield
|
||
|
you unto Sir Kay the seneschal, on that covenant
|
||
|
I will save your lives and else not. Fair knight,
|
||
|
said they, that were we loath to do; for as for
|
||
|
Sir Kay we chased him hither, and had overcome
|
||
|
him had ye not been; therefore, to yield us unto
|
||
|
him it were no reason. Well, as to that, said
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot, advise you well, for ye may
|
||
|
choose whether ye will die or live, for an ye be
|
||
|
yielden, it shall be unto Sir Kay. Fair knight,
|
||
|
then they said, in saving our lives we will do
|
||
|
as thou commandest us. Then shall ye, said Sir
|
||
|
Launcelot, on Whitsunday next coming go unto the
|
||
|
court of King Arthur, and there shall ye yield
|
||
|
you unto Queen Guenever, and put you all three
|
||
|
in her grace and mercy, and say that Sir Kay
|
||
|
sent you thither to be her prisoners. On the morn
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot arose early, and left Sir Kay
|
||
|
sleeping; and Sir Launcelot took Sir Kay's armor
|
||
|
and his shield and armed him, and so he went to
|
||
|
the stable and took his horse, and took his leave
|
||
|
of his host, and so he departed. Then soon after
|
||
|
arose Sir Kay and missed Sir Launcelot; and
|
||
|
then he espied that he had his armor and his
|
||
|
horse. Now by my faith I know well that he will
|
||
|
grieve some of the court of King Arthur; for on
|
||
|
him knights will be bold, and deem that it is I,
|
||
|
and that will beguile them; and because of his
|
||
|
armor and shield I am sure I shall ride in peace.
|
||
|
And then soon after departed Sir Kay, and
|
||
|
thanked his host.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I laid the book down there was a knock at the door, and my
|
||
|
stranger came in. I gave him a pipe and a chair, and made him
|
||
|
welcome. I also comforted him with a hot Scotch whisky; gave him
|
||
|
another one; then still another--hoping always for his story.
|
||
|
After a fourth persuader, he drifted into it himself, in a quite
|
||
|
simple and natural way:
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE STRANGER'S HISTORY
|
||
|
|
||
|
I am an American. I was born and reared in Hartford, in the State
|
||
|
of Connecticut--anyway, just over the river, in the country. So
|
||
|
I am a Yankee of the Yankees--and practical; yes, and nearly
|
||
|
barren of sentiment, I suppose--or poetry, in other words. My
|
||
|
father was a blacksmith, my uncle was a horse doctor, and I was
|
||
|
both, along at first. Then I went over to the great arms factory
|
||
|
and learned my real trade; learned all there was to it; learned
|
||
|
to make everything: guns, revolvers, cannon, boilers, engines, all
|
||
|
sorts of labor-saving machinery. Why, I could make anything
|
||
|
a body wanted--anything in the world, it didn't make any difference
|
||
|
what; and if there wasn't any quick new-fangled way to make a thing,
|
||
|
I could invent one--and do it as easy as rolling off a log. I became
|
||
|
head superintendent; had a couple of thousand men under me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, a man like that is a man that is full of fight--that goes
|
||
|
without saying. With a couple of thousand rough men under one,
|
||
|
one has plenty of that sort of amusement. I had, anyway. At last
|
||
|
I met my match, and I got my dose. It was during a misunderstanding
|
||
|
conducted with crowbars with a fellow we used to call Hercules.
|
||
|
He laid me out with a crusher alongside the head that made everything
|
||
|
crack, and seemed to spring every joint in my skull and made it
|
||
|
overlap its neighbor. Then the world went out in darkness, and
|
||
|
I didn't feel anything more, and didn't know anything at all
|
||
|
--at least for a while.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I came to again, I was sitting under an oak tree, on the
|
||
|
grass, with a whole beautiful and broad country landscape all
|
||
|
to myself--nearly. Not entirely; for there was a fellow on a horse,
|
||
|
looking down at me--a fellow fresh out of a picture-book. He was
|
||
|
in old-time iron armor from head to heel, with a helmet on his
|
||
|
head the shape of a nail-keg with slits in it; and he had a shield,
|
||
|
and a sword, and a prodigious spear; and his horse had armor on,
|
||
|
too, and a steel horn projecting from his forehead, and gorgeous
|
||
|
red and green silk trappings that hung down all around him like
|
||
|
a bedquilt, nearly to the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fair sir, will ye just?" said this fellow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will I which?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will ye try a passage of arms for land or lady or for--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What are you giving me?" I said. "Get along back to your circus,
|
||
|
or I'll report you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now what does this man do but fall back a couple of hundred yards
|
||
|
and then come rushing at me as hard as he could tear, with his
|
||
|
nail-keg bent down nearly to his horse's neck and his long spear
|
||
|
pointed straight ahead. I saw he meant business, so I was up
|
||
|
the tree when he arrived.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He allowed that I was his property, the captive of his spear.
|
||
|
There was argument on his side--and the bulk of the advantage
|
||
|
--so I judged it best to humor him. We fixed up an agreement
|
||
|
whereby I was to go with him and he was not to hurt me. I came
|
||
|
down, and we started away, I walking by the side of his horse.
|
||
|
We marched comfortably along, through glades and over brooks which
|
||
|
I could not remember to have seen before--which puzzled me and
|
||
|
made me wonder--and yet we did not come to any circus or sign of
|
||
|
a circus. So I gave up the idea of a circus, and concluded he was
|
||
|
from an asylum. But we never came to an asylum--so I was up
|
||
|
a stump, as you may say. I asked him how far we were from Hartford.
|
||
|
He said he had never heard of the place; which I took to be a lie,
|
||
|
but allowed it to go at that. At the end of an hour we saw a
|
||
|
far-away town sleeping in a valley by a winding river; and beyond
|
||
|
it on a hill, a vast gray fortress, with towers and turrets,
|
||
|
the first I had ever seen out of a picture.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Bridgeport?" said I, pointing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Camelot," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
My stranger had been showing signs of sleepiness. He caught
|
||
|
himself nodding, now, and smiled one of those pathetic, obsolete
|
||
|
smiles of his, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I find I can't go on; but come with me, I've got it all written
|
||
|
out, and you can read it if you like."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In his chamber, he said: "First, I kept a journal; then by and by,
|
||
|
after years, I took the journal and turned it into a book. How
|
||
|
long ago that was!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He handed me his manuscript, and pointed out the place where
|
||
|
I should begin:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Begin here--I've already told you what goes before." He was
|
||
|
steeped in drowsiness by this time. As I went out at his door
|
||
|
I heard him murmur sleepily: "Give you good den, fair sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sat down by my fire and examined my treasure. The first part
|
||
|
of it--the great bulk of it--was parchment, and yellow with age.
|
||
|
I scanned a leaf particularly and saw that it was a palimpsest.
|
||
|
Under the old dim writing of the Yankee historian appeared traces
|
||
|
of a penmanship which was older and dimmer still--Latin words
|
||
|
and sentences: fragments from old monkish legends, evidently.
|
||
|
I turned to the place indicated by my stranger and began to read
|
||
|
--as follows:
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE TALE OF THE LOST LAND
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER I
|
||
|
|
||
|
CAMELOT
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Camelot--Camelot," said I to myself. "I don't seem to remember
|
||
|
hearing of it before. Name of the asylum, likely."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a soft, reposeful summer landscape, as lovely as a dream,
|
||
|
and as lonesome as Sunday. The air was full of the smell of
|
||
|
flowers, and the buzzing of insects, and the twittering of birds,
|
||
|
and there were no people, no wagons, there was no stir of life,
|
||
|
nothing going on. The road was mainly a winding path with hoof-prints
|
||
|
in it, and now and then a faint trace of wheels on either side in
|
||
|
the grass--wheels that apparently had a tire as broad as one's hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently a fair slip of a girl, about ten years old, with a cataract
|
||
|
of golden hair streaming down over her shoulders, came along.
|
||
|
Around her head she wore a hoop of flame-red poppies. It was as
|
||
|
sweet an outfit as ever I saw, what there was of it. She walked
|
||
|
indolently along, with a mind at rest, its peace reflected in her
|
||
|
innocent face. The circus man paid no attention to her; didn't
|
||
|
even seem to see her. And she--she was no more startled at his
|
||
|
fantastic make-up than if she was used to his like every day of
|
||
|
her life. She was going by as indifferently as she might have gone
|
||
|
by a couple of cows; but when she happened to notice me, _then_
|
||
|
there was a change! Up went her hands, and she was turned to stone;
|
||
|
her mouth dropped open, her eyes stared wide and timorously, she
|
||
|
was the picture of astonished curiosity touched with fear. And
|
||
|
there she stood gazing, in a sort of stupefied fascination, till
|
||
|
we turned a corner of the wood and were lost to her view. That
|
||
|
she should be startled at me instead of at the other man, was too
|
||
|
many for me; I couldn't make head or tail of it. And that she
|
||
|
should seem to consider me a spectacle, and totally overlook her
|
||
|
own merits in that respect, was another puzzling thing, and a
|
||
|
display of magnanimity, too, that was surprising in one so young.
|
||
|
There was food for thought here. I moved along as one in a dream.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we approached the town, signs of life began to appear. At
|
||
|
intervals we passed a wretched cabin, with a thatched roof, and
|
||
|
about it small fields and garden patches in an indifferent state of
|
||
|
cultivation. There were people, too; brawny men, with long, coarse,
|
||
|
uncombed hair that hung down over their faces and made them look
|
||
|
like animals. They and the women, as a rule, wore a coarse
|
||
|
tow-linen robe that came well below the knee, and a rude sort of
|
||
|
sandal, and many wore an iron collar. The small boys and girls
|
||
|
were always naked; but nobody seemed to know it. All of these
|
||
|
people stared at me, talked about me, ran into the huts and fetched
|
||
|
out their families to gape at me; but nobody ever noticed that
|
||
|
other fellow, except to make him humble salutation and get no
|
||
|
response for their pains.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the town were some substantial windowless houses of stone
|
||
|
scattered among a wilderness of thatched cabins; the streets were
|
||
|
mere crooked alleys, and unpaved; troops of dogs and nude children
|
||
|
played in the sun and made life and noise; hogs roamed and rooted
|
||
|
contentedly about, and one of them lay in a reeking wallow in
|
||
|
the middle of the main thoroughfare and suckled her family.
|
||
|
Presently there was a distant blare of military music; it came
|
||
|
nearer, still nearer, and soon a noble cavalcade wound into view,
|
||
|
glorious with plumed helmets and flashing mail and flaunting banners
|
||
|
and rich doublets and horse-cloths and gilded spearheads; and
|
||
|
through the muck and swine, and naked brats, and joyous dogs, and
|
||
|
shabby huts, it took its gallant way, and in its wake we followed.
|
||
|
Followed through one winding alley and then another,--and climbing,
|
||
|
always climbing--till at last we gained the breezy height where
|
||
|
the huge castle stood. There was an exchange of bugle blasts;
|
||
|
then a parley from the walls, where men-at-arms, in hauberk and
|
||
|
morion, marched back and forth with halberd at shoulder under
|
||
|
flapping banners with the rude figure of a dragon displayed upon
|
||
|
them; and then the great gates were flung open, the drawbridge
|
||
|
was lowered, and the head of the cavalcade swept forward under
|
||
|
the frowning arches; and we, following, soon found ourselves in
|
||
|
a great paved court, with towers and turrets stretching up into
|
||
|
the blue air on all the four sides; and all about us the dismount
|
||
|
was going on, and much greeting and ceremony, and running to and
|
||
|
fro, and a gay display of moving and intermingling colors, and
|
||
|
an altogether pleasant stir and noise and confusion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER II
|
||
|
|
||
|
KING ARTHUR'S COURT
|
||
|
|
||
|
The moment I got a chance I slipped aside privately and touched
|
||
|
an ancient common looking man on the shoulder and said, in an
|
||
|
insinuating, confidential way:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Friend, do me a kindness. Do you belong to the asylum, or are
|
||
|
you just on a visit or something like that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked me over stupidly, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, fair sir, me seemeth--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That will do," I said; "I reckon you are a patient."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I moved away, cogitating, and at the same time keeping an eye
|
||
|
out for any chance passenger in his right mind that might come
|
||
|
along and give me some light. I judged I had found one, presently;
|
||
|
so I drew him aside and said in his ear:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I could see the head keeper a minute--only just a minute--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Prithee do not let me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let you _what_?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Hinder_ me, then, if the word please thee better. Then he went
|
||
|
on to say he was an under-cook and could not stop to gossip,
|
||
|
though he would like it another time; for it would comfort his
|
||
|
very liver to know where I got my clothes. As he started away he
|
||
|
pointed and said yonder was one who was idle enough for my purpose,
|
||
|
and was seeking me besides, no doubt. This was an airy slim boy
|
||
|
in shrimp-colored tights that made him look like a forked carrot,
|
||
|
the rest of his gear was blue silk and dainty laces and ruffles;
|
||
|
and he had long yellow curls, and wore a plumed pink satin cap
|
||
|
tilted complacently over his ear. By his look, he was good-natured;
|
||
|
by his gait, he was satisfied with himself. He was pretty enough
|
||
|
to frame. He arrived, looked me over with a smiling and impudent
|
||
|
curiosity; said he had come for me, and informed me that he was a page.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go 'long," I said; "you ain't more than a paragraph."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was pretty severe, but I was nettled. However, it never phazed
|
||
|
him; he didn't appear to know he was hurt. He began to talk and
|
||
|
laugh, in happy, thoughtless, boyish fashion, as we walked along,
|
||
|
and made himself old friends with me at once; asked me all sorts
|
||
|
of questions about myself and about my clothes, but never waited
|
||
|
for an answer--always chattered straight ahead, as if he didn't
|
||
|
know he had asked a question and wasn't expecting any reply, until
|
||
|
at last he happened to mention that he was born in the beginning
|
||
|
of the year 513.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It made the cold chills creep over me! I stopped and said,
|
||
|
a little faintly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Maybe I didn't hear you just right. Say it again--and say it
|
||
|
slow. What year was it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"513."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"513! You don't look it! Come, my boy, I am a stranger and
|
||
|
friendless; be honest and honorable with me. Are you in your
|
||
|
right mind?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said he was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are these other people in their right minds?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said they were.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And this isn't an asylum? I mean, it isn't a place where they
|
||
|
cure crazy people?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said it wasn't.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then," I said, "either I am a lunatic, or something just
|
||
|
as awful has happened. Now tell me, honest and true, where am I?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I waited a minute, to let that idea shudder its way home,
|
||
|
and then said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And according to your notions, what year is it now?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"528--nineteenth of June."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I felt a mournful sinking at the heart, and muttered: "I shall
|
||
|
never see my friends again--never, never again. They will not
|
||
|
be born for more than thirteen hundred years yet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I seemed to believe the boy, I didn't know why. _Something_ in me
|
||
|
seemed to believe him--my consciousness, as you may say; but my
|
||
|
reason didn't. My reason straightway began to clamor; that was
|
||
|
natural. I didn't know how to go about satisfying it, because
|
||
|
I knew that the testimony of men wouldn't serve--my reason would
|
||
|
say they were lunatics, and throw out their evidence. But all
|
||
|
of a sudden I stumbled on the very thing, just by luck. I knew
|
||
|
that the only total eclipse of the sun in the first half of the
|
||
|
sixth century occurred on the 21st of June, A.D. 528, O.S., and
|
||
|
began at 3 minutes after 12 noon. I also knew that no total eclipse
|
||
|
of the sun was due in what to _me_ was the present year--i.e., 1879.
|
||
|
So, if I could keep my anxiety and curiosity from eating the heart
|
||
|
out of me for forty-eight hours, I should then find out for certain
|
||
|
whether this boy was telling me the truth or not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Wherefore, being a practical Connecticut man, I now shoved this
|
||
|
whole problem clear out of my mind till its appointed day and hour
|
||
|
should come, in order that I might turn all my attention to the
|
||
|
circumstances of the present moment, and be alert and ready to
|
||
|
make the most out of them that could be made. One thing at a time,
|
||
|
is my motto--and just play that thing for all it is worth, even
|
||
|
if it's only two pair and a jack. I made up my mind to two things:
|
||
|
if it was still the nineteenth century and I was among lunatics
|
||
|
and couldn't get away, I would presently boss that asylum or know
|
||
|
the reason why; and if, on the other hand, it was really the sixth
|
||
|
century, all right, I didn't want any softer thing: I would boss
|
||
|
the whole country inside of three months; for I judged I would
|
||
|
have the start of the best-educated man in the kingdom by a matter
|
||
|
of thirteen hundred years and upward. I'm not a man to waste
|
||
|
time after my mind's made up and there's work on hand; so I said
|
||
|
to the page:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, Clarence, my boy--if that might happen to be your name
|
||
|
--I'll get you to post me up a little if you don't mind. What is
|
||
|
the name of that apparition that brought me here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My master and thine? That is the good knight and great lord
|
||
|
Sir Kay the Seneschal, foster brother to our liege the king."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very good; go on, tell me everything."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He made a long story of it; but the part that had immediate interest
|
||
|
for me was this: He said I was Sir Kay's prisoner, and that
|
||
|
in the due course of custom I would be flung into a dungeon and
|
||
|
left there on scant commons until my friends ransomed me--unless
|
||
|
I chanced to rot, first. I saw that the last chance had the best
|
||
|
show, but I didn't waste any bother about that; time was too
|
||
|
precious. The page said, further, that dinner was about ended
|
||
|
in the great hall by this time, and that as soon as the sociability
|
||
|
and the heavy drinking should begin, Sir Kay would have me in and
|
||
|
exhibit me before King Arthur and his illustrious knights seated at
|
||
|
the Table Round, and would brag about his exploit in capturing
|
||
|
me, and would probably exaggerate the facts a little, but it
|
||
|
wouldn't be good form for me to correct him, and not over safe,
|
||
|
either; and when I was done being exhibited, then ho for the
|
||
|
dungeon; but he, Clarence, would find a way to come and see me every
|
||
|
now and then, and cheer me up, and help me get word to my friends.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Get word to my friends! I thanked him; I couldn't do less; and
|
||
|
about this time a lackey came to say I was wanted; so Clarence
|
||
|
led me in and took me off to one side and sat down by me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, it was a curious kind of spectacle, and interesting. It was
|
||
|
an immense place, and rather naked--yes, and full of loud contrasts.
|
||
|
It was very, very lofty; so lofty that the banners depending from
|
||
|
the arched beams and girders away up there floated in a sort of
|
||
|
twilight; there was a stone-railed gallery at each end, high up,
|
||
|
with musicians in the one, and women, clothed in stunning colors,
|
||
|
in the other. The floor was of big stone flags laid in black and
|
||
|
white squares, rather battered by age and use, and needing repair.
|
||
|
As to ornament, there wasn't any, strictly speaking; though on
|
||
|
the walls hung some huge tapestries which were probably taxed
|
||
|
as works of art; battle-pieces, they were, with horses shaped like
|
||
|
those which children cut out of paper or create in gingerbread;
|
||
|
with men on them in scale armor whose scales are represented by
|
||
|
round holes--so that the man's coat looks as if it had been done
|
||
|
with a biscuit-punch. There was a fireplace big enough to camp in;
|
||
|
and its projecting sides and hood, of carved and pillared stonework,
|
||
|
had the look of a cathedral door. Along the walls stood men-at-arms,
|
||
|
in breastplate and morion, with halberds for their only weapon
|
||
|
--rigid as statues; and that is what they looked like.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the middle of this groined and vaulted public square was an oaken
|
||
|
table which they called the Table Round. It was as large as
|
||
|
a circus ring; and around it sat a great company of men dressed
|
||
|
in such various and splendid colors that it hurt one's eyes to look
|
||
|
at them. They wore their plumed hats, right along, except that
|
||
|
whenever one addressed himself directly to the king, he lifted
|
||
|
his hat a trifle just as he was beginning his remark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mainly they were drinking--from entire ox horns; but a few were
|
||
|
still munching bread or gnawing beef bones. There was about
|
||
|
an average of two dogs to one man; and these sat in expectant
|
||
|
attitudes till a spent bone was flung to them, and then they went
|
||
|
for it by brigades and divisions, with a rush, and there ensued
|
||
|
a fight which filled the prospect with a tumultuous chaos of
|
||
|
plunging heads and bodies and flashing tails, and the storm of
|
||
|
howlings and barkings deafened all speech for the time; but that
|
||
|
was no matter, for the dog-fight was always a bigger interest
|
||
|
anyway; the men rose, sometimes, to observe it the better and bet
|
||
|
on it, and the ladies and the musicians stretched themselves out
|
||
|
over their balusters with the same object; and all broke into
|
||
|
delighted ejaculations from time to time. In the end, the winning
|
||
|
dog stretched himself out comfortably with his bone between his
|
||
|
paws, and proceeded to growl over it, and gnaw it, and grease
|
||
|
the floor with it, just as fifty others were already doing; and the
|
||
|
rest of the court resumed their previous industries and entertainments.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As a rule, the speech and behavior of these people were gracious
|
||
|
and courtly; and I noticed that they were good and serious listeners
|
||
|
when anybody was telling anything--I mean in a dog-fightless
|
||
|
interval. And plainly, too, they were a childlike and innocent lot;
|
||
|
telling lies of the stateliest pattern with a most gentle and
|
||
|
winning naivety, and ready and willing to listen to anybody else's
|
||
|
lie, and believe it, too. It was hard to associate them with
|
||
|
anything cruel or dreadful; and yet they dealt in tales of blood
|
||
|
and suffering with a guileless relish that made me almost forget
|
||
|
to shudder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was not the only prisoner present. There were twenty or more.
|
||
|
Poor devils, many of them were maimed, hacked, carved, in a frightful
|
||
|
way; and their hair, their faces, their clothing, were caked with
|
||
|
black and stiffened drenchings of blood. They were suffering
|
||
|
sharp physical pain, of course; and weariness, and hunger and
|
||
|
thirst, no doubt; and at least none had given them the comfort
|
||
|
of a wash, or even the poor charity of a lotion for their wounds;
|
||
|
yet you never heard them utter a moan or a groan, or saw them show
|
||
|
any sign of restlessness, or any disposition to complain. The
|
||
|
thought was forced upon me: "The rascals--_they_ have served other
|
||
|
people so in their day; it being their own turn, now, they were
|
||
|
not expecting any better treatment than this; so their philosophical
|
||
|
bearing is not an outcome of mental training, intellectual fortitude,
|
||
|
reasoning; it is mere animal training; they are white Indians."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER III
|
||
|
|
||
|
KNIGHTS OF THE TABLE ROUND
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mainly the Round Table talk was monologues--narrative accounts
|
||
|
of the adventures in which these prisoners were captured and their
|
||
|
friends and backers killed and stripped of their steeds and armor.
|
||
|
As a general thing--as far as I could make out--these murderous
|
||
|
adventures were not forays undertaken to avenge injuries, nor to
|
||
|
settle old disputes or sudden fallings out; no, as a rule they were
|
||
|
simply duels between strangers--duels between people who had never
|
||
|
even been introduced to each other, and between whom existed no
|
||
|
cause of offense whatever. Many a time I had seen a couple of boys,
|
||
|
strangers, meet by chance, and say simultaneously, "I can lick you,"
|
||
|
and go at it on the spot; but I had always imagined until now that
|
||
|
that sort of thing belonged to children only, and was a sign and
|
||
|
mark of childhood; but here were these big boobies sticking to it
|
||
|
and taking pride in it clear up into full age and beyond. Yet there
|
||
|
was something very engaging about these great simple-hearted
|
||
|
creatures, something attractive and lovable. There did not seem
|
||
|
to be brains enough in the entire nursery, so to speak, to bait
|
||
|
a fish-hook with; but you didn't seem to mind that, after a little,
|
||
|
because you soon saw that brains were not needed in a society
|
||
|
like that, and indeed would have marred it, hindered it, spoiled
|
||
|
its symmetry--perhaps rendered its existence impossible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a fine manliness observable in almost every face; and
|
||
|
in some a certain loftiness and sweetness that rebuked your
|
||
|
belittling criticisms and stilled them. A most noble benignity
|
||
|
and purity reposed in the countenance of him they called Sir Galahad,
|
||
|
and likewise in the king's also; and there was majesty and greatness
|
||
|
in the giant frame and high bearing of Sir Launcelot of the Lake.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was presently an incident which centered the general interest
|
||
|
upon this Sir Launcelot. At a sign from a sort of master of
|
||
|
ceremonies, six or eight of the prisoners rose and came forward
|
||
|
in a body and knelt on the floor and lifted up their hands toward
|
||
|
the ladies' gallery and begged the grace of a word with the queen.
|
||
|
The most conspicuously situated lady in that massed flower-bed
|
||
|
of feminine show and finery inclined her head by way of assent,
|
||
|
and then the spokesman of the prisoners delivered himself and his
|
||
|
fellows into her hands for free pardon, ransom, captivity, or death,
|
||
|
as she in her good pleasure might elect; and this, as he said, he
|
||
|
was doing by command of Sir Kay the Seneschal, whose prisoners
|
||
|
they were, he having vanquished them by his single might and
|
||
|
prowess in sturdy conflict in the field.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Surprise and astonishment flashed from face to face all over
|
||
|
the house; the queen's gratified smile faded out at the name of
|
||
|
Sir Kay, and she looked disappointed; and the page whispered in
|
||
|
my ear with an accent and manner expressive of extravagant derision--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir _Kay_, forsooth! Oh, call me pet names, dearest, call me
|
||
|
a marine! In twice a thousand years shall the unholy invention
|
||
|
of man labor at odds to beget the fellow to this majestic lie!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Every eye was fastened with severe inquiry upon Sir Kay. But he
|
||
|
was equal to the occasion. He got up and played his hand like
|
||
|
a major--and took every trick. He said he would state the case
|
||
|
exactly according to the facts; he would tell the simple
|
||
|
straightforward tale, without comment of his own; "and then,"
|
||
|
said he, "if ye find glory and honor due, ye will give it unto him
|
||
|
who is the mightiest man of his hands that ever bare shield or
|
||
|
strake with sword in the ranks of Christian battle--even him that
|
||
|
sitteth there!" and he pointed to Sir Launcelot. Ah, he fetched
|
||
|
them; it was a rattling good stroke. Then he went on and told
|
||
|
how Sir Launcelot, seeking adventures, some brief time gone by,
|
||
|
killed seven giants at one sweep of his sword, and set a hundred
|
||
|
and forty-two captive maidens free; and then went further, still
|
||
|
seeking adventures, and found him (Sir Kay) fighting a desperate
|
||
|
fight against nine foreign knights, and straightway took the battle
|
||
|
solely into his own hands, and conquered the nine; and that night
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot rose quietly, and dressed him in Sir Kay's armor and
|
||
|
took Sir Kay's horse and gat him away into distant lands, and
|
||
|
vanquished sixteen knights in one pitched battle and thirty-four
|
||
|
in another; and all these and the former nine he made to swear
|
||
|
that about Whitsuntide they would ride to Arthur's court and yield
|
||
|
them to Queen Guenever's hands as captives of Sir Kay the Seneschal,
|
||
|
spoil of his knightly prowess; and now here were these half dozen,
|
||
|
and the rest would be along as soon as they might be healed of
|
||
|
their desperate wounds.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, it was touching to see the queen blush and smile, and look
|
||
|
embarrassed and happy, and fling furtive glances at Sir Launcelot
|
||
|
that would have got him shot in Arkansas, to a dead certainty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Everybody praised the valor and magnanimity of Sir Launcelot; and
|
||
|
as for me, I was perfectly amazed, that one man, all by himself,
|
||
|
should have been able to beat down and capture such battalions
|
||
|
of practiced fighters. I said as much to Clarence; but this mocking
|
||
|
featherhead only said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An Sir Kay had had time to get another skin of sour wine into him,
|
||
|
ye had seen the accompt doubled."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I looked at the boy in sorrow; and as I looked I saw the cloud of
|
||
|
a deep despondency settle upon his countenance. I followed the
|
||
|
direction of his eye, and saw that a very old and white-bearded
|
||
|
man, clothed in a flowing black gown, had risen and was standing
|
||
|
at the table upon unsteady legs, and feebly swaying his ancient
|
||
|
head and surveying the company with his watery and wandering eye.
|
||
|
The same suffering look that was in the page's face was observable
|
||
|
in all the faces around--the look of dumb creatures who know that
|
||
|
they must endure and make no moan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, we shall have it again," sighed the boy; "that same old
|
||
|
weary tale that he hath told a thousand times in the same words,
|
||
|
and that he _will_ tell till he dieth, every time he hath gotten his
|
||
|
barrel full and feeleth his exaggeration-mill a-working. Would
|
||
|
God I had died or I saw this day!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who is it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Merlin, the mighty liar and magician, perdition singe him for
|
||
|
the weariness he worketh with his one tale! But that men fear
|
||
|
him for that he hath the storms and the lightnings and all the
|
||
|
devils that be in hell at his beck and call, they would have dug
|
||
|
his entrails out these many years ago to get at that tale and
|
||
|
squelch it. He telleth it always in the third person, making
|
||
|
believe he is too modest to glorify himself--maledictions light
|
||
|
upon him, misfortune be his dole! Good friend, prithee call me
|
||
|
for evensong."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The boy nestled himself upon my shoulder and pretended to go
|
||
|
to sleep. The old man began his tale; and presently the lad was
|
||
|
asleep in reality; so also were the dogs, and the court, the lackeys,
|
||
|
and the files of men-at-arms. The droning voice droned on; a soft
|
||
|
snoring arose on all sides and supported it like a deep and subdued
|
||
|
accompaniment of wind instruments. Some heads were bowed upon
|
||
|
folded arms, some lay back with open mouths that issued unconscious
|
||
|
music; the flies buzzed and bit, unmolested, the rats swarmed
|
||
|
softly out from a hundred holes, and pattered about, and made
|
||
|
themselves at home everywhere; and one of them sat up like a
|
||
|
squirrel on the king's head and held a bit of cheese in its hands
|
||
|
and nibbled it, and dribbled the crumbs in the king's face with
|
||
|
naive and impudent irreverence. It was a tranquil scene, and
|
||
|
restful to the weary eye and the jaded spirit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was the old man's tale. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Right so the king and Merlin departed, and went until an hermit
|
||
|
that was a good man and a great leech. So the hermit searched
|
||
|
all his wounds and gave him good salves; so the king was there
|
||
|
three days, and then were his wounds well amended that he might
|
||
|
ride and go, and so departed. And as they rode, Arthur said,
|
||
|
I have no sword. No force,* [*Footnote from M.T.: No matter.]
|
||
|
said Merlin, hereby is a sword that shall be yours and I may.
|
||
|
So they rode till they came to a lake, the which was a fair water
|
||
|
and broad, and in the midst of the lake Arthur was ware of an arm
|
||
|
clothed in white samite, that held a fair sword in that hand.
|
||
|
Lo, said Merlin, yonder is that sword that I spake of. With that
|
||
|
they saw a damsel going upon the lake. What damsel is that?
|
||
|
said Arthur. That is the Lady of the lake, said Merlin; and within
|
||
|
that lake is a rock, and therein is as fair a place as any on earth,
|
||
|
and richly beseen, and this damsel will come to you anon, and then
|
||
|
speak ye fair to her that she will give you that sword. Anon
|
||
|
withal came the damsel unto Arthur and saluted him, and he her
|
||
|
again. Damsel, said Arthur, what sword is that, that yonder
|
||
|
the arm holdeth above the water? I would it were mine, for I have
|
||
|
no sword. Sir Arthur King, said the damsel, that sword is mine,
|
||
|
and if ye will give me a gift when I ask it you, ye shall have it.
|
||
|
By my faith, said Arthur, I will give you what gift ye will ask.
|
||
|
Well, said the damsel, go ye into yonder barge and row yourself
|
||
|
to the sword, and take it and the scabbard with you, and I will ask
|
||
|
my gift when I see my time. So Sir Arthur and Merlin alight, and
|
||
|
tied their horses to two trees, and so they went into the ship,
|
||
|
and when they came to the sword that the hand held, Sir Arthur
|
||
|
took it up by the handles, and took it with him. And the arm
|
||
|
and the hand went under the water; and so they came unto the land
|
||
|
and rode forth. And then Sir Arthur saw a rich pavilion. What
|
||
|
signifieth yonder pavilion? It is the knight's pavilion, said
|
||
|
Merlin, that ye fought with last, Sir Pellinore, but he is out,
|
||
|
he is not there; he hath ado with a knight of yours, that hight
|
||
|
Egglame, and they have fought together, but at the last Egglame
|
||
|
fled, and else he had been dead, and he hath chased him even
|
||
|
to Carlion, and we shall meet with him anon in the highway. That
|
||
|
is well said, said Arthur, now have I a sword, now will I wage
|
||
|
battle with him, and be avenged on him. Sir, ye shall not so,
|
||
|
said Merlin, for the knight is weary of fighting and chasing, so
|
||
|
that ye shall have no worship to have ado with him; also, he will
|
||
|
not lightly be matched of one knight living; and therefore it is my
|
||
|
counsel, let him pass, for he shall do you good service in short
|
||
|
time, and his sons, after his days. Also ye shall see that day
|
||
|
in short space ye shall be right glad to give him your sister
|
||
|
to wed. When I see him, I will do as ye advise me, said Arthur.
|
||
|
Then Sir Arthur looked on the sword, and liked it passing well.
|
||
|
Whether liketh you better, said Merlin, the sword or the scabbard?
|
||
|
Me liketh better the sword, said Arthur. Ye are more unwise,
|
||
|
said Merlin, for the scabbard is worth ten of the sword, for while
|
||
|
ye have the scabbard upon you ye shall never lose no blood, be ye
|
||
|
never so sore wounded; therefore, keep well the scabbard always
|
||
|
with you. So they rode into Carlion, and by the way they met with
|
||
|
Sir Pellinore; but Merlin had done such a craft that Pellinore saw
|
||
|
not Arthur, and he passed by without any words. I marvel, said
|
||
|
Arthur, that the knight would not speak. Sir, said Merlin, he saw
|
||
|
you not; for and he had seen you ye had not lightly departed. So
|
||
|
they came unto Carlion, whereof his knights were passing glad.
|
||
|
And when they heard of his adventures they marveled that he would
|
||
|
jeopard his person so alone. But all men of worship said it was
|
||
|
merry to be under such a chieftain that would put his person in
|
||
|
adventure as other poor knights did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER IV
|
||
|
|
||
|
SIR DINADAN THE HUMORIST
|
||
|
|
||
|
It seemed to me that this quaint lie was most simply and beautifully
|
||
|
told; but then I had heard it only once, and that makes a difference;
|
||
|
it was pleasant to the others when it was fresh, no doubt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir Dinadan the Humorist was the first to awake, and he soon roused
|
||
|
the rest with a practical joke of a sufficiently poor quality.
|
||
|
He tied some metal mugs to a dog's tail and turned him loose,
|
||
|
and he tore around and around the place in a frenzy of fright,
|
||
|
with all the other dogs bellowing after him and battering and
|
||
|
crashing against everything that came in their way and making
|
||
|
altogether a chaos of confusion and a most deafening din and
|
||
|
turmoil; at which every man and woman of the multitude laughed
|
||
|
till the tears flowed, and some fell out of their chairs and
|
||
|
wallowed on the floor in ecstasy. It was just like so many children.
|
||
|
Sir Dinadan was so proud of his exploit that he could not keep
|
||
|
from telling over and over again, to weariness, how the immortal
|
||
|
idea happened to occur to him; and as is the way with humorists
|
||
|
of his breed, he was still laughing at it after everybody else had
|
||
|
got through. He was so set up that he concluded to make a speech
|
||
|
--of course a humorous speech. I think I never heard so many old
|
||
|
played-out jokes strung together in my life. He was worse than
|
||
|
the minstrels, worse than the clown in the circus. It seemed
|
||
|
peculiarly sad to sit here, thirteen hundred years before I was
|
||
|
born, and listen again to poor, flat, worm-eaten jokes that had
|
||
|
given me the dry gripes when I was a boy thirteen hundred years
|
||
|
afterwards. It about convinced me that there isn't any such thing
|
||
|
as a new joke possible. Everybody laughed at these antiquities
|
||
|
--but then they always do; I had noticed that, centuries later.
|
||
|
However, of course the scoffer didn't laugh--I mean the boy. No,
|
||
|
he scoffed; there wasn't anything he wouldn't scoff at. He said
|
||
|
the most of Sir Dinadan's jokes were rotten and the rest were
|
||
|
petrified. I said "petrified" was good; as I believed, myself,
|
||
|
that the only right way to classify the majestic ages of some of
|
||
|
those jokes was by geologic periods. But that neat idea hit
|
||
|
the boy in a blank place, for geology hadn't been invented yet.
|
||
|
However, I made a note of the remark, and calculated to educate
|
||
|
the commonwealth up to it if I pulled through. It is no use
|
||
|
to throw a good thing away merely because the market isn't ripe yet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now Sir Kay arose and began to fire up on his history-mill with me
|
||
|
for fuel. It was time for me to feel serious, and I did. Sir Kay
|
||
|
told how he had encountered me in a far land of barbarians, who
|
||
|
all wore the same ridiculous garb that I did--a garb that was a work
|
||
|
of enchantment, and intended to make the wearer secure from hurt
|
||
|
by human hands. However he had nullified the force of the
|
||
|
enchantment by prayer, and had killed my thirteen knights in
|
||
|
a three hours' battle, and taken me prisoner, sparing my life
|
||
|
in order that so strange a curiosity as I was might be exhibited
|
||
|
to the wonder and admiration of the king and the court. He spoke
|
||
|
of me all the time, in the blandest way, as "this prodigious giant,"
|
||
|
and "this horrible sky-towering monster," and "this tusked and
|
||
|
taloned man-devouring ogre", and everybody took in all this bosh
|
||
|
in the naivest way, and never smiled or seemed to notice that
|
||
|
there was any discrepancy between these watered statistics and me.
|
||
|
He said that in trying to escape from him I sprang into the top of
|
||
|
a tree two hundred cubits high at a single bound, but he dislodged
|
||
|
me with a stone the size of a cow, which "all-to brast" the most
|
||
|
of my bones, and then swore me to appear at Arthur's court for
|
||
|
sentence. He ended by condemning me to die at noon on the 21st;
|
||
|
and was so little concerned about it that he stopped to yawn before
|
||
|
he named the date.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was in a dismal state by this time; indeed, I was hardly enough
|
||
|
in my right mind to keep the run of a dispute that sprung up as
|
||
|
to how I had better be killed, the possibility of the killing being
|
||
|
doubted by some, because of the enchantment in my clothes. And yet
|
||
|
it was nothing but an ordinary suit of fifteen-dollar slop-shops.
|
||
|
Still, I was sane enough to notice this detail, to wit: many of
|
||
|
the terms used in the most matter-of-fact way by this great
|
||
|
assemblage of the first ladies and gentlemen in the land would
|
||
|
have made a Comanche blush. Indelicacy is too mild a term to convey
|
||
|
the idea. However, I had read "Tom Jones," and "Roderick Random,"
|
||
|
and other books of that kind, and knew that the highest and first
|
||
|
ladies and gentlemen in England had remained little or no cleaner
|
||
|
in their talk, and in the morals and conduct which such talk
|
||
|
implies, clear up to a hundred years ago; in fact clear into our
|
||
|
own nineteenth century--in which century, broadly speaking,
|
||
|
the earliest samples of the real lady and real gentleman discoverable
|
||
|
in English history--or in European history, for that matter--may be
|
||
|
said to have made their appearance. Suppose Sir Walter, instead
|
||
|
of putting the conversations into the mouths of his characters,
|
||
|
had allowed the characters to speak for themselves? We should
|
||
|
have had talk from Rebecca and Ivanhoe and the soft lady Rowena
|
||
|
which would embarrass a tramp in our day. However, to the
|
||
|
unconsciously indelicate all things are delicate. King Arthur's
|
||
|
people were not aware that they were indecent and I had presence
|
||
|
of mind enough not to mention it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were so troubled about my enchanted clothes that they were
|
||
|
mightily relieved, at last, when old Merlin swept the difficulty
|
||
|
away for them with a common-sense hint. He asked them why they
|
||
|
were so dull--why didn't it occur to them to strip me. In half a
|
||
|
minute I was as naked as a pair of tongs! And dear, dear, to think
|
||
|
of it: I was the only embarrassed person there. Everybody discussed
|
||
|
me; and did it as unconcernedly as if I had been a cabbage.
|
||
|
Queen Guenever was as naively interested as the rest, and said
|
||
|
she had never seen anybody with legs just like mine before. It was
|
||
|
the only compliment I got--if it was a compliment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Finally I was carried off in one direction, and my perilous clothes
|
||
|
in another. I was shoved into a dark and narrow cell in a dungeon,
|
||
|
with some scant remnants for dinner, some moldy straw for a bed,
|
||
|
and no end of rats for company.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER V
|
||
|
|
||
|
AN INSPIRATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was so tired that even my fears were not able to keep me awake long.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I next came to myself, I seemed to have been asleep a very
|
||
|
long time. My first thought was, "Well, what an astonishing dream
|
||
|
I've had! I reckon I've waked only just in time to keep from
|
||
|
being hanged or drowned or burned or something.... I'll nap again
|
||
|
till the whistle blows, and then I'll go down to the arms factory
|
||
|
and have it out with Hercules."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But just then I heard the harsh music of rusty chains and bolts,
|
||
|
a light flashed in my eyes, and that butterfly, Clarence, stood
|
||
|
before me! I gasped with surprise; my breath almost got away from me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What!" I said, "you here yet? Go along with the rest of
|
||
|
the dream! scatter!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But he only laughed, in his light-hearted way, and fell to making
|
||
|
fun of my sorry plight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All right," I said resignedly, "let the dream go on; I'm in no hurry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Prithee what dream?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What dream? Why, the dream that I am in Arthur's court--a person
|
||
|
who never existed; and that I am talking to you, who are nothing
|
||
|
but a work of the imagination."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, la, indeed! and is it a dream that you're to be burned
|
||
|
to-morrow? Ho-ho--answer me that!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The shock that went through me was distressing. I now began
|
||
|
to reason that my situation was in the last degree serious, dream
|
||
|
or no dream; for I knew by past experience of the lifelike intensity
|
||
|
of dreams, that to be burned to death, even in a dream, would be
|
||
|
very far from being a jest, and was a thing to be avoided, by any
|
||
|
means, fair or foul, that I could contrive. So I said beseechingly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, Clarence, good boy, only friend I've got,--for you _are_ my
|
||
|
friend, aren't you?--don't fail me; help me to devise some way
|
||
|
of escaping from this place!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now do but hear thyself! Escape? Why, man, the corridors are
|
||
|
in guard and keep of men-at-arms."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No doubt, no doubt. But how many, Clarence? Not many, I hope?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Full a score. One may not hope to escape." After a pause
|
||
|
--hesitatingly: "and there be other reasons--and weightier."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Other ones? What are they?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, they say--oh, but I daren't, indeed daren't!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, poor lad, what is the matter? Why do you blench? Why do
|
||
|
you tremble so?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, in sooth, there is need! I do want to tell you, but--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, come, be brave, be a man--speak out, there's a good lad!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He hesitated, pulled one way by desire, the other way by fear;
|
||
|
then he stole to the door and peeped out, listening; and finally
|
||
|
crept close to me and put his mouth to my ear and told me his
|
||
|
fearful news in a whisper, and with all the cowering apprehension
|
||
|
of one who was venturing upon awful ground and speaking of things
|
||
|
whose very mention might be freighted with death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Merlin, in his malice, has woven a spell about this dungeon, and
|
||
|
there bides not the man in these kingdoms that would be desperate
|
||
|
enough to essay to cross its lines with you! Now God pity me,
|
||
|
I have told it! Ah, be kind to me, be merciful to a poor boy who
|
||
|
means thee well; for an thou betray me I am lost!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I laughed the only really refreshing laugh I had had for some time;
|
||
|
and shouted:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Merlin has wrought a spell! _Merlin_, forsooth! That cheap old
|
||
|
humbug, that maundering old ass? Bosh, pure bosh, the silliest bosh
|
||
|
in the world! Why, it does seem to me that of all the childish,
|
||
|
idiotic, chuckle-headed, chicken-livered superstitions that ev
|
||
|
--oh, damn Merlin!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Clarence had slumped to his knees before I had half finished,
|
||
|
and he was like to go out of his mind with fright.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, beware! These are awful words! Any moment these walls
|
||
|
may crumble upon us if you say such things. Oh call them back
|
||
|
before it is too late!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now this strange exhibition gave me a good idea and set me to
|
||
|
thinking. If everybody about here was so honestly and sincerely
|
||
|
afraid of Merlin's pretended magic as Clarence was, certainly
|
||
|
a superior man like me ought to be shrewd enough to contrive
|
||
|
some way to take advantage of such a state of things. I went
|
||
|
on thinking, and worked out a plan. Then I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Get up. Pull yourself together; look me in the eye. Do you
|
||
|
know why I laughed?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No--but for our blessed Lady's sake, do it no more."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I'll tell you why I laughed. Because I'm a magician myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thou!" The boy recoiled a step, and caught his breath, for
|
||
|
the thing hit him rather sudden; but the aspect which he took
|
||
|
on was very, very respectful. I took quick note of that; it
|
||
|
indicated that a humbug didn't need to have a reputation in this
|
||
|
asylum; people stood ready to take him at his word, without that.
|
||
|
I resumed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I've known Merlin seven hundred years, and he--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Seven hun--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Don't interrupt me. He has died and come alive again thirteen
|
||
|
times, and traveled under a new name every time: Smith, Jones,
|
||
|
Robinson, Jackson, Peters, Haskins, Merlin--a new alias every
|
||
|
time he turns up. I knew him in Egypt three hundred years ago;
|
||
|
I knew him in India five hundred years ago--he is always blethering
|
||
|
around in my way, everywhere I go; he makes me tired. He don't
|
||
|
amount to shucks, as a magician; knows some of the old common
|
||
|
tricks, but has never got beyond the rudiments, and never will.
|
||
|
He is well enough for the provinces--one-night stands and that
|
||
|
sort of thing, you know--but dear me, _he_ oughtn't to set up for
|
||
|
an expert--anyway not where there's a real artist. Now look here,
|
||
|
Clarence, I am going to stand your friend, right along, and in
|
||
|
return you must be mine. I want you to do me a favor. I want
|
||
|
you to get word to the king that I am a magician myself--and the
|
||
|
Supreme Grand High-yu-Muck-amuck and head of the tribe, at that;
|
||
|
and I want him to be made to understand that I am just quietly
|
||
|
arranging a little calamity here that will make the fur fly in these
|
||
|
realms if Sir Kay's project is carried out and any harm comes
|
||
|
to me. Will you get that to the king for me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The poor boy was in such a state that he could hardly answer me.
|
||
|
It was pitiful to see a creature so terrified, so unnerved, so
|
||
|
demoralized. But he promised everything; and on my side he made
|
||
|
me promise over and over again that I would remain his friend, and
|
||
|
never turn against him or cast any enchantments upon him. Then
|
||
|
he worked his way out, staying himself with his hand along the
|
||
|
wall, like a sick person.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently this thought occurred to me: how heedless I have been!
|
||
|
When the boy gets calm, he will wonder why a great magician like me
|
||
|
should have begged a boy like him to help me get out of this place;
|
||
|
he will put this and that together, and will see that I am a humbug.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I worried over that heedless blunder for an hour, and called myself
|
||
|
a great many hard names, meantime. But finally it occurred to me
|
||
|
all of a sudden that these animals didn't reason; that _they_ never
|
||
|
put this and that together; that all their talk showed that they
|
||
|
didn't know a discrepancy when they saw it. I was at rest, then.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But as soon as one is at rest, in this world, off he goes on
|
||
|
something else to worry about. It occurred to me that I had made
|
||
|
another blunder: I had sent the boy off to alarm his betters with
|
||
|
a threat--I intending to invent a calamity at my leisure; now
|
||
|
the people who are the readiest and eagerest and willingest to
|
||
|
swallow miracles are the very ones who are hungriest to see you
|
||
|
perform them; suppose I should be called on for a sample? Suppose
|
||
|
I should be asked to name my calamity? Yes, I had made a blunder;
|
||
|
I ought to have invented my calamity first. "What shall I do?
|
||
|
what can I say, to gain a little time?" I was in trouble again;
|
||
|
in the deepest kind of trouble...
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's a footstep!--they're coming. If I had only just a moment
|
||
|
to think.... Good, I've got it. I'm all right."
|
||
|
|
||
|
You see, it was the eclipse. It came into my mind in the nick
|
||
|
of time, how Columbus, or Cortez, or one of those people, played
|
||
|
an eclipse as a saving trump once, on some savages, and I saw my
|
||
|
chance. I could play it myself, now, and it wouldn't be any
|
||
|
plagiarism, either, because I should get it in nearly a thousand
|
||
|
years ahead of those parties.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Clarence came in, subdued, distressed, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hasted the message to our liege the king, and straightway he
|
||
|
had me to his presence. He was frighted even to the marrow,
|
||
|
and was minded to give order for your instant enlargement, and
|
||
|
that you be clothed in fine raiment and lodged as befitted one so
|
||
|
great; but then came Merlin and spoiled all; for he persuaded
|
||
|
the king that you are mad, and know not whereof you speak; and
|
||
|
said your threat is but foolishness and idle vaporing. They
|
||
|
disputed long, but in the end, Merlin, scoffing, said, 'Wherefore
|
||
|
hath he not _named_ his brave calamity? Verily it is because he
|
||
|
cannot.' This thrust did in a most sudden sort close the king's
|
||
|
mouth, and he could offer naught to turn the argument; and so,
|
||
|
reluctant, and full loth to do you the discourtesy, he yet prayeth
|
||
|
you to consider his perplexed case, as noting how the matter stands,
|
||
|
and name the calamity--if so be you have determined the nature
|
||
|
of it and the time of its coming. Oh, prithee delay not; to delay
|
||
|
at such a time were to double and treble the perils that already
|
||
|
compass thee about. Oh, be thou wise--name the calamity!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I allowed silence to accumulate while I got my impressiveness
|
||
|
together, and then said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How long have I been shut up in this hole?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye were shut up when yesterday was well spent. It is 9 of
|
||
|
the morning now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No! Then I have slept well, sure enough. Nine in the morning
|
||
|
now! And yet it is the very complexion of midnight, to a shade.
|
||
|
This is the 20th, then?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The 20th--yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I am to be burned alive to-morrow." The boy shuddered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At what hour?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At high noon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now then, I will tell you what to say." I paused, and stood over
|
||
|
that cowering lad a whole minute in awful silence; then, in a voice
|
||
|
deep, measured, charged with doom, I began, and rose by dramatically
|
||
|
graded stages to my colossal climax, which I delivered in as sublime
|
||
|
and noble a way as ever I did such a thing in my life: "Go back
|
||
|
and tell the king that at that hour I will smother the whole world
|
||
|
in the dead blackness of midnight; I will blot out the sun, and he
|
||
|
shall never shine again; the fruits of the earth shall rot for lack
|
||
|
of light and warmth, and the peoples of the earth shall famish
|
||
|
and die, to the last man!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had to carry the boy out myself, he sunk into such a collapse.
|
||
|
I handed him over to the soldiers, and went back.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE ECLIPSE
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the stillness and the darkness, realization soon began to
|
||
|
supplement knowledge. The mere knowledge of a fact is pale; but
|
||
|
when you come to _realize_ your fact, it takes on color. It is
|
||
|
all the difference between hearing of a man being stabbed to
|
||
|
the heart, and seeing it done. In the stillness and the darkness,
|
||
|
the knowledge that I was in deadly danger took to itself deeper
|
||
|
and deeper meaning all the time; a something which was realization
|
||
|
crept inch by inch through my veins and turned me cold.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it is a blessed provision of nature that at times like these,
|
||
|
as soon as a man's mercury has got down to a certain point there
|
||
|
comes a revulsion, and he rallies. Hope springs up, and cheerfulness
|
||
|
along with it, and then he is in good shape to do something for
|
||
|
himself, if anything can be done. When my rally came, it came with
|
||
|
a bound. I said to myself that my eclipse would be sure to save me,
|
||
|
and make me the greatest man in the kingdom besides; and straightway
|
||
|
my mercury went up to the top of the tube, and my solicitudes
|
||
|
all vanished. I was as happy a man as there was in the world.
|
||
|
I was even impatient for to-morrow to come, I so wanted to gather
|
||
|
in that great triumph and be the center of all the nation's wonder
|
||
|
and reverence. Besides, in a business way it would be the making
|
||
|
of me; I knew that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Meantime there was one thing which had got pushed into the background
|
||
|
of my mind. That was the half-conviction that when the nature
|
||
|
of my proposed calamity should be reported to those superstitious
|
||
|
people, it would have such an effect that they would want to
|
||
|
compromise. So, by and by when I heard footsteps coming, that
|
||
|
thought was recalled to me, and I said to myself, "As sure as
|
||
|
anything, it's the compromise. Well, if it is good, all right,
|
||
|
I will accept; but if it isn't, I mean to stand my ground and play
|
||
|
my hand for all it is worth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The door opened, and some men-at-arms appeared. The leader said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The stake is ready. Come!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The stake! The strength went out of me, and I almost fell down.
|
||
|
It is hard to get one's breath at such a time, such lumps come into
|
||
|
one's throat, and such gaspings; but as soon as I could speak, I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But this is a mistake--the execution is to-morrow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Order changed; been set forward a day. Haste thee!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was lost. There was no help for me. I was dazed, stupefied;
|
||
|
I had no command over myself, I only wandered purposely about,
|
||
|
like one out of his mind; so the soldiers took hold of me, and
|
||
|
pulled me along with them, out of the cell and along the maze of
|
||
|
underground corridors, and finally into the fierce glare of daylight
|
||
|
and the upper world. As we stepped into the vast enclosed court
|
||
|
of the castle I got a shock; for the first thing I saw was the stake,
|
||
|
standing in the center, and near it the piled fagots and a monk.
|
||
|
On all four sides of the court the seated multitudes rose rank
|
||
|
above rank, forming sloping terraces that were rich with color.
|
||
|
The king and the queen sat in their thrones, the most conspicuous
|
||
|
figures there, of course.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To note all this, occupied but a second. The next second Clarence
|
||
|
had slipped from some place of concealment and was pouring news
|
||
|
into my ear, his eyes beaming with triumph and gladness. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tis through _me_ the change was wrought! And main hard have I worked
|
||
|
to do it, too. But when I revealed to them the calamity in store,
|
||
|
and saw how mighty was the terror it did engender, then saw I also
|
||
|
that this was the time to strike! Wherefore I diligently pretended,
|
||
|
unto this and that and the other one, that your power against the sun
|
||
|
could not reach its full until the morrow; and so if any would save
|
||
|
the sun and the world, you must be slain to-day, while your
|
||
|
enchantments are but in the weaving and lack potency. Odsbodikins,
|
||
|
it was but a dull lie, a most indifferent invention, but you should
|
||
|
have seen them seize it and swallow it, in the frenzy of their
|
||
|
fright, as it were salvation sent from heaven; and all the while
|
||
|
was I laughing in my sleeve the one moment, to see them so cheaply
|
||
|
deceived, and glorifying God the next, that He was content to let
|
||
|
the meanest of His creatures be His instrument to the saving of
|
||
|
thy life. Ah how happy has the matter sped! You will not need
|
||
|
to do the sun a _real_ hurt--ah, forget not that, on your soul forget
|
||
|
it not! Only make a little darkness--only the littlest little
|
||
|
darkness, mind, and cease with that. It will be sufficient. They
|
||
|
will see that I spoke falsely,--being ignorant, as they will fancy
|
||
|
--and with the falling of the first shadow of that darkness you
|
||
|
shall see them go mad with fear; and they will set you free and
|
||
|
make you great! Go to thy triumph, now! But remember--ah, good
|
||
|
friend, I implore thee remember my supplication, and do the blessed
|
||
|
sun no hurt. For _my_ sake, thy true friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I choked out some words through my grief and misery; as much as
|
||
|
to say I would spare the sun; for which the lad's eyes paid me back
|
||
|
with such deep and loving gratitude that I had not the heart
|
||
|
to tell him his good-hearted foolishness had ruined me and sent me
|
||
|
to my death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the soldiers assisted me across the court the stillness was
|
||
|
so profound that if I had been blindfold I should have supposed
|
||
|
I was in a solitude instead of walled in by four thousand people.
|
||
|
There was not a movement perceptible in those masses of humanity;
|
||
|
they were as rigid as stone images, and as pale; and dread sat
|
||
|
upon every countenance. This hush continued while I was being
|
||
|
chained to the stake; it still continued while the fagots were
|
||
|
carefully and tediously piled about my ankles, my knees, my thighs,
|
||
|
my body. Then there was a pause, and a deeper hush, if possible,
|
||
|
and a man knelt down at my feet with a blazing torch; the multitude
|
||
|
strained forward, gazing, and parting slightly from their seats
|
||
|
without knowing it; the monk raised his hands above my head, and
|
||
|
his eyes toward the blue sky, and began some words in Latin; in
|
||
|
this attitude he droned on and on, a little while, and then stopped.
|
||
|
I waited two or three moments; then looked up; he was standing
|
||
|
there petrified. With a common impulse the multitude rose slowly
|
||
|
up and stared into the sky. I followed their eyes, as sure as guns,
|
||
|
there was my eclipse beginning! The life went boiling through
|
||
|
my veins; I was a new man! The rim of black spread slowly into
|
||
|
the sun's disk, my heart beat higher and higher, and still the
|
||
|
assemblage and the priest stared into the sky, motionless. I knew
|
||
|
that this gaze would be turned upon me, next. When it was, I was
|
||
|
ready. I was in one of the most grand attitudes I ever struck,
|
||
|
with my arm stretched up pointing to the sun. It was a noble
|
||
|
effect. You could _see_ the shudder sweep the mass like a wave.
|
||
|
Two shouts rang out, one close upon the heels of the other:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Apply the torch!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I forbid it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The one was from Merlin, the other from the king. Merlin started
|
||
|
from his place--to apply the torch himself, I judged. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stay where you are. If any man moves--even the king--before
|
||
|
I give him leave, I will blast him with thunder, I will consume
|
||
|
him with lightnings!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The multitude sank meekly into their seats, and I was just expecting
|
||
|
they would. Merlin hesitated a moment or two, and I was on pins
|
||
|
and needles during that little while. Then he sat down, and I took
|
||
|
a good breath; for I knew I was master of the situation now.
|
||
|
The king said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Be merciful, fair sir, and essay no further in this perilous matter,
|
||
|
lest disaster follow. It was reported to us that your powers could
|
||
|
not attain unto their full strength until the morrow; but--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your Majesty thinks the report may have been a lie? It _was_ a lie."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That made an immense effect; up went appealing hands everywhere,
|
||
|
and the king was assailed with a storm of supplications that
|
||
|
I might be bought off at any price, and the calamity stayed.
|
||
|
The king was eager to comply. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Name any terms, reverend sir, even to the halving of my kingdom;
|
||
|
but banish this calamity, spare the sun!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
My fortune was made. I would have taken him up in a minute, but
|
||
|
I couldn't stop an eclipse; the thing was out of the question. So
|
||
|
I asked time to consider. The king said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How long--ah, how long, good sir? Be merciful; look, it groweth
|
||
|
darker, moment by moment. Prithee how long?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not long. Half an hour--maybe an hour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There were a thousand pathetic protests, but I couldn't shorten up
|
||
|
any, for I couldn't remember how long a total eclipse lasts. I was
|
||
|
in a puzzled condition, anyway, and wanted to think. Something
|
||
|
was wrong about that eclipse, and the fact was very unsettling.
|
||
|
If this wasn't the one I was after, how was I to tell whether this
|
||
|
was the sixth century, or nothing but a dream? Dear me, if I could
|
||
|
only prove it was the latter! Here was a glad new hope. If the boy
|
||
|
was right about the date, and this was surely the 20th, it _wasn't_
|
||
|
the sixth century. I reached for the monk's sleeve, in considerable
|
||
|
excitement, and asked him what day of the month it was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hang him, he said it was the _twenty-first_! It made me turn cold
|
||
|
to hear him. I begged him not to make any mistake about it; but
|
||
|
he was sure; he knew it was the 21st. So, that feather-headed
|
||
|
boy had botched things again! The time of the day was right
|
||
|
for the eclipse; I had seen that for myself, in the beginning,
|
||
|
by the dial that was near by. Yes, I was in King Arthur's court,
|
||
|
and I might as well make the most out of it I could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The darkness was steadily growing, the people becoming more and
|
||
|
more distressed. I now said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have reflected, Sir King. For a lesson, I will let this darkness
|
||
|
proceed, and spread night in the world; but whether I blot out
|
||
|
the sun for good, or restore it, shall rest with you. These are
|
||
|
the terms, to wit: You shall remain king over all your dominions,
|
||
|
and receive all the glories and honors that belong to the kingship;
|
||
|
but you shall appoint me your perpetual minister and executive,
|
||
|
and give me for my services one per cent of such actual increase
|
||
|
of revenue over and above its present amount as I may succeed
|
||
|
in creating for the state. If I can't live on that, I sha'n't ask
|
||
|
anybody to give me a lift. Is it satisfactory?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a prodigious roar of applause, and out of the midst
|
||
|
of it the king's voice rose, saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Away with his bonds, and set him free! and do him homage, high
|
||
|
and low, rich and poor, for he is become the king's right hand,
|
||
|
is clothed with power and authority, and his seat is upon the highest
|
||
|
step of the throne! Now sweep away this creeping night, and bring
|
||
|
the light and cheer again, that all the world may bless thee."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That a common man should be shamed before the world, is nothing;
|
||
|
but it were dishonor to the _king_ if any that saw his minister naked
|
||
|
should not also see him delivered from his shame. If I might ask
|
||
|
that my clothes be brought again--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are not meet," the king broke in. "Fetch raiment of another
|
||
|
sort; clothe him like a prince!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
My idea worked. I wanted to keep things as they were till the
|
||
|
eclipse was total, otherwise they would be trying again to get
|
||
|
me to dismiss the darkness, and of course I couldn't do it. Sending
|
||
|
for the clothes gained some delay, but not enough. So I had to make
|
||
|
another excuse. I said it would be but natural if the king should
|
||
|
change his mind and repent to some extent of what he had done
|
||
|
under excitement; therefore I would let the darkness grow a while,
|
||
|
and if at the end of a reasonable time the king had kept his mind
|
||
|
the same, the darkness should be dismissed. Neither the king nor
|
||
|
anybody else was satisfied with that arrangement, but I had
|
||
|
to stick to my point.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It grew darker and darker and blacker and blacker, while I struggled
|
||
|
with those awkward sixth-century clothes. It got to be pitch dark,
|
||
|
at last, and the multitude groaned with horror to feel the cold
|
||
|
uncanny night breezes fan through the place and see the stars
|
||
|
come out and twinkle in the sky. At last the eclipse was total,
|
||
|
and I was very glad of it, but everybody else was in misery; which
|
||
|
was quite natural. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The king, by his silence, still stands to the terms." Then
|
||
|
I lifted up my hands--stood just so a moment--then I said, with
|
||
|
the most awful solemnity: "Let the enchantment dissolve and
|
||
|
pass harmless away!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no response, for a moment, in that deep darkness and
|
||
|
that graveyard hush. But when the silver rim of the sun pushed
|
||
|
itself out, a moment or two later, the assemblage broke loose with
|
||
|
a vast shout and came pouring down like a deluge to smother me
|
||
|
with blessings and gratitude; and Clarence was not the last of
|
||
|
the wash, to be sure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VII
|
||
|
|
||
|
MERLIN'S TOWER
|
||
|
|
||
|
Inasmuch as I was now the second personage in the Kingdom, as far
|
||
|
as political power and authority were concerned, much was made
|
||
|
of me. My raiment was of silks and velvets and cloth of gold,
|
||
|
and by consequence was very showy, also uncomfortable. But habit
|
||
|
would soon reconcile me to my clothes; I was aware of that. I was
|
||
|
given the choicest suite of apartments in the castle, after
|
||
|
the king's. They were aglow with loud-colored silken hangings,
|
||
|
but the stone floors had nothing but rushes on them for a carpet,
|
||
|
and they were misfit rushes at that, being not all of one breed.
|
||
|
As for conveniences, properly speaking, there weren't any. I mean
|
||
|
_little_ conveniences; it is the little conveniences that make
|
||
|
the real comfort of life. The big oaken chairs, graced with rude
|
||
|
carvings, were well enough, but that was the stopping place.
|
||
|
There was no soap, no matches, no looking-glass--except a metal
|
||
|
one, about as powerful as a pail of water. And not a chromo.
|
||
|
I had been used to chromos for years, and I saw now that without
|
||
|
my suspecting it a passion for art had got worked into the fabric
|
||
|
of my being, and was become a part of me. It made me homesick
|
||
|
to look around over this proud and gaudy but heartless barrenness
|
||
|
and remember that in our house in East Hartford, all unpretending
|
||
|
as it was, you couldn't go into a room but you would find an
|
||
|
insurance-chromo, or at least a three-color God-Bless-Our-Home
|
||
|
over the door; and in the parlor we had nine. But here, even in
|
||
|
my grand room of state, there wasn't anything in the nature of
|
||
|
a picture except a thing the size of a bedquilt, which was either
|
||
|
woven or knitted (it had darned places in it), and nothing in it
|
||
|
was the right color or the right shape; and as for proportions,
|
||
|
even Raphael himself couldn't have botched them more formidably,
|
||
|
after all his practice on those nightmares they call his "celebrated
|
||
|
Hampton Court cartoons." Raphael was a bird. We had several
|
||
|
of his chromos; one was his "Miraculous Draught of Fishes," where
|
||
|
he puts in a miracle of his own--puts three men into a canoe which
|
||
|
wouldn't have held a dog without upsetting. I always admired
|
||
|
to study R.'s art, it was so fresh and unconventional.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There wasn't even a bell or a speaking-tube in the castle. I had
|
||
|
a great many servants, and those that were on duty lolled in the
|
||
|
anteroom; and when I wanted one of them I had to go and call for him.
|
||
|
There was no gas, there were no candles; a bronze dish half full
|
||
|
of boarding-house butter with a blazing rag floating in it was
|
||
|
the thing that produced what was regarded as light. A lot of
|
||
|
these hung along the walls and modified the dark, just toned it
|
||
|
down enough to make it dismal. If you went out at night, your
|
||
|
servants carried torches. There were no books, pens, paper or
|
||
|
ink, and no glass in the openings they believed to be windows.
|
||
|
It is a little thing--glass is--until it is absent, then it becomes
|
||
|
a big thing. But perhaps the worst of all was, that there wasn't
|
||
|
any sugar, coffee, tea, or tobacco. I saw that I was just another
|
||
|
Robinson Crusoe cast away on an uninhabited island, with no society
|
||
|
but some more or less tame animals, and if I wanted to make life
|
||
|
bearable I must do as he did--invent, contrive, create, reorganize
|
||
|
things; set brain and hand to work, and keep them busy. Well,
|
||
|
that was in my line.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One thing troubled me along at first--the immense interest which
|
||
|
people took in me. Apparently the whole nation wanted a look
|
||
|
at me. It soon transpired that the eclipse had scared the British
|
||
|
world almost to death; that while it lasted the whole country,
|
||
|
from one end to the other, was in a pitiable state of panic, and
|
||
|
the churches, hermitages, and monkeries overflowed with praying
|
||
|
and weeping poor creatures who thought the end of the world was
|
||
|
come. Then had followed the news that the producer of this awful
|
||
|
event was a stranger, a mighty magician at Arthur's court; that he
|
||
|
could have blown out the sun like a candle, and was just going
|
||
|
to do it when his mercy was purchased, and he then dissolved
|
||
|
his enchantments, and was now recognized and honored as the man
|
||
|
who had by his unaided might saved the globe from destruction and
|
||
|
its peoples from extinction. Now if you consider that everybody
|
||
|
believed that, and not only believed it, but never even dreamed
|
||
|
of doubting it, you will easily understand that there was not
|
||
|
a person in all Britain that would not have walked fifty miles
|
||
|
to get a sight of me. Of course I was all the talk--all other
|
||
|
subjects were dropped; even the king became suddenly a person of
|
||
|
minor interest and notoriety. Within twenty-four hours the
|
||
|
delegations began to arrive, and from that time onward for a fortnight
|
||
|
they kept coming. The village was crowded, and all the countryside.
|
||
|
I had to go out a dozen times a day and show myself to these
|
||
|
reverent and awe-stricken multitudes. It came to be a great burden,
|
||
|
as to time and trouble, but of course it was at the same time
|
||
|
compensatingly agreeable to be so celebrated and such a center
|
||
|
of homage. It turned Brer Merlin green with envy and spite, which
|
||
|
was a great satisfaction to me. But there was one thing I couldn't
|
||
|
understand--nobody had asked for an autograph. I spoke to Clarence
|
||
|
about it. By George! I had to explain to him what it was. Then
|
||
|
he said nobody in the country could read or write but a few dozen
|
||
|
priests. Land! think of that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was another thing that troubled me a little. Those multitudes
|
||
|
presently began to agitate for another miracle. That was natural.
|
||
|
To be able to carry back to their far homes the boast that they
|
||
|
had seen the man who could command the sun, riding in the heavens,
|
||
|
and be obeyed, would make them great in the eyes of their neighbors,
|
||
|
and envied by them all; but to be able to also say they had seen
|
||
|
him work a miracle themselves--why, people would come a distance
|
||
|
to see _them_. The pressure got to be pretty strong. There was
|
||
|
going to be an eclipse of the moon, and I knew the date and hour,
|
||
|
but it was too far away. Two years. I would have given a good
|
||
|
deal for license to hurry it up and use it now when there was
|
||
|
a big market for it. It seemed a great pity to have it wasted so,
|
||
|
and come lagging along at a time when a body wouldn't have any
|
||
|
use for it, as like as not. If it had been booked for only a month
|
||
|
away, I could have sold it short; but, as matters stood, I couldn't
|
||
|
seem to cipher out any way to make it do me any good, so I gave up
|
||
|
trying. Next, Clarence found that old Merlin was making himself
|
||
|
busy on the sly among those people. He was spreading a report that
|
||
|
I was a humbug, and that the reason I didn't accommodate the people
|
||
|
with a miracle was because I couldn't. I saw that I must do
|
||
|
something. I presently thought out a plan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By my authority as executive I threw Merlin into prison--the same
|
||
|
cell I had occupied myself. Then I gave public notice by herald
|
||
|
and trumpet that I should be busy with affairs of state for
|
||
|
a fortnight, but about the end of that time I would take a moment's
|
||
|
leisure and blow up Merlin's stone tower by fires from heaven;
|
||
|
in the meantime, whoso listened to evil reports about me, let him
|
||
|
beware. Furthermore, I would perform but this one miracle at
|
||
|
this time, and no more; if it failed to satisfy and any murmured,
|
||
|
I would turn the murmurers into horses, and make them useful.
|
||
|
Quiet ensued.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I took Clarence into my confidence, to a certain degree, and we
|
||
|
went to work privately. I told him that this was a sort of miracle
|
||
|
that required a trifle of preparation, and that it would be sudden
|
||
|
death to ever talk about these preparations to anybody. That made
|
||
|
his mouth safe enough. Clandestinely we made a few bushels of
|
||
|
first-rate blasting powder, and I superintended my armorers while
|
||
|
they constructed a lightning-rod and some wires. This old stone
|
||
|
tower was very massive--and rather ruinous, too, for it was Roman,
|
||
|
and four hundred years old. Yes, and handsome, after a rude
|
||
|
fashion, and clothed with ivy from base to summit, as with a shirt
|
||
|
of scale mail. It stood on a lonely eminence, in good view from
|
||
|
the castle, and about half a mile away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Working by night, we stowed the powder in the tower--dug stones
|
||
|
out, on the inside, and buried the powder in the walls themselves,
|
||
|
which were fifteen feet thick at the base. We put in a peck
|
||
|
at a time, in a dozen places. We could have blown up the Tower
|
||
|
of London with these charges. When the thirteenth night was come
|
||
|
we put up our lightning-rod, bedded it in one of the batches of
|
||
|
powder, and ran wires from it to the other batches. Everybody
|
||
|
had shunned that locality from the day of my proclamation, but
|
||
|
on the morning of the fourteenth I thought best to warn the people,
|
||
|
through the heralds, to keep clear away--a quarter of a mile away.
|
||
|
Then added, by command, that at some time during the twenty-four
|
||
|
hours I would consummate the miracle, but would first give a brief
|
||
|
notice; by flags on the castle towers if in the daytime, by
|
||
|
torch-baskets in the same places if at night.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thunder-showers had been tolerably frequent of late, and I was
|
||
|
not much afraid of a failure; still, I shouldn't have cared for
|
||
|
a delay of a day or two; I should have explained that I was busy
|
||
|
with affairs of state yet, and the people must wait.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, we had a blazing sunny day--almost the first one without
|
||
|
a cloud for three weeks; things always happen so. I kept secluded,
|
||
|
and watched the weather. Clarence dropped in from time to time
|
||
|
and said the public excitement was growing and growing all the
|
||
|
time, and the whole country filling up with human masses as far
|
||
|
as one could see from the battlements. At last the wind sprang up
|
||
|
and a cloud appeared--in the right quarter, too, and just at
|
||
|
nightfall. For a little while I watched that distant cloud spread
|
||
|
and blacken, then I judged it was time for me to appear. I ordered
|
||
|
the torch-baskets to be lit, and Merlin liberated and sent to me.
|
||
|
A quarter of an hour later I ascended the parapet and there found
|
||
|
the king and the court assembled and gazing off in the darkness
|
||
|
toward Merlin's Tower. Already the darkness was so heavy that
|
||
|
one could not see far; these people and the old turrets, being
|
||
|
partly in deep shadow and partly in the red glow from the great
|
||
|
torch-baskets overhead, made a good deal of a picture.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Merlin arrived in a gloomy mood. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You wanted to burn me alive when I had not done you any harm,
|
||
|
and latterly you have been trying to injure my professional
|
||
|
reputation. Therefore I am going to call down fire and blow up
|
||
|
your tower, but it is only fair to give you a chance; now if you
|
||
|
think you can break my enchantments and ward off the fires, step
|
||
|
to the bat, it's your innings."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can, fair sir, and I will. Doubt it not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He drew an imaginary circle on the stones of the roof, and burnt
|
||
|
a pinch of powder in it, which sent up a small cloud of aromatic
|
||
|
smoke, whereat everybody fell back and began to cross themselves
|
||
|
and get uncomfortable. Then he began to mutter and make passes
|
||
|
in the air with his hands. He worked himself up slowly and
|
||
|
gradually into a sort of frenzy, and got to thrashing around with
|
||
|
his arms like the sails of a windmill. By this time the storm had
|
||
|
about reached us; the gusts of wind were flaring the torches and
|
||
|
making the shadows swash about, the first heavy drops of rain
|
||
|
were falling, the world abroad was black as pitch, the lightning
|
||
|
began to wink fitfully. Of course, my rod would be loading itself
|
||
|
now. In fact, things were imminent. So I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have had time enough. I have given you every advantage,
|
||
|
and not interfered. It is plain your magic is weak. It is only
|
||
|
fair that I begin now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I made about three passes in the air, and then there was an awful
|
||
|
crash and that old tower leaped into the sky in chunks, along
|
||
|
with a vast volcanic fountain of fire that turned night to noonday,
|
||
|
and showed a thousand acres of human beings groveling on the ground
|
||
|
in a general collapse of consternation. Well, it rained mortar and
|
||
|
masonry the rest of the week. This was the report; but probably
|
||
|
the facts would have modified it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was an effective miracle. The great bothersome temporary
|
||
|
population vanished. There were a good many thousand tracks
|
||
|
in the mud the next morning, but they were all outward bound.
|
||
|
If I had advertised another miracle I couldn't have raised an
|
||
|
audience with a sheriff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Merlin's stock was flat. The king wanted to stop his wages; he
|
||
|
even wanted to banish him, but I interfered. I said he would be
|
||
|
useful to work the weather, and attend to small matters like that,
|
||
|
and I would give him a lift now and then when his poor little
|
||
|
parlor-magic soured on him. There wasn't a rag of his tower left,
|
||
|
but I had the government rebuild it for him, and advised him
|
||
|
to take boarders; but he was too high-toned for that. And as for
|
||
|
being grateful, he never even said thank you. He was a rather
|
||
|
hard lot, take him how you might; but then you couldn't fairly
|
||
|
expect a man to be sweet that had been set back so.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE BOSS
|
||
|
|
||
|
To be vested with enormous authority is a fine thing; but to have
|
||
|
the on-looking world consent to it is a finer. The tower episode
|
||
|
solidified my power, and made it impregnable. If any were perchance
|
||
|
disposed to be jealous and critical before that, they experienced
|
||
|
a change of heart, now. There was not any one in the kingdom
|
||
|
who would have considered it good judgment to meddle with my matters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was fast getting adjusted to my situation and circumstances.
|
||
|
For a time, I used to wake up, mornings, and smile at my "dream,"
|
||
|
and listen for the Colt's factory whistle; but that sort of thing
|
||
|
played itself out, gradually, and at last I was fully able to realize
|
||
|
that I was actually living in the sixth century, and in Arthur's
|
||
|
court, not a lunatic asylum. After that, I was just as much
|
||
|
at home in that century as I could have been in any other; and
|
||
|
as for preference, I wouldn't have traded it for the twentieth.
|
||
|
Look at the opportunities here for a man of knowledge, brains,
|
||
|
pluck, and enterprise to sail in and grow up with the country.
|
||
|
The grandest field that ever was; and all my own; not a competitor;
|
||
|
not a man who wasn't a baby to me in acquirements and capacities;
|
||
|
whereas, what would I amount to in the twentieth century? I should
|
||
|
be foreman of a factory, that is about all; and could drag a seine
|
||
|
down street any day and catch a hundred better men than myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What a jump I had made! I couldn't keep from thinking about it,
|
||
|
and contemplating it, just as one does who has struck oil. There
|
||
|
was nothing back of me that could approach it, unless it might be
|
||
|
Joseph's case; and Joseph's only approached it, it didn't equal
|
||
|
it, quite. For it stands to reason that as Joseph's splendid
|
||
|
financial ingenuities advantaged nobody but the king, the general
|
||
|
public must have regarded him with a good deal of disfavor, whereas
|
||
|
I had done my entire public a kindness in sparing the sun, and was
|
||
|
popular by reason of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was no shadow of a king; I was the substance; the king himself
|
||
|
was the shadow. My power was colossal; and it was not a mere
|
||
|
name, as such things have generally been, it was the genuine
|
||
|
article. I stood here, at the very spring and source of the second
|
||
|
great period of the world's history; and could see the trickling
|
||
|
stream of that history gather and deepen and broaden, and roll
|
||
|
its mighty tides down the far centuries; and I could note the
|
||
|
upspringing of adventurers like myself in the shelter of its long
|
||
|
array of thrones: De Montforts, Gavestons, Mortimers, Villierses;
|
||
|
the war-making, campaign-directing wantons of France, and Charles
|
||
|
the Second's scepter-wielding drabs; but nowhere in the procession
|
||
|
was my full-sized fellow visible. I was a Unique; and glad to know
|
||
|
that that fact could not be dislodged or challenged for thirteen
|
||
|
centuries and a half, for sure. Yes, in power I was equal to
|
||
|
the king. At the same time there was another power that was
|
||
|
a trifle stronger than both of us put together. That was the Church.
|
||
|
I do not wish to disguise that fact. I couldn't, if I wanted to.
|
||
|
But never mind about that, now; it will show up, in its proper
|
||
|
place, later on. It didn't cause me any trouble in the beginning
|
||
|
--at least any of consequence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, it was a curious country, and full of interest. And the
|
||
|
people! They were the quaintest and simplest and trustingest race;
|
||
|
why, they were nothing but rabbits. It was pitiful for a person
|
||
|
born in a wholesome free atmosphere to listen to their humble
|
||
|
and hearty outpourings of loyalty toward their king and Church
|
||
|
and nobility; as if they had any more occasion to love and honor
|
||
|
king and Church and noble than a slave has to love and honor
|
||
|
the lash, or a dog has to love and honor the stranger that kicks him!
|
||
|
Why, dear me, _any_ kind of royalty, howsoever modified, _any_ kind
|
||
|
of aristocracy, howsoever pruned, is rightly an insult; but if you
|
||
|
are born and brought up under that sort of arrangement you probably
|
||
|
never find it out for yourself, and don't believe it when somebody
|
||
|
else tells you. It is enough to make a body ashamed of his race
|
||
|
to think of the sort of froth that has always occupied its thrones
|
||
|
without shadow of right or reason, and the seventh-rate people
|
||
|
that have always figured as its aristocracies--a company of monarchs
|
||
|
and nobles who, as a rule, would have achieved only poverty and
|
||
|
obscurity if left, like their betters, to their own exertions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The most of King Arthur's British nation were slaves, pure and
|
||
|
simple, and bore that name, and wore the iron collar on their
|
||
|
necks; and the rest were slaves in fact, but without the name;
|
||
|
they imagined themselves men and freemen, and called themselves
|
||
|
so. The truth was, the nation as a body was in the world for one
|
||
|
object, and one only: to grovel before king and Church and noble;
|
||
|
to slave for them, sweat blood for them, starve that they might
|
||
|
be fed, work that they might play, drink misery to the dregs that
|
||
|
they might be happy, go naked that they might wear silks and
|
||
|
jewels, pay taxes that they might be spared from paying them,
|
||
|
be familiar all their lives with the degrading language and postures
|
||
|
of adulation that they might walk in pride and think themselves
|
||
|
the gods of this world. And for all this, the thanks they got were
|
||
|
cuffs and contempt; and so poor-spirited were they that they took
|
||
|
even this sort of attention as an honor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Inherited ideas are a curious thing, and interesting to observe
|
||
|
and examine. I had mine, the king and his people had theirs.
|
||
|
In both cases they flowed in ruts worn deep by time and habit,
|
||
|
and the man who should have proposed to divert them by reason
|
||
|
and argument would have had a long contract on his hands. For
|
||
|
instance, those people had inherited the idea that all men without
|
||
|
title and a long pedigree, whether they had great natural gifts
|
||
|
and acquirements or hadn't, were creatures of no more consideration
|
||
|
than so many animals, bugs, insects; whereas I had inherited the idea
|
||
|
that human daws who can consent to masquerade in the peacock-shams
|
||
|
of inherited dignities and unearned titles, are of no good but
|
||
|
to be laughed at. The way I was looked upon was odd, but it was
|
||
|
natural. You know how the keeper and the public regard the elephant
|
||
|
in the menagerie: well, that is the idea. They are full of
|
||
|
admiration of his vast bulk and his prodigious strength; they
|
||
|
speak with pride of the fact that he can do a hundred marvels
|
||
|
which are far and away beyond their own powers; and they speak
|
||
|
with the same pride of the fact that in his wrath he is able
|
||
|
to drive a thousand men before him. But does that make him one
|
||
|
of _them_? No; the raggedest tramp in the pit would smile at
|
||
|
the idea. He couldn't comprehend it; couldn't take it in; couldn't
|
||
|
in any remote way conceive of it. Well, to the king, the nobles,
|
||
|
and all the nation, down to the very slaves and tramps, I was
|
||
|
just that kind of an elephant, and nothing more. I was admired,
|
||
|
also feared; but it was as an animal is admired and feared.
|
||
|
The animal is not reverenced, neither was I; I was not even
|
||
|
respected. I had no pedigree, no inherited title; so in the king's
|
||
|
and nobles' eyes I was mere dirt; the people regarded me with
|
||
|
wonder and awe, but there was no reverence mixed with it; through
|
||
|
the force of inherited ideas they were not able to conceive of
|
||
|
anything being entitled to that except pedigree and lordship.
|
||
|
There you see the hand of that awful power, the Roman Catholic
|
||
|
Church. In two or three little centuries it had converted a nation
|
||
|
of men to a nation of worms. Before the day of the Church's
|
||
|
supremacy in the world, men were men, and held their heads up,
|
||
|
and had a man's pride and spirit and independence; and what
|
||
|
of greatness and position a person got, he got mainly by achievement,
|
||
|
not by birth. But then the Church came to the front, with an axe
|
||
|
to grind; and she was wise, subtle, and knew more than one way
|
||
|
to skin a cat--or a nation; she invented "divine right of kings,"
|
||
|
and propped it all around, brick by brick, with the Beatitudes
|
||
|
--wrenching them from their good purpose to make them fortify
|
||
|
an evil one; she preached (to the commoner) humility, obedience
|
||
|
to superiors, the beauty of self-sacrifice; she preached (to the
|
||
|
commoner) meekness under insult; preached (still to the commoner,
|
||
|
always to the commoner) patience, meanness of spirit, non-resistance
|
||
|
under oppression; and she introduced heritable ranks and
|
||
|
aristocracies, and taught all the Christian populations of the earth
|
||
|
to bow down to them and worship them. Even down to my birth-century
|
||
|
that poison was still in the blood of Christendom, and the best
|
||
|
of English commoners was still content to see his inferiors
|
||
|
impudently continuing to hold a number of positions, such as
|
||
|
lordships and the throne, to which the grotesque laws of his country
|
||
|
did not allow him to aspire; in fact, he was not merely contented
|
||
|
with this strange condition of things, he was even able to persuade
|
||
|
himself that he was proud of it. It seems to show that there isn't
|
||
|
anything you can't stand, if you are only born and bred to it.
|
||
|
Of course that taint, that reverence for rank and title, had been
|
||
|
in our American blood, too--I know that; but when I left America
|
||
|
it had disappeared--at least to all intents and purposes. The
|
||
|
remnant of it was restricted to the dudes and dudesses. When
|
||
|
a disease has worked its way down to that level, it may fairly
|
||
|
be said to be out of the system.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But to return to my anomalous position in King Arthur's kingdom.
|
||
|
Here I was, a giant among pigmies, a man among children, a master
|
||
|
intelligence among intellectual moles: by all rational measurement
|
||
|
the one and only actually great man in that whole British world;
|
||
|
and yet there and then, just as in the remote England of my
|
||
|
birth-time, the sheep-witted earl who could claim long descent
|
||
|
from a king's leman, acquired at second-hand from the slums of
|
||
|
London, was a better man than I was. Such a personage was fawned
|
||
|
upon in Arthur's realm and reverently looked up to by everybody,
|
||
|
even though his dispositions were as mean as his intelligence,
|
||
|
and his morals as base as his lineage. There were times when
|
||
|
_he_ could sit down in the king's presence, but I couldn't. I could
|
||
|
have got a title easily enough, and that would have raised me
|
||
|
a large step in everybody's eyes; even in the king's, the giver
|
||
|
of it. But I didn't ask for it; and I declined it when it was
|
||
|
offered. I couldn't have enjoyed such a thing with my notions;
|
||
|
and it wouldn't have been fair, anyway, because as far back as
|
||
|
I could go, our tribe had always been short of the bar sinister.
|
||
|
I couldn't have felt really and satisfactorily fine and proud
|
||
|
and set-up over any title except one that should come from the nation
|
||
|
itself, the only legitimate source; and such an one I hoped to win;
|
||
|
and in the course of years of honest and honorable endeavor, I did
|
||
|
win it and did wear it with a high and clean pride. This title
|
||
|
fell casually from the lips of a blacksmith, one day, in a village,
|
||
|
was caught up as a happy thought and tossed from mouth to mouth
|
||
|
with a laugh and an affirmative vote; in ten days it had swept
|
||
|
the kingdom, and was become as familiar as the king's name. I was
|
||
|
never known by any other designation afterward, whether in the
|
||
|
nation's talk or in grave debate upon matters of state at the
|
||
|
council-board of the sovereign. This title, translated into modern
|
||
|
speech, would be THE BOSS. Elected by the nation. That suited me.
|
||
|
And it was a pretty high title. There were very few THE'S, and
|
||
|
I was one of them. If you spoke of the duke, or the earl, or
|
||
|
the bishop, how could anybody tell which one you meant? But if
|
||
|
you spoke of The King or The Queen or The Boss, it was different.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I liked the king, and as king I respected him--respected
|
||
|
the office; at least respected it as much as I was capable of
|
||
|
respecting any unearned supremacy; but as MEN I looked down upon
|
||
|
him and his nobles--privately. And he and they liked me, and
|
||
|
respected my office; but as an animal, without birth or sham title,
|
||
|
they looked down upon me--and were not particularly private about it,
|
||
|
either. I didn't charge for my opinion about them, and they didn't
|
||
|
charge for their opinion about me: the account was square, the
|
||
|
books balanced, everybody was satisfied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER IX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE TOURNAMENT
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were always having grand tournaments there at Camelot; and
|
||
|
very stirring and picturesque and ridiculous human bull-fights
|
||
|
they were, too, but just a little wearisome to the practical mind.
|
||
|
However, I was generally on hand--for two reasons: a man must
|
||
|
not hold himself aloof from the things which his friends and his
|
||
|
community have at heart if he would be liked--especially as
|
||
|
a statesman; and both as business man and statesman I wanted
|
||
|
to study the tournament and see if I couldn't invent an improvement
|
||
|
on it. That reminds me to remark, in passing, that the very first
|
||
|
official thing I did, in my administration--and it was on the very
|
||
|
first day of it, too--was to start a patent office; for I knew
|
||
|
that a country without a patent office and good patent laws was
|
||
|
just a crab, and couldn't travel any way but sideways or backways.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Things ran along, a tournament nearly every week; and now and then
|
||
|
the boys used to want me to take a hand--I mean Sir Launcelot and
|
||
|
the rest--but I said I would by and by; no hurry yet, and too much
|
||
|
government machinery to oil up and set to rights and start a-going.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had one tournament which was continued from day to day during
|
||
|
more than a week, and as many as five hundred knights took part
|
||
|
in it, from first to last. They were weeks gathering. They came
|
||
|
on horseback from everywhere; from the very ends of the country,
|
||
|
and even from beyond the sea; and many brought ladies, and all
|
||
|
brought squires and troops of servants. It was a most gaudy and
|
||
|
gorgeous crowd, as to costumery, and very characteristic of the
|
||
|
country and the time, in the way of high animal spirits, innocent
|
||
|
indecencies of language, and happy-hearted indifference to morals.
|
||
|
It was fight or look on, all day and every day; and sing, gamble,
|
||
|
dance, carouse half the night every night. They had a most noble
|
||
|
good time. You never saw such people. Those banks of beautiful
|
||
|
ladies, shining in their barbaric splendors, would see a knight
|
||
|
sprawl from his horse in the lists with a lanceshaft the thickness
|
||
|
of your ankle clean through him and the blood spouting, and instead
|
||
|
of fainting they would clap their hands and crowd each other for a
|
||
|
better view; only sometimes one would dive into her handkerchief,
|
||
|
and look ostentatiously broken-hearted, and then you could lay
|
||
|
two to one that there was a scandal there somewhere and she was
|
||
|
afraid the public hadn't found it out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The noise at night would have been annoying to me ordinarily, but
|
||
|
I didn't mind it in the present circumstances, because it kept me
|
||
|
from hearing the quacks detaching legs and arms from the day's
|
||
|
cripples. They ruined an uncommon good old cross-cut saw for me,
|
||
|
and broke the saw-buck, too, but I let it pass. And as for my
|
||
|
axe--well, I made up my mind that the next time I lent an axe
|
||
|
to a surgeon I would pick my century.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I not only watched this tournament from day to day, but detailed
|
||
|
an intelligent priest from my Department of Public Morals and
|
||
|
Agriculture, and ordered him to report it; for it was my purpose
|
||
|
by and by, when I should have gotten the people along far enough,
|
||
|
to start a newspaper. The first thing you want in a new country,
|
||
|
is a patent office; then work up your school system; and after that,
|
||
|
out with your paper. A newspaper has its faults, and plenty of them,
|
||
|
but no matter, it's hark from the tomb for a dead nation, and don't
|
||
|
you forget it. You can't resurrect a dead nation without it; there
|
||
|
isn't any way. So I wanted to sample things, and be finding out
|
||
|
what sort of reporter-material I might be able to rake together out
|
||
|
of the sixth century when I should come to need it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, the priest did very well, considering. He got in all
|
||
|
the details, and that is a good thing in a local item: you see,
|
||
|
he had kept books for the undertaker-department of his church
|
||
|
when he was younger, and there, you know, the money's in the details;
|
||
|
the more details, the more swag: bearers, mutes, candles, prayers
|
||
|
--everything counts; and if the bereaved don't buy prayers enough
|
||
|
you mark up your candles with a forked pencil, and your bill
|
||
|
shows up all right. And he had a good knack at getting in the
|
||
|
complimentary thing here and there about a knight that was likely
|
||
|
to advertise--no, I mean a knight that had influence; and he also
|
||
|
had a neat gift of exaggeration, for in his time he had kept door
|
||
|
for a pious hermit who lived in a sty and worked miracles.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course this novice's report lacked whoop and crash and lurid
|
||
|
description, and therefore wanted the true ring; but its antique
|
||
|
wording was quaint and sweet and simple, and full of the fragrances
|
||
|
and flavors of the time, and these little merits made up in a measure
|
||
|
for its more important lacks. Here is an extract from it:
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then Sir Brian de les Isles and Grummore Grummorsum,
|
||
|
knights of the castle, encountered with Sir Aglovale and
|
||
|
Sir Tor, and Sir Tor smote down Sir Grummore Grummorsum
|
||
|
to the earth. Then came Sir Carados of the dolorous
|
||
|
tower, and Sir Turquine, knights of the castle, and
|
||
|
there encountered with them Sir Percivale de Galis
|
||
|
and Sir Lamorak de Galis, that were two brethren, and
|
||
|
there encountered Sir Percivale with Sir Carados, and
|
||
|
either brake their spears unto their hands, and then
|
||
|
Sir Turquine with Sir Lamorak, and either of them smote
|
||
|
down other, horse and all, to the earth, and either
|
||
|
parties rescued other and horsed them again. And Sir
|
||
|
Arnold, and Sir Gauter, knights of the castle,
|
||
|
encountered with Sir Brandiles and Sir Kay, and these
|
||
|
four knights encountered mightily, and brake their
|
||
|
spears to their hands. Then came Sir Pertolope from
|
||
|
the castle, and there encountered with him Sir Lionel,
|
||
|
and there Sir Pertolope the green knight smote down Sir
|
||
|
Lionel, brother to Sir Launcelot. All this was marked
|
||
|
by noble heralds, who bare him best, and their names.
|
||
|
Then Sir Bleobaris brake his spear upon Sir Gareth,
|
||
|
but of that stroke Sir Bleobaris fell to the earth.
|
||
|
When Sir Galihodin saw that, he bad Sir Gareth keep him,
|
||
|
and Sir Gareth smote him to the earth. Then Sir Galihud
|
||
|
gat a spear to avenge his brother, and in the same wise
|
||
|
Sir Gareth served him, and Sir Dinadan and his brother
|
||
|
La Cote Male Taile, and Sir Sagramore le Disirous, and
|
||
|
Sir Dodinas le Savage; all these he bare down with one
|
||
|
spear. When King Aswisance of Ireland saw Sir Gareth
|
||
|
fare so he marvelled what he might be, that one time
|
||
|
seemed green, and another time, at his again coming,
|
||
|
he seemed blue. And thus at every course that he rode
|
||
|
to and fro he changed his color, so that there might
|
||
|
neither king nor knight have ready cognizance of him.
|
||
|
Then Sir Agwisance the King of Ireland encountered
|
||
|
with Sir Gareth, and there Sir Gareth smote him from
|
||
|
his horse, saddle and all. And then came King Carados
|
||
|
of Scotland, and Sir Gareth smote him down horse and
|
||
|
man. And in the same wise he served King Uriens of the
|
||
|
land of Gore. And then there came in Sir Bagdemagus,
|
||
|
and Sir Gareth smote him down horse and man to the
|
||
|
earth. And Bagdemagus's son Meliganus brake a spear
|
||
|
upon Sir Gareth mightily and knightly. And then Sir
|
||
|
Galahault the noble prince cried on high, Knight with
|
||
|
the many colors, well hast thou justed; now make thee
|
||
|
ready that I may just with thee. Sir Gareth heard him,
|
||
|
and he gat a great spear, and so they encountered
|
||
|
together, and there the prince brake his spear; but Sir
|
||
|
Gareth smote him upon the left side of the helm, that
|
||
|
he reeled here and there, and he had fallen down had not
|
||
|
his men recovered him. Truly, said King Arthur, that
|
||
|
knight with the many colors is a good knight. Wherefore
|
||
|
the king called unto him Sir Launcelot, and prayed him
|
||
|
to encounter with that knight. Sir, said Launcelot, I
|
||
|
may as well find in my heart for to forbear him at
|
||
|
this time, for he hath had travail enough this day, and
|
||
|
when a good knight doth so well upon some day, it is
|
||
|
no good knight's part to let him of his worship, and,
|
||
|
namely, when he seeth a knight hath done so great
|
||
|
labour; for peradventure, said Sir Launcelot, his
|
||
|
quarrel is here this day, and peradventure he is best
|
||
|
beloved with this lady of all that be here, for I see
|
||
|
well he paineth himself and enforceth him to do great
|
||
|
deeds, and therefore, said Sir Launcelot, as for me,
|
||
|
this day he shall have the honour; though it lay in my
|
||
|
power to put him from it, I would not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was an unpleasant little episode that day, which for reasons
|
||
|
of state I struck out of my priest's report. You will have noticed
|
||
|
that Garry was doing some great fighting in the engagement. When
|
||
|
I say Garry I mean Sir Gareth. Garry was my private pet name
|
||
|
for him; it suggests that I had a deep affection for him, and that
|
||
|
was the case. But it was a private pet name only, and never spoken
|
||
|
aloud to any one, much less to him; being a noble, he would not
|
||
|
have endured a familiarity like that from me. Well, to proceed:
|
||
|
I sat in the private box set apart for me as the king's minister.
|
||
|
While Sir Dinadan was waiting for his turn to enter the lists,
|
||
|
he came in there and sat down and began to talk; for he was always
|
||
|
making up to me, because I was a stranger and he liked to have
|
||
|
a fresh market for his jokes, the most of them having reached that
|
||
|
stage of wear where the teller has to do the laughing himself while
|
||
|
the other person looks sick. I had always responded to his efforts
|
||
|
as well as I could, and felt a very deep and real kindness for him,
|
||
|
too, for the reason that if by malice of fate he knew the one
|
||
|
particular anecdote which I had heard oftenest and had most hated
|
||
|
and most loathed all my life, he had at least spared it me. It was
|
||
|
one which I had heard attributed to every humorous person who
|
||
|
had ever stood on American soil, from Columbus down to Artemus Ward.
|
||
|
It was about a humorous lecturer who flooded an ignorant audience
|
||
|
with the killingest jokes for an hour and never got a laugh; and
|
||
|
then when he was leaving, some gray simpletons wrung him gratefully
|
||
|
by the hand and said it had been the funniest thing they had ever
|
||
|
heard, and "it was all they could do to keep from laughin' right
|
||
|
out in meetin'." That anecdote never saw the day that it was
|
||
|
worth the telling; and yet I had sat under the telling of it
|
||
|
hundreds and thousands and millions and billions of times, and
|
||
|
cried and cursed all the way through. Then who can hope to know
|
||
|
what my feelings were, to hear this armor-plated ass start in on
|
||
|
it again, in the murky twilight of tradition, before the dawn of
|
||
|
history, while even Lactantius might be referred to as "the late
|
||
|
Lactantius," and the Crusades wouldn't be born for five hundred
|
||
|
years yet? Just as he finished, the call-boy came; so, haw-hawing
|
||
|
like a demon, he went rattling and clanking out like a crate of
|
||
|
loose castings, and I knew nothing more. It was some minutes
|
||
|
before I came to, and then I opened my eyes just in time to see
|
||
|
Sir Gareth fetch him an awful welt, and I unconsciously out with
|
||
|
the prayer, "I hope to gracious he's killed!" But by ill-luck,
|
||
|
before I had got half through with the words, Sir Gareth crashed
|
||
|
into Sir Sagramor le Desirous and sent him thundering over his
|
||
|
horse's crupper, and Sir Sagramor caught my remark and thought
|
||
|
I meant it for _him_.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, whenever one of those people got a thing into his head,
|
||
|
there was no getting it out again. I knew that, so I saved my
|
||
|
breath, and offered no explanations. As soon as Sir Sagramor
|
||
|
got well, he notified me that there was a little account to settle
|
||
|
between us, and he named a day three or four years in the future;
|
||
|
place of settlement, the lists where the offense had been given.
|
||
|
I said I would be ready when he got back. You see, he was going
|
||
|
for the Holy Grail. The boys all took a flier at the Holy Grail
|
||
|
now and then. It was a several years' cruise. They always put in
|
||
|
the long absence snooping around, in the most conscientious way,
|
||
|
though none of them had any idea where the Holy Grail really was,
|
||
|
and I don't think any of them actually expected to find it, or
|
||
|
would have known what to do with it if he _had_ run across it.
|
||
|
You see, it was just the Northwest Passage of that day, as you may
|
||
|
say; that was all. Every year expeditions went out holy grailing,
|
||
|
and next year relief expeditions went out to hunt for _them_. There
|
||
|
was worlds of reputation in it, but no money. Why, they actually
|
||
|
wanted _me_ to put in! Well, I should smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER X
|
||
|
|
||
|
BEGINNINGS OF CIVILIZATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Round Table soon heard of the challenge, and of course it was
|
||
|
a good deal discussed, for such things interested the boys.
|
||
|
The king thought I ought now to set forth in quest of adventures,
|
||
|
so that I might gain renown and be the more worthy to meet
|
||
|
Sir Sagramor when the several years should have rolled away.
|
||
|
I excused myself for the present; I said it would take me three
|
||
|
or four years yet to get things well fixed up and going smoothly;
|
||
|
then I should be ready; all the chances were that at the end of
|
||
|
that time Sir Sagramor would still be out grailing, so no valuable
|
||
|
time would be lost by the postponement; I should then have been
|
||
|
in office six or seven years, and I believed my system and machinery
|
||
|
would be so well developed that I could take a holiday without
|
||
|
its working any harm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was pretty well satisfied with what I had already accomplished.
|
||
|
In various quiet nooks and corners I had the beginnings of all
|
||
|
sorts of industries under way--nuclei of future vast factories,
|
||
|
the iron and steel missionaries of my future civilization. In these
|
||
|
were gathered together the brightest young minds I could find,
|
||
|
and I kept agents out raking the country for more, all the time.
|
||
|
I was training a crowd of ignorant folk into experts--experts
|
||
|
in every sort of handiwork and scientific calling. These nurseries
|
||
|
of mine went smoothly and privately along undisturbed in their
|
||
|
obscure country retreats, for nobody was allowed to come into their
|
||
|
precincts without a special permit--for I was afraid of the Church.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had started a teacher-factory and a lot of Sunday-schools the
|
||
|
first thing; as a result, I now had an admirable system of graded
|
||
|
schools in full blast in those places, and also a complete variety
|
||
|
of Protestant congregations all in a prosperous and growing
|
||
|
condition. Everybody could be any kind of a Christian he wanted
|
||
|
to; there was perfect freedom in that matter. But I confined public
|
||
|
religious teaching to the churches and the Sunday-schools, permitting
|
||
|
nothing of it in my other educational buildings. I could have
|
||
|
given my own sect the preference and made everybody a Presbyterian
|
||
|
without any trouble, but that would have been to affront a law
|
||
|
of human nature: spiritual wants and instincts are as various in
|
||
|
the human family as are physical appetites, complexions, and
|
||
|
features, and a man is only at his best, morally, when he is
|
||
|
equipped with the religious garment whose color and shape and
|
||
|
size most nicely accommodate themselves to the spiritual complexion,
|
||
|
angularities, and stature of the individual who wears it; and,
|
||
|
besides, I was afraid of a united Church; it makes a mighty power,
|
||
|
the mightiest conceivable, and then when it by and by gets into
|
||
|
selfish hands, as it is always bound to do, it means death to
|
||
|
human liberty and paralysis to human thought.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All mines were royal property, and there were a good many of them.
|
||
|
They had formerly been worked as savages always work mines--holes
|
||
|
grubbed in the earth and the mineral brought up in sacks of hide by
|
||
|
hand, at the rate of a ton a day; but I had begun to put the mining
|
||
|
on a scientific basis as early as I could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, I had made pretty handsome progress when Sir Sagramor's
|
||
|
challenge struck me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Four years rolled by--and then! Well, you would never imagine
|
||
|
it in the world. Unlimited power is the ideal thing when it is in
|
||
|
safe hands. The despotism of heaven is the one absolutely perfect
|
||
|
government. An earthly despotism would be the absolutely perfect
|
||
|
earthly government, if the conditions were the same, namely, the
|
||
|
despot the perfectest individual of the human race, and his lease
|
||
|
of life perpetual. But as a perishable perfect man must die, and
|
||
|
leave his despotism in the hands of an imperfect successor, an
|
||
|
earthly despotism is not merely a bad form of government, it is
|
||
|
the worst form that is possible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My works showed what a despot could do with the resources of
|
||
|
a kingdom at his command. Unsuspected by this dark land, I had
|
||
|
the civilization of the nineteenth century booming under its very
|
||
|
nose! It was fenced away from the public view, but there it was,
|
||
|
a gigantic and unassailable fact--and to be heard from, yet, if
|
||
|
I lived and had luck. There it was, as sure a fact and as substantial
|
||
|
a fact as any serene volcano, standing innocent with its smokeless
|
||
|
summit in the blue sky and giving no sign of the rising hell in its
|
||
|
bowels. My schools and churches were children four years before;
|
||
|
they were grown-up now; my shops of that day were vast factories
|
||
|
now; where I had a dozen trained men then, I had a thousand now;
|
||
|
where I had one brilliant expert then, I had fifty now. I stood
|
||
|
with my hand on the cock, so to speak, ready to turn it on and
|
||
|
flood the midnight world with light at any moment. But I was not
|
||
|
going to do the thing in that sudden way. It was not my policy.
|
||
|
The people could not have stood it; and, moreover, I should have
|
||
|
had the Established Roman Catholic Church on my back in a minute.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No, I had been going cautiously all the while. I had had confidential
|
||
|
agents trickling through the country some time, whose office was
|
||
|
to undermine knighthood by imperceptible degrees, and to gnaw
|
||
|
a little at this and that and the other superstition, and so prepare
|
||
|
the way gradually for a better order of things. I was turning on
|
||
|
my light one-candle-power at a time, and meant to continue to do so.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had scattered some branch schools secretly about the kingdom,
|
||
|
and they were doing very well. I meant to work this racket more
|
||
|
and more, as time wore on, if nothing occurred to frighten me.
|
||
|
One of my deepest secrets was my West Point--my military academy.
|
||
|
I kept that most jealously out of sight; and I did the same with my
|
||
|
naval academy which I had established at a remote seaport. Both
|
||
|
were prospering to my satisfaction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Clarence was twenty-two now, and was my head executive, my right
|
||
|
hand. He was a darling; he was equal to anything; there wasn't
|
||
|
anything he couldn't turn his hand to. Of late I had been training
|
||
|
him for journalism, for the time seemed about right for a start
|
||
|
in the newspaper line; nothing big, but just a small weekly for
|
||
|
experimental circulation in my civilization-nurseries. He took
|
||
|
to it like a duck; there was an editor concealed in him, sure.
|
||
|
Already he had doubled himself in one way; he talked sixth century
|
||
|
and wrote nineteenth. His journalistic style was climbing,
|
||
|
steadily; it was already up to the back settlement Alabama mark,
|
||
|
and couldn't be told from the editorial output of that region
|
||
|
either by matter or flavor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had another large departure on hand, too. This was a telegraph
|
||
|
and a telephone; our first venture in this line. These wires were
|
||
|
for private service only, as yet, and must be kept private until
|
||
|
a riper day should come. We had a gang of men on the road, working
|
||
|
mainly by night. They were stringing ground wires; we were afraid
|
||
|
to put up poles, for they would attract too much inquiry. Ground
|
||
|
wires were good enough, in both instances, for my wires were
|
||
|
protected by an insulation of my own invention which was perfect.
|
||
|
My men had orders to strike across country, avoiding roads, and
|
||
|
establishing connection with any considerable towns whose lights
|
||
|
betrayed their presence, and leaving experts in charge. Nobody
|
||
|
could tell you how to find any place in the kingdom, for nobody
|
||
|
ever went intentionally to any place, but only struck it by
|
||
|
accident in his wanderings, and then generally left it without
|
||
|
thinking to inquire what its name was. At one time and another
|
||
|
we had sent out topographical expeditions to survey and map the
|
||
|
kingdom, but the priests had always interfered and raised trouble.
|
||
|
So we had given the thing up, for the present; it would be poor
|
||
|
wisdom to antagonize the Church.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for the general condition of the country, it was as it had been
|
||
|
when I arrived in it, to all intents and purposes. I had made
|
||
|
changes, but they were necessarily slight, and they were not
|
||
|
noticeable. Thus far, I had not even meddled with taxation,
|
||
|
outside of the taxes which provided the royal revenues. I had
|
||
|
systematized those, and put the service on an effective and
|
||
|
righteous basis. As a result, these revenues were already quadrupled,
|
||
|
and yet the burden was so much more equably distributed than
|
||
|
before, that all the kingdom felt a sense of relief, and the praises
|
||
|
of my administration were hearty and general.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Personally, I struck an interruption, now, but I did not mind it,
|
||
|
it could not have happened at a better time. Earlier it could
|
||
|
have annoyed me, but now everything was in good hands and swimming
|
||
|
right along. The king had reminded me several times, of late, that
|
||
|
the postponement I had asked for, four years before, had about
|
||
|
run out now. It was a hint that I ought to be starting out to seek
|
||
|
adventures and get up a reputation of a size to make me worthy
|
||
|
of the honor of breaking a lance with Sir Sagramor, who was still
|
||
|
out grailing, but was being hunted for by various relief expeditions,
|
||
|
and might be found any year, now. So you see I was expecting
|
||
|
this interruption; it did not take me by surprise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE YANKEE IN SEARCH OF ADVENTURES
|
||
|
|
||
|
There never was such a country for wandering liars; and they were
|
||
|
of both sexes. Hardly a month went by without one of these tramps
|
||
|
arriving; and generally loaded with a tale about some princess or
|
||
|
other wanting help to get her out of some far-away castle where
|
||
|
she was held in captivity by a lawless scoundrel, usually a giant.
|
||
|
Now you would think that the first thing the king would do after
|
||
|
listening to such a novelette from an entire stranger, would be
|
||
|
to ask for credentials--yes, and a pointer or two as to locality
|
||
|
of castle, best route to it, and so on. But nobody ever thought
|
||
|
of so simple and common-sense a thing at that. No, everybody
|
||
|
swallowed these people's lies whole, and never asked a question
|
||
|
of any sort or about anything. Well, one day when I was not
|
||
|
around, one of these people came along--it was a she one, this
|
||
|
time--and told a tale of the usual pattern. Her mistress was
|
||
|
a captive in a vast and gloomy castle, along with forty-four other
|
||
|
young and beautiful girls, pretty much all of them princesses;
|
||
|
they had been languishing in that cruel captivity for twenty-six
|
||
|
years; the masters of the castle were three stupendous brothers,
|
||
|
each with four arms and one eye--the eye in the center of the
|
||
|
forehead, and as big as a fruit. Sort of fruit not mentioned;
|
||
|
their usual slovenliness in statistics.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Would you believe it? The king and the whole Round Table were
|
||
|
in raptures over this preposterous opportunity for adventure.
|
||
|
Every knight of the Table jumped for the chance, and begged for it;
|
||
|
but to their vexation and chagrin the king conferred it upon me,
|
||
|
who had not asked for it at all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By an effort, I contained my joy when Clarence brought me the news.
|
||
|
But he--he could not contain his. His mouth gushed delight and
|
||
|
gratitude in a steady discharge--delight in my good fortune,
|
||
|
gratitude to the king for this splendid mark of his favor for me.
|
||
|
He could keep neither his legs nor his body still, but pirouetted
|
||
|
about the place in an airy ecstasy of happiness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On my side, I could have cursed the kindness that conferred upon
|
||
|
me this benefaction, but I kept my vexation under the surface
|
||
|
for policy's sake, and did what I could to let on to be glad.
|
||
|
Indeed, I _said_ I was glad. And in a way it was true; I was as
|
||
|
glad as a person is when he is scalped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, one must make the best of things, and not waste time with
|
||
|
useless fretting, but get down to business and see what can be
|
||
|
done. In all lies there is wheat among the chaff; I must get at
|
||
|
the wheat in this case: so I sent for the girl and she came. She
|
||
|
was a comely enough creature, and soft and modest, but, if signs
|
||
|
went for anything, she didn't know as much as a lady's watch. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear, have you been questioned as to particulars?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She said she hadn't.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I didn't expect you had, but I thought I would ask, to make
|
||
|
sure; it's the way I've been raised. Now you mustn't take it
|
||
|
unkindly if I remind you that as we don't know you, we must go
|
||
|
a little slow. You may be all right, of course, and we'll hope
|
||
|
that you are; but to take it for granted isn't business. _You_
|
||
|
understand that. I'm obliged to ask you a few questions; just
|
||
|
answer up fair and square, and don't be afraid. Where do you
|
||
|
live, when you are at home?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the land of Moder, fair sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Land of Moder. I don't remember hearing of it before.
|
||
|
Parents living?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As to that, I know not if they be yet on live, sith it is many
|
||
|
years that I have lain shut up in the castle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your name, please?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hight the Demoiselle Alisande la Carteloise, an it please you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you know anybody here who can identify you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That were not likely, fair lord, I being come hither now for
|
||
|
the first time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have you brought any letters--any documents--any proofs that
|
||
|
you are trustworthy and truthful?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of a surety, no; and wherefore should I? Have I not a tongue,
|
||
|
and cannot I say all that myself?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But _your_ saying it, you know, and somebody else's saying it,
|
||
|
is different."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Different? How might that be? I fear me I do not understand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Don't _understand_? Land of--why, you see--you see--why, great Scott,
|
||
|
can't you understand a little thing like that? Can't you understand
|
||
|
the difference between your--_why_ do you look so innocent and idiotic!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I? In truth I know not, but an it were the will of God."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, yes, I reckon that's about the size of it. Don't mind my
|
||
|
seeming excited; I'm not. Let us change the subject. Now as
|
||
|
to this castle, with forty-five princesses in it, and three ogres
|
||
|
at the head of it, tell me--where is this harem?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Harem?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The _castle_, you understand; where is the castle?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, as to that, it is great, and strong, and well beseen, and
|
||
|
lieth in a far country. Yes, it is many leagues."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_How_ many?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, fair sir, it were woundily hard to tell, they are so many,
|
||
|
and do so lap the one upon the other, and being made all in the
|
||
|
same image and tincted with the same color, one may not know
|
||
|
the one league from its fellow, nor how to count them except
|
||
|
they be taken apart, and ye wit well it were God's work to do
|
||
|
that, being not within man's capacity; for ye will note--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hold on, hold on, never mind about the distance; _whereabouts_
|
||
|
does the castle lie? What's the direction from here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, please you sir, it hath no direction from here; by reason
|
||
|
that the road lieth not straight, but turneth evermore; wherefore
|
||
|
the direction of its place abideth not, but is some time under
|
||
|
the one sky and anon under another, whereso if ye be minded that
|
||
|
it is in the east, and wend thitherward, ye shall observe that
|
||
|
the way of the road doth yet again turn upon itself by the space
|
||
|
of half a circle, and this marvel happing again and yet again and
|
||
|
still again, it will grieve you that you had thought by vanities
|
||
|
of the mind to thwart and bring to naught the will of Him that
|
||
|
giveth not a castle a direction from a place except it pleaseth
|
||
|
Him, and if it please Him not, will the rather that even all castles
|
||
|
and all directions thereunto vanish out of the earth, leaving the
|
||
|
places wherein they tarried desolate and vacant, so warning His
|
||
|
creatures that where He will He will, and where He will not He--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, that's all right, that's all right, give us a rest; never mind
|
||
|
about the direction, _hang_ the direction--I beg pardon, I beg
|
||
|
a thousand pardons, I am not well to-day; pay no attention when
|
||
|
I soliloquize, it is an old habit, an old, bad habit, and hard
|
||
|
to get rid of when one's digestion is all disordered with eating
|
||
|
food that was raised forever and ever before he was born; good
|
||
|
land! a man can't keep his functions regular on spring chickens
|
||
|
thirteen hundred years old. But come--never mind about that;
|
||
|
let's--have you got such a thing as a map of that region about
|
||
|
you? Now a good map--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it peradventure that manner of thing which of late the unbelievers
|
||
|
have brought from over the great seas, which, being boiled in oil,
|
||
|
and an onion and salt added thereto, doth--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, a map? What are you talking about? Don't you know what
|
||
|
a map is? There, there, never mind, don't explain, I hate
|
||
|
explanations; they fog a thing up so that you can't tell anything
|
||
|
about it. Run along, dear; good-day; show her the way, Clarence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Oh, well, it was reasonably plain, now, why these donkeys didn't
|
||
|
prospect these liars for details. It may be that this girl had
|
||
|
a fact in her somewhere, but I don't believe you could have sluiced
|
||
|
it out with a hydraulic; nor got it with the earlier forms of
|
||
|
blasting, even; it was a case for dynamite. Why, she was a perfect
|
||
|
ass; and yet the king and his knights had listened to her as if
|
||
|
she had been a leaf out of the gospel. It kind of sizes up the
|
||
|
whole party. And think of the simple ways of this court: this
|
||
|
wandering wench hadn't any more trouble to get access to the king
|
||
|
in his palace than she would have had to get into the poorhouse
|
||
|
in my day and country. In fact, he was glad to see her, glad
|
||
|
to hear her tale; with that adventure of hers to offer, she was
|
||
|
as welcome as a corpse is to a coroner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just as I was ending-up these reflections, Clarence came back.
|
||
|
I remarked upon the barren result of my efforts with the girl;
|
||
|
hadn't got hold of a single point that could help me to find
|
||
|
the castle. The youth looked a little surprised, or puzzled,
|
||
|
or something, and intimated that he had been wondering to himself
|
||
|
what I had wanted to ask the girl all those questions for.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, great guns," I said, "don't I want to find the castle? And
|
||
|
how else would I go about it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"La, sweet your worship, one may lightly answer that, I ween.
|
||
|
She will go with thee. They always do. She will ride with thee."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ride with me? Nonsense!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But of a truth she will. She will ride with thee. Thou shalt see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What? She browse around the hills and scour the woods with me
|
||
|
--alone--and I as good as engaged to be married? Why, it's scandalous.
|
||
|
Think how it would look."
|
||
|
|
||
|
My, the dear face that rose before me! The boy was eager to know
|
||
|
all about this tender matter. I swore him to secrecy and then
|
||
|
whispered her name--"Puss Flanagan." He looked disappointed,
|
||
|
and said he didn't remember the countess. How natural it was for
|
||
|
the little courtier to give her a rank. He asked me where she lived.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In East Har--" I came to myself and stopped, a little confused;
|
||
|
then I said, "Never mind, now; I'll tell you some time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And might he see her? Would I let him see her some day?
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was but a little thing to promise--thirteen hundred years
|
||
|
or so--and he so eager; so I said Yes. But I sighed; I couldn't
|
||
|
help it. And yet there was no sense in sighing, for she wasn't
|
||
|
born yet. But that is the way we are made: we don't reason,
|
||
|
where we feel; we just feel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My expedition was all the talk that day and that night, and the
|
||
|
boys were very good to me, and made much of me, and seemed to have
|
||
|
forgotten their vexation and disappointment, and come to be as
|
||
|
anxious for me to hive those ogres and set those ripe old virgins
|
||
|
loose as if it were themselves that had the contract. Well, they
|
||
|
_were_ good children--but just children, that is all. And they
|
||
|
gave me no end of points about how to scout for giants, and how
|
||
|
to scoop them in; and they told me all sorts of charms against
|
||
|
enchantments, and gave me salves and other rubbish to put on my
|
||
|
wounds. But it never occurred to one of them to reflect that if
|
||
|
I was such a wonderful necromancer as I was pretending to be,
|
||
|
I ought not to need salves or instructions, or charms against
|
||
|
enchantments, and, least of all, arms and armor, on a foray of any
|
||
|
kind--even against fire-spouting dragons, and devils hot from
|
||
|
perdition, let alone such poor adversaries as these I was after,
|
||
|
these commonplace ogres of the back settlements.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was to have an early breakfast, and start at dawn, for that was
|
||
|
the usual way; but I had the demon's own time with my armor,
|
||
|
and this delayed me a little. It is troublesome to get into, and
|
||
|
there is so much detail. First you wrap a layer or two of blanket
|
||
|
around your body, for a sort of cushion and to keep off the cold
|
||
|
iron; then you put on your sleeves and shirt of chain mail--these
|
||
|
are made of small steel links woven together, and they form a fabric
|
||
|
so flexible that if you toss your shirt onto the floor, it slumps
|
||
|
into a pile like a peck of wet fish-net; it is very heavy and
|
||
|
is nearly the uncomfortablest material in the world for a night
|
||
|
shirt, yet plenty used it for that--tax collectors, and reformers,
|
||
|
and one-horse kings with a defective title, and those sorts of
|
||
|
people; then you put on your shoes--flat-boats roofed over with
|
||
|
interleaving bands of steel--and screw your clumsy spurs into
|
||
|
the heels. Next you buckle your greaves on your legs, and your
|
||
|
cuisses on your thighs; then come your backplate and your breastplate,
|
||
|
and you begin to feel crowded; then you hitch onto the breastplate
|
||
|
the half-petticoat of broad overlapping bands of steel which hangs
|
||
|
down in front but is scolloped out behind so you can sit down,
|
||
|
and isn't any real improvement on an inverted coal scuttle, either
|
||
|
for looks or for wear, or to wipe your hands on; next you belt
|
||
|
on your sword; then you put your stove-pipe joints onto your arms,
|
||
|
your iron gauntlets onto your hands, your iron rat-trap onto your
|
||
|
head, with a rag of steel web hitched onto it to hang over the back
|
||
|
of your neck--and there you are, snug as a candle in a candle-mould.
|
||
|
This is no time to dance. Well, a man that is packed away like
|
||
|
that is a nut that isn't worth the cracking, there is so little of
|
||
|
the meat, when you get down to it, by comparison with the shell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The boys helped me, or I never could have got in. Just as we
|
||
|
finished, Sir Bedivere happened in, and I saw that as like as not
|
||
|
I hadn't chosen the most convenient outfit for a long trip. How
|
||
|
stately he looked; and tall and broad and grand. He had on his
|
||
|
head a conical steel casque that only came down to his ears, and
|
||
|
for visor had only a narrow steel bar that extended down to his
|
||
|
upper lip and protected his nose; and all the rest of him, from
|
||
|
neck to heel, was flexible chain mail, trousers and all. But
|
||
|
pretty much all of him was hidden under his outside garment, which
|
||
|
of course was of chain mail, as I said, and hung straight from his
|
||
|
shoulders to his ankles; and from his middle to the bottom, both
|
||
|
before and behind, was divided, so that he could ride and let the
|
||
|
skirts hang down on each side. He was going grailing, and it was
|
||
|
just the outfit for it, too. I would have given a good deal for
|
||
|
that ulster, but it was too late now to be fooling around. The sun
|
||
|
was just up, the king and the court were all on hand to see me off
|
||
|
and wish me luck; so it wouldn't be etiquette for me to tarry.
|
||
|
You don't get on your horse yourself; no, if you tried it you
|
||
|
would get disappointed. They carry you out, just as they carry
|
||
|
a sun-struck man to the drug store, and put you on, and help get
|
||
|
you to rights, and fix your feet in the stirrups; and all the while
|
||
|
you do feel so strange and stuffy and like somebody else--like
|
||
|
somebody that has been married on a sudden, or struck by lightning,
|
||
|
or something like that, and hasn't quite fetched around yet, and
|
||
|
is sort of numb, and can't just get his bearings. Then they
|
||
|
stood up the mast they called a spear, in its socket by my left
|
||
|
foot, and I gripped it with my hand; lastly they hung my shield
|
||
|
around my neck, and I was all complete and ready to up anchor
|
||
|
and get to sea. Everybody was as good to me as they could be,
|
||
|
and a maid of honor gave me the stirrup-cup her own self. There was
|
||
|
nothing more to do now, but for that damsel to get up behind me on
|
||
|
a pillion, which she did, and put an arm or so around me to hold on.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so we started, and everybody gave us a goodbye and waved their
|
||
|
handkerchiefs or helmets. And everybody we met, going down the hill
|
||
|
and through the village was respectful to us, except some shabby
|
||
|
little boys on the outskirts. They said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, what a guy!" And hove clods at us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In my experience boys are the same in all ages. They don't respect
|
||
|
anything, they don't care for anything or anybody. They say
|
||
|
"Go up, baldhead" to the prophet going his unoffending way in
|
||
|
the gray of antiquity; they sass me in the holy gloom of the
|
||
|
Middle Ages; and I had seen them act the same way in Buchanan's
|
||
|
administration; I remember, because I was there and helped. The
|
||
|
prophet had his bears and settled with his boys; and I wanted
|
||
|
to get down and settle with mine, but it wouldn't answer, because
|
||
|
I couldn't have got up again. I hate a country without a derrick.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XII
|
||
|
|
||
|
SLOW TORTURE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Straight off, we were in the country. It was most lovely and
|
||
|
pleasant in those sylvan solitudes in the early cool morning
|
||
|
in the first freshness of autumn. From hilltops we saw fair
|
||
|
green valleys lying spread out below, with streams winding through
|
||
|
them, and island groves of trees here and there, and huge lonely
|
||
|
oaks scattered about and casting black blots of shade; and beyond
|
||
|
the valleys we saw the ranges of hills, blue with haze, stretching
|
||
|
away in billowy perspective to the horizon, with at wide intervals
|
||
|
a dim fleck of white or gray on a wave-summit, which we knew was
|
||
|
a castle. We crossed broad natural lawns sparkling with dew,
|
||
|
and we moved like spirits, the cushioned turf giving out no sound
|
||
|
of footfall; we dreamed along through glades in a mist of green
|
||
|
light that got its tint from the sun-drenched roof of leaves
|
||
|
overhead, and by our feet the clearest and coldest of runlets
|
||
|
went frisking and gossiping over its reefs and making a sort of
|
||
|
whispering music, comfortable to hear; and at times we left the
|
||
|
world behind and entered into the solemn great deeps and rich
|
||
|
gloom of the forest, where furtive wild things whisked and scurried
|
||
|
by and were gone before you could even get your eye on the place
|
||
|
where the noise was; and where only the earliest birds were turning
|
||
|
out and getting to business with a song here and a quarrel yonder
|
||
|
and a mysterious far-off hammering and drumming for worms on
|
||
|
a tree trunk away somewhere in the impenetrable remotenesses of
|
||
|
the woods. And by and by out we would swing again into the glare.
|
||
|
|
||
|
About the third or fourth or fifth time that we swung out into
|
||
|
the glare--it was along there somewhere, a couple of hours or so
|
||
|
after sun-up--it wasn't as pleasant as it had been. It was
|
||
|
beginning to get hot. This was quite noticeable. We had a very
|
||
|
long pull, after that, without any shade. Now it is curious how
|
||
|
progressively little frets grow and multiply after they once get
|
||
|
a start. Things which I didn't mind at all, at first, I began
|
||
|
to mind now--and more and more, too, all the time. The first
|
||
|
ten or fifteen times I wanted my handkerchief I didn't seem to care;
|
||
|
I got along, and said never mind, it isn't any matter, and dropped
|
||
|
it out of my mind. But now it was different; I wanted it all
|
||
|
the time; it was nag, nag, nag, right along, and no rest; I couldn't
|
||
|
get it out of my mind; and so at last I lost my temper and said
|
||
|
hang a man that would make a suit of armor without any pockets
|
||
|
in it. You see I had my handkerchief in my helmet; and some other
|
||
|
things; but it was that kind of a helmet that you can't take off
|
||
|
by yourself. That hadn't occurred to me when I put it there;
|
||
|
and in fact I didn't know it. I supposed it would be particularly
|
||
|
convenient there. And so now, the thought of its being there,
|
||
|
so handy and close by, and yet not get-at-able, made it all the
|
||
|
worse and the harder to bear. Yes, the thing that you can't get
|
||
|
is the thing that you want, mainly; every one has noticed that.
|
||
|
Well, it took my mind off from everything else; took it clear off,
|
||
|
and centered it in my helmet; and mile after mile, there it stayed,
|
||
|
imagining the handkerchief, picturing the handkerchief; and it
|
||
|
was bitter and aggravating to have the salt sweat keep trickling
|
||
|
down into my eyes, and I couldn't get at it. It seems like a little
|
||
|
thing, on paper, but it was not a little thing at all; it was
|
||
|
the most real kind of misery. I would not say it if it was not so.
|
||
|
I made up my mind that I would carry along a reticule next time,
|
||
|
let it look how it might, and people say what they would. Of course
|
||
|
these iron dudes of the Round Table would think it was scandalous,
|
||
|
and maybe raise Sheol about it, but as for me, give me comfort
|
||
|
first, and style afterwards. So we jogged along, and now and then
|
||
|
we struck a stretch of dust, and it would tumble up in clouds and
|
||
|
get into my nose and make me sneeze and cry; and of course I said
|
||
|
things I oughtn't to have said, I don't deny that. I am not
|
||
|
better than others.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We couldn't seem to meet anybody in this lonesome Britain, not
|
||
|
even an ogre; and, in the mood I was in then, it was well for
|
||
|
the ogre; that is, an ogre with a handkerchief. Most knights
|
||
|
would have thought of nothing but getting his armor; but so I got
|
||
|
his bandanna, he could keep his hardware, for all of me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Meantime, it was getting hotter and hotter in there. You see,
|
||
|
the sun was beating down and warming up the iron more and more
|
||
|
all the time. Well, when you are hot, that way, every little thing
|
||
|
irritates you. When I trotted, I rattled like a crate of dishes,
|
||
|
and that annoyed me; and moreover I couldn't seem to stand that
|
||
|
shield slatting and banging, now about my breast, now around my
|
||
|
back; and if I dropped into a walk my joints creaked and screeched
|
||
|
in that wearisome way that a wheelbarrow does, and as we didn't
|
||
|
create any breeze at that gait, I was like to get fried in that
|
||
|
stove; and besides, the quieter you went the heavier the iron
|
||
|
settled down on you and the more and more tons you seemed to weigh
|
||
|
every minute. And you had to be always changing hands, and passing
|
||
|
your spear over to the other foot, it got so irksome for one hand
|
||
|
to hold it long at a time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, you know, when you perspire that way, in rivers, there comes
|
||
|
a time when you--when you--well, when you itch. You are inside,
|
||
|
your hands are outside; so there you are; nothing but iron between.
|
||
|
It is not a light thing, let it sound as it may. First it is one
|
||
|
place; then another; then some more; and it goes on spreading and
|
||
|
spreading, and at last the territory is all occupied, and nobody
|
||
|
can imagine what you feel like, nor how unpleasant it is. And
|
||
|
when it had got to the worst, and it seemed to me that I could
|
||
|
not stand anything more, a fly got in through the bars and settled
|
||
|
on my nose, and the bars were stuck and wouldn't work, and I
|
||
|
couldn't get the visor up; and I could only shake my head, which
|
||
|
was baking hot by this time, and the fly--well, you know how a fly
|
||
|
acts when he has got a certainty--he only minded the shaking enough
|
||
|
to change from nose to lip, and lip to ear, and buzz and buzz
|
||
|
all around in there, and keep on lighting and biting, in a way
|
||
|
that a person, already so distressed as I was, simply could not
|
||
|
stand. So I gave in, and got Alisande to unship the helmet and
|
||
|
relieve me of it. Then she emptied the conveniences out of it
|
||
|
and fetched it full of water, and I drank and then stood up, and
|
||
|
she poured the rest down inside the armor. One cannot think how
|
||
|
refreshing it was. She continued to fetch and pour until I was
|
||
|
well soaked and thoroughly comfortable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was good to have a rest--and peace. But nothing is quite
|
||
|
perfect in this life, at any time. I had made a pipe a while back,
|
||
|
and also some pretty fair tobacco; not the real thing, but what
|
||
|
some of the Indians use: the inside bark of the willow, dried.
|
||
|
These comforts had been in the helmet, and now I had them again,
|
||
|
but no matches.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Gradually, as the time wore along, one annoying fact was borne in
|
||
|
upon my understanding--that we were weather-bound. An armed novice
|
||
|
cannot mount his horse without help and plenty of it. Sandy was
|
||
|
not enough; not enough for me, anyway. We had to wait until
|
||
|
somebody should come along. Waiting, in silence, would have been
|
||
|
agreeable enough, for I was full of matter for reflection, and
|
||
|
wanted to give it a chance to work. I wanted to try and think out
|
||
|
how it was that rational or even half-rational men could ever
|
||
|
have learned to wear armor, considering its inconveniences; and
|
||
|
how they had managed to keep up such a fashion for generations
|
||
|
when it was plain that what I had suffered to-day they had had
|
||
|
to suffer all the days of their lives. I wanted to think that out;
|
||
|
and moreover I wanted to think out some way to reform this evil
|
||
|
and persuade the people to let the foolish fashion die out; but
|
||
|
thinking was out of the question in the circumstances. You couldn't
|
||
|
think, where Sandy was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was a quite biddable creature and good-hearted, but she had
|
||
|
a flow of talk that was as steady as a mill, and made your head
|
||
|
sore like the drays and wagons in a city. If she had had a cork
|
||
|
she would have been a comfort. But you can't cork that kind;
|
||
|
they would die. Her clack was going all day, and you would think
|
||
|
something would surely happen to her works, by and by; but no,
|
||
|
they never got out of order; and she never had to slack up for
|
||
|
words. She could grind, and pump, and churn, and buzz by the week,
|
||
|
and never stop to oil up or blow out. And yet the result was just
|
||
|
nothing but wind. She never had any ideas, any more than a fog
|
||
|
has. She was a perfect blatherskite; I mean for jaw, jaw, jaw,
|
||
|
talk, talk, talk, jabber, jabber, jabber; but just as good as she
|
||
|
could be. I hadn't minded her mill that morning, on account of
|
||
|
having that hornets' nest of other troubles; but more than once
|
||
|
in the afternoon I had to say:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Take a rest, child; the way you are using up all the domestic air,
|
||
|
the kingdom will have to go to importing it by to-morrow, and it's
|
||
|
a low enough treasury without that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
FREEMEN
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, it is strange how little a while at a time a person can be
|
||
|
contented. Only a little while back, when I was riding and
|
||
|
suffering, what a heaven this peace, this rest, this sweet serenity
|
||
|
in this secluded shady nook by this purling stream would have
|
||
|
seemed, where I could keep perfectly comfortable all the time
|
||
|
by pouring a dipper of water into my armor now and then; yet
|
||
|
already I was getting dissatisfied; partly because I could not
|
||
|
light my pipe--for, although I had long ago started a match factory,
|
||
|
I had forgotten to bring matches with me--and partly because we
|
||
|
had nothing to eat. Here was another illustration of the childlike
|
||
|
improvidence of this age and people. A man in armor always trusted
|
||
|
to chance for his food on a journey, and would have been scandalized
|
||
|
at the idea of hanging a basket of sandwiches on his spear. There
|
||
|
was probably not a knight of all the Round Table combination who
|
||
|
would not rather have died than been caught carrying such a thing
|
||
|
as that on his flagstaff. And yet there could not be anything more
|
||
|
sensible. It had been my intention to smuggle a couple of sandwiches
|
||
|
into my helmet, but I was interrupted in the act, and had to make
|
||
|
an excuse and lay them aside, and a dog got them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Night approached, and with it a storm. The darkness came on fast.
|
||
|
We must camp, of course. I found a good shelter for the demoiselle
|
||
|
under a rock, and went off and found another for myself. But
|
||
|
I was obliged to remain in my armor, because I could not get it off
|
||
|
by myself and yet could not allow Alisande to help, because it
|
||
|
would have seemed so like undressing before folk. It would not
|
||
|
have amounted to that in reality, because I had clothes on
|
||
|
underneath; but the prejudices of one's breeding are not gotten
|
||
|
rid of just at a jump, and I knew that when it came to stripping
|
||
|
off that bob-tailed iron petticoat I should be embarrassed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the storm came a change of weather; and the stronger the wind
|
||
|
blew, and the wilder the rain lashed around, the colder and colder
|
||
|
it got. Pretty soon, various kinds of bugs and ants and worms
|
||
|
and things began to flock in out of the wet and crawl down inside
|
||
|
my armor to get warm; and while some of them behaved well enough,
|
||
|
and snuggled up amongst my clothes and got quiet, the majority
|
||
|
were of a restless, uncomfortable sort, and never stayed still,
|
||
|
but went on prowling and hunting for they did not know what;
|
||
|
especially the ants, which went tickling along in wearisome
|
||
|
procession from one end of me to the other by the hour, and are
|
||
|
a kind of creatures which I never wish to sleep with again.
|
||
|
It would be my advice to persons situated in this way, to not roll
|
||
|
or thrash around, because this excites the interest of all the
|
||
|
different sorts of animals and makes every last one of them want
|
||
|
to turn out and see what is going on, and this makes things worse
|
||
|
than they were before, and of course makes you objurgate harder,
|
||
|
too, if you can. Still, if one did not roll and thrash around
|
||
|
he would die; so perhaps it is as well to do one way as the other;
|
||
|
there is no real choice. Even after I was frozen solid I could
|
||
|
still distinguish that tickling, just as a corpse does when he is
|
||
|
taking electric treatment. I said I would never wear armor
|
||
|
after this trip.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All those trying hours whilst I was frozen and yet was in a living
|
||
|
fire, as you may say, on account of that swarm of crawlers, that
|
||
|
same unanswerable question kept circling and circling through my
|
||
|
tired head: How do people stand this miserable armor? How have
|
||
|
they managed to stand it all these generations? How can they sleep
|
||
|
at night for dreading the tortures of next day?
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the morning came at last, I was in a bad enough plight: seedy,
|
||
|
drowsy, fagged, from want of sleep; weary from thrashing around,
|
||
|
famished from long fasting; pining for a bath, and to get rid of
|
||
|
the animals; and crippled with rheumatism. And how had it fared
|
||
|
with the nobly born, the titled aristocrat, the Demoiselle Alisande
|
||
|
la Carteloise? Why, she was as fresh as a squirrel; she had slept
|
||
|
like the dead; and as for a bath, probably neither she nor any
|
||
|
other noble in the land had ever had one, and so she was not
|
||
|
missing it. Measured by modern standards, they were merely modified
|
||
|
savages, those people. This noble lady showed no impatience to get
|
||
|
to breakfast--and that smacks of the savage, too. On their journeys
|
||
|
those Britons were used to long fasts, and knew how to bear them;
|
||
|
and also how to freight up against probable fasts before starting,
|
||
|
after the style of the Indian and the anaconda. As like as not,
|
||
|
Sandy was loaded for a three-day stretch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were off before sunrise, Sandy riding and I limping along
|
||
|
behind. In half an hour we came upon a group of ragged poor
|
||
|
creatures who had assembled to mend the thing which was regarded
|
||
|
as a road. They were as humble as animals to me; and when I
|
||
|
proposed to breakfast with them, they were so flattered, so
|
||
|
overwhelmed by this extraordinary condescension of mine that
|
||
|
at first they were not able to believe that I was in earnest.
|
||
|
My lady put up her scornful lip and withdrew to one side; she said
|
||
|
in their hearing that she would as soon think of eating with the
|
||
|
other cattle--a remark which embarrassed these poor devils merely
|
||
|
because it referred to them, and not because it insulted or offended
|
||
|
them, for it didn't. And yet they were not slaves, not chattels.
|
||
|
By a sarcasm of law and phrase they were freemen. Seven-tenths
|
||
|
of the free population of the country were of just their class and
|
||
|
degree: small "independent" farmers, artisans, etc.; which is
|
||
|
to say, they were the nation, the actual Nation; they were about
|
||
|
all of it that was useful, or worth saving, or really respect-worthy,
|
||
|
and to subtract them would have been to subtract the Nation and
|
||
|
leave behind some dregs, some refuse, in the shape of a king,
|
||
|
nobility and gentry, idle, unproductive, acquainted mainly with
|
||
|
the arts of wasting and destroying, and of no sort of use or value
|
||
|
in any rationally constructed world. And yet, by ingenious
|
||
|
contrivance, this gilded minority, instead of being in the tail
|
||
|
of the procession where it belonged, was marching head up and
|
||
|
banners flying, at the other end of it; had elected itself to be
|
||
|
the Nation, and these innumerable clams had permitted it so long
|
||
|
that they had come at last to accept it as a truth; and not only
|
||
|
that, but to believe it right and as it should be. The priests
|
||
|
had told their fathers and themselves that this ironical state
|
||
|
of things was ordained of God; and so, not reflecting upon how
|
||
|
unlike God it would be to amuse himself with sarcasms, and especially
|
||
|
such poor transparent ones as this, they had dropped the matter
|
||
|
there and become respectfully quiet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The talk of these meek people had a strange enough sound in
|
||
|
a formerly American ear. They were freemen, but they could not
|
||
|
leave the estates of their lord or their bishop without his
|
||
|
permission; they could not prepare their own bread, but must have
|
||
|
their corn ground and their bread baked at his mill and his bakery,
|
||
|
and pay roundly for the same; they could not sell a piece of their
|
||
|
own property without paying him a handsome percentage of the
|
||
|
proceeds, nor buy a piece of somebody else's without remembering
|
||
|
him in cash for the privilege; they had to harvest his grain for him
|
||
|
gratis, and be ready to come at a moment's notice, leaving their
|
||
|
own crop to destruction by the threatened storm; they had to let
|
||
|
him plant fruit trees in their fields, and then keep their indignation
|
||
|
to themselves when his heedless fruit-gatherers trampled the grain
|
||
|
around the trees; they had to smother their anger when his hunting
|
||
|
parties galloped through their fields laying waste the result of
|
||
|
their patient toil; they were not allowed to keep doves themselves,
|
||
|
and when the swarms from my lord's dovecote settled on their crops
|
||
|
they must not lose their temper and kill a bird, for awful would
|
||
|
the penalty be; when the harvest was at last gathered, then came
|
||
|
the procession of robbers to levy their blackmail upon it: first
|
||
|
the Church carted off its fat tenth, then the king's commissioner
|
||
|
took his twentieth, then my lord's people made a mighty inroad
|
||
|
upon the remainder; after which, the skinned freeman had liberty
|
||
|
to bestow the remnant in his barn, in case it was worth the trouble;
|
||
|
there were taxes, and taxes, and taxes, and more taxes, and taxes
|
||
|
again, and yet other taxes--upon this free and independent pauper,
|
||
|
but none upon his lord the baron or the bishop, none upon the
|
||
|
wasteful nobility or the all-devouring Church; if the baron would
|
||
|
sleep unvexed, the freeman must sit up all night after his day's
|
||
|
work and whip the ponds to keep the frogs quiet; if the freeman's
|
||
|
daughter--but no, that last infamy of monarchical government is
|
||
|
unprintable; and finally, if the freeman, grown desperate with his
|
||
|
tortures, found his life unendurable under such conditions, and
|
||
|
sacrificed it and fled to death for mercy and refuge, the gentle
|
||
|
Church condemned him to eternal fire, the gentle law buried him
|
||
|
at midnight at the cross-roads with a stake through his back,
|
||
|
and his master the baron or the bishop confiscated all his property
|
||
|
and turned his widow and his orphans out of doors.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And here were these freemen assembled in the early morning to work
|
||
|
on their lord the bishop's road three days each--gratis; every
|
||
|
head of a family, and every son of a family, three days each,
|
||
|
gratis, and a day or so added for their servants. Why, it was
|
||
|
like reading about France and the French, before the ever memorable
|
||
|
and blessed Revolution, which swept a thousand years of such
|
||
|
villany away in one swift tidal-wave of blood--one: a settlement
|
||
|
of that hoary debt in the proportion of half a drop of blood for
|
||
|
each hogshead of it that had been pressed by slow tortures out of
|
||
|
that people in the weary stretch of ten centuries of wrong and
|
||
|
shame and misery the like of which was not to be mated but in hell.
|
||
|
There were two "Reigns of Terror," if we would but remember it
|
||
|
and consider it; the one wrought murder in hot passion, the other
|
||
|
in heartless cold blood; the one lasted mere months, the other had
|
||
|
lasted a thousand years; the one inflicted death upon ten thousand
|
||
|
persons, the other upon a hundred millions; but our shudders are
|
||
|
all for the "horrors" of the minor Terror, the momentary Terror,
|
||
|
so to speak; whereas, what is the horror of swift death by the axe,
|
||
|
compared with lifelong death from hunger, cold, insult, cruelty,
|
||
|
and heart-break? What is swift death by lightning compared with
|
||
|
death by slow fire at the stake? A city cemetery could contain the
|
||
|
coffins filled by that brief Terror which we have all been so
|
||
|
diligently taught to shiver at and mourn over; but all France could
|
||
|
hardly contain the coffins filled by that older and real Terror
|
||
|
--that unspeakably bitter and awful Terror which none of us has
|
||
|
been taught to see in its vastness or pity as it deserves.
|
||
|
|
||
|
These poor ostensible freemen who were sharing their breakfast
|
||
|
and their talk with me, were as full of humble reverence for their
|
||
|
king and Church and nobility as their worst enemy could desire.
|
||
|
There was something pitifully ludicrous about it. I asked them
|
||
|
if they supposed a nation of people ever existed, who, with a free
|
||
|
vote in every man's hand, would elect that a single family and its
|
||
|
descendants should reign over it forever, whether gifted or boobies,
|
||
|
to the exclusion of all other families--including the voter's; and
|
||
|
would also elect that a certain hundred families should be raised
|
||
|
to dizzy summits of rank, and clothed on with offensive transmissible
|
||
|
glories and privileges to the exclusion of the rest of the nation's
|
||
|
families--_including his own_.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They all looked unhit, and said they didn't know; that they had
|
||
|
never thought about it before, and it hadn't ever occurred to them
|
||
|
that a nation could be so situated that every man _could_ have
|
||
|
a say in the government. I said I had seen one--and that it would
|
||
|
last until it had an Established Church. Again they were all
|
||
|
unhit--at first. But presently one man looked up and asked me
|
||
|
to state that proposition again; and state it slowly, so it could
|
||
|
soak into his understanding. I did it; and after a little he had
|
||
|
the idea, and he brought his fist down and said _he_ didn't believe
|
||
|
a nation where every man had a vote would voluntarily get down
|
||
|
in the mud and dirt in any such way; and that to steal from a nation
|
||
|
its will and preference must be a crime and the first of all crimes.
|
||
|
I said to myself:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This one's a man. If I were backed by enough of his sort, I would
|
||
|
make a strike for the welfare of this country, and try to prove
|
||
|
myself its loyalest citizen by making a wholesome change in its
|
||
|
system of government."
|
||
|
|
||
|
You see my kind of loyalty was loyalty to one's country, not to
|
||
|
its institutions or its office-holders. The country is the real
|
||
|
thing, the substantial thing, the eternal thing; it is the thing
|
||
|
to watch over, and care for, and be loyal to; institutions are
|
||
|
extraneous, they are its mere clothing, and clothing can wear out,
|
||
|
become ragged, cease to be comfortable, cease to protect the body
|
||
|
from winter, disease, and death. To be loyal to rags, to shout
|
||
|
for rags, to worship rags, to die for rags--that is a loyalty
|
||
|
of unreason, it is pure animal; it belongs to monarchy, was invented
|
||
|
by monarchy; let monarchy keep it. I was from Connecticut, whose
|
||
|
Constitution declares "that all political power is inherent in
|
||
|
the people, and all free governments are founded on their authority
|
||
|
and instituted for their benefit; and that they have _at all times_
|
||
|
an undeniable and indefeasible right to _alter their form of
|
||
|
government_ in such a manner as they may think expedient."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Under that gospel, the citizen who thinks he sees that the
|
||
|
commonwealth's political clothes are worn out, and yet holds his
|
||
|
peace and does not agitate for a new suit, is disloyal; he is
|
||
|
a traitor. That he may be the only one who thinks he sees this
|
||
|
decay, does not excuse him; it is his duty to agitate anyway, and
|
||
|
it is the duty of the others to vote him down if they do not see
|
||
|
the matter as he does.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And now here I was, in a country where a right to say how the
|
||
|
country should be governed was restricted to six persons in each
|
||
|
thousand of its population. For the nine hundred and ninety-four
|
||
|
to express dissatisfaction with the regnant system and propose
|
||
|
to change it, would have made the whole six shudder as one man,
|
||
|
it would have been so disloyal, so dishonorable, such putrid black
|
||
|
treason. So to speak, I was become a stockholder in a corporation
|
||
|
where nine hundred and ninety-four of the members furnished all
|
||
|
the money and did all the work, and the other six elected themselves
|
||
|
a permanent board of direction and took all the dividends. It seemed
|
||
|
to me that what the nine hundred and ninety-four dupes needed was
|
||
|
a new deal. The thing that would have best suited the circus side
|
||
|
of my nature would have been to resign the Boss-ship and get up
|
||
|
an insurrection and turn it into a revolution; but I knew that the
|
||
|
Jack Cade or the Wat Tyler who tries such a thing without first
|
||
|
educating his materials up to revolution grade is almost absolutely
|
||
|
certain to get left. I had never been accustomed to getting left,
|
||
|
even if I do say it myself. Wherefore, the "deal" which had been
|
||
|
for some time working into shape in my mind was of a quite different
|
||
|
pattern from the Cade-Tyler sort.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So I did not talk blood and insurrection to that man there who sat
|
||
|
munching black bread with that abused and mistaught herd of human
|
||
|
sheep, but took him aside and talked matter of another sort to him.
|
||
|
After I had finished, I got him to lend me a little ink from his
|
||
|
veins; and with this and a sliver I wrote on a piece of bark--
|
||
|
|
||
|
Put him in the Man-factory--
|
||
|
|
||
|
and gave it to him, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Take it to the palace at Camelot and give it into the hands of
|
||
|
Amyas le Poulet, whom I call Clarence, and he will understand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is a priest, then," said the man, and some of the enthusiasm
|
||
|
went out of his face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How--a priest? Didn't I tell you that no chattel of the Church,
|
||
|
no bond-slave of pope or bishop can enter my Man-Factory? Didn't
|
||
|
I tell you that _you_ couldn't enter unless your religion, whatever
|
||
|
it might be, was your own free property?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, it is so, and for that I was glad; wherefore it liked me not,
|
||
|
and bred in me a cold doubt, to hear of this priest being there."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But he isn't a priest, I tell you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man looked far from satisfied. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is not a priest, and yet can read?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is not a priest and yet can read--yes, and write, too, for that
|
||
|
matter. I taught him myself." The man's face cleared. "And it is
|
||
|
the first thing that you yourself will be taught in that Factory--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I? I would give blood out of my heart to know that art. Why,
|
||
|
I will be your slave, your--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No you won't, you won't be anybody's slave. Take your family
|
||
|
and go along. Your lord the bishop will confiscate your small
|
||
|
property, but no matter. Clarence will fix you all right."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIV
|
||
|
|
||
|
"DEFEND THEE, LORD"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I paid three pennies for my breakfast, and a most extravagant
|
||
|
price it was, too, seeing that one could have breakfasted a dozen
|
||
|
persons for that money; but I was feeling good by this time, and
|
||
|
I had always been a kind of spendthrift anyway; and then these
|
||
|
people had wanted to give me the food for nothing, scant as
|
||
|
their provision was, and so it was a grateful pleasure to emphasize
|
||
|
my appreciation and sincere thankfulness with a good big financial
|
||
|
lift where the money would do so much more good than it would
|
||
|
in my helmet, where, these pennies being made of iron and not
|
||
|
stinted in weight, my half-dollar's worth was a good deal of a
|
||
|
burden to me. I spent money rather too freely in those days,
|
||
|
it is true; but one reason for it was that I hadn't got the
|
||
|
proportions of things entirely adjusted, even yet, after so long
|
||
|
a sojourn in Britain--hadn't got along to where I was able to
|
||
|
absolutely realize that a penny in Arthur's land and a couple of
|
||
|
dollars in Connecticut were about one and the same thing: just
|
||
|
twins, as you may say, in purchasing power. If my start from
|
||
|
Camelot could have been delayed a very few days I could have paid
|
||
|
these people in beautiful new coins from our own mint, and that
|
||
|
would have pleased me; and them, too, not less. I had adopted
|
||
|
the American values exclusively. In a week or two now, cents,
|
||
|
nickels, dimes, quarters, and half-dollars, and also a trifle of
|
||
|
gold, would be trickling in thin but steady streams all through
|
||
|
the commercial veins of the kingdom, and I looked to see this
|
||
|
new blood freshen up its life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The farmers were bound to throw in something, to sort of offset
|
||
|
my liberality, whether I would or no; so I let them give me a flint
|
||
|
and steel; and as soon as they had comfortably bestowed Sandy
|
||
|
and me on our horse, I lit my pipe. When the first blast of smoke
|
||
|
shot out through the bars of my helmet, all those people broke
|
||
|
for the woods, and Sandy went over backwards and struck the ground
|
||
|
with a dull thud. They thought I was one of those fire-belching
|
||
|
dragons they had heard so much about from knights and other
|
||
|
professional liars. I had infinite trouble to persuade those people
|
||
|
to venture back within explaining distance. Then I told them that
|
||
|
this was only a bit of enchantment which would work harm to none
|
||
|
but my enemies. And I promised, with my hand on my heart, that
|
||
|
if all who felt no enmity toward me would come forward and pass
|
||
|
before me they should see that only those who remained behind would
|
||
|
be struck dead. The procession moved with a good deal of promptness.
|
||
|
There were no casualties to report, for nobody had curiosity enough
|
||
|
to remain behind to see what would happen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I lost some time, now, for these big children, their fears gone,
|
||
|
became so ravished with wonder over my awe-compelling fireworks
|
||
|
that I had to stay there and smoke a couple of pipes out before
|
||
|
they would let me go. Still the delay was not wholly unproductive,
|
||
|
for it took all that time to get Sandy thoroughly wonted to the new
|
||
|
thing, she being so close to it, you know. It plugged up her
|
||
|
conversation mill, too, for a considerable while, and that was
|
||
|
a gain. But above all other benefits accruing, I had learned
|
||
|
something. I was ready for any giant or any ogre that might come
|
||
|
along, now.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We tarried with a holy hermit, that night, and my opportunity
|
||
|
came about the middle of the next afternoon. We were crossing
|
||
|
a vast meadow by way of short-cut, and I was musing absently,
|
||
|
hearing nothing, seeing nothing, when Sandy suddenly interrupted
|
||
|
a remark which she had begun that morning, with the cry:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Defend thee, lord!--peril of life is toward!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And she slipped down from the horse and ran a little way and stood.
|
||
|
I looked up and saw, far off in the shade of a tree, half a dozen
|
||
|
armed knights and their squires; and straightway there was bustle
|
||
|
among them and tightening of saddle-girths for the mount. My pipe
|
||
|
was ready and would have been lit, if I had not been lost in
|
||
|
thinking about how to banish oppression from this land and restore
|
||
|
to all its people their stolen rights and manhood without disobliging
|
||
|
anybody. I lit up at once, and by the time I had got a good head
|
||
|
of reserved steam on, here they came. All together, too; none of
|
||
|
those chivalrous magnanimities which one reads so much about
|
||
|
--one courtly rascal at a time, and the rest standing by to see fair
|
||
|
play. No, they came in a body, they came with a whirr and a rush,
|
||
|
they came like a volley from a battery; came with heads low down,
|
||
|
plumes streaming out behind, lances advanced at a level. It was
|
||
|
a handsome sight, a beautiful sight--for a man up a tree. I laid
|
||
|
my lance in rest and waited, with my heart beating, till the iron
|
||
|
wave was just ready to break over me, then spouted a column of
|
||
|
white smoke through the bars of my helmet. You should have seen
|
||
|
the wave go to pieces and scatter! This was a finer sight than
|
||
|
the other one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But these people stopped, two or three hundred yards away, and
|
||
|
this troubled me. My satisfaction collapsed, and fear came;
|
||
|
I judged I was a lost man. But Sandy was radiant; and was going
|
||
|
to be eloquent--but I stopped her, and told her my magic had
|
||
|
miscarried, somehow or other, and she must mount, with all despatch,
|
||
|
and we must ride for life. No, she wouldn't. She said that my
|
||
|
enchantment had disabled those knights; they were not riding on,
|
||
|
because they couldn't; wait, they would drop out of their saddles
|
||
|
presently, and we would get their horses and harness. I could not
|
||
|
deceive such trusting simplicity, so I said it was a mistake; that
|
||
|
when my fireworks killed at all, they killed instantly; no, the men
|
||
|
would not die, there was something wrong about my apparatus,
|
||
|
I couldn't tell what; but we must hurry and get away, for those
|
||
|
people would attack us again, in a minute. Sandy laughed, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lack-a-day, sir, they be not of that breed! Sir Launcelot will
|
||
|
give battle to dragons, and will abide by them, and will assail
|
||
|
them again, and yet again, and still again, until he do conquer
|
||
|
and destroy them; and so likewise will Sir Pellinore and Sir Aglovale
|
||
|
and Sir Carados, and mayhap others, but there be none else that
|
||
|
will venture it, let the idle say what the idle will. And, la,
|
||
|
as to yonder base rufflers, think ye they have not their fill,
|
||
|
but yet desire more?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, what are they waiting for? Why don't they leave?
|
||
|
Nobody's hindering. Good land, I'm willing to let bygones be
|
||
|
bygones, I'm sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Leave, is it? Oh, give thyself easement as to that. They dream
|
||
|
not of it, no, not they. They wait to yield them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come--really, is that 'sooth'--as you people say? If they want to,
|
||
|
why don't they?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would like them much; but an ye wot how dragons are esteemed,
|
||
|
ye would not hold them blamable. They fear to come."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, suppose I go to them instead, and--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, wit ye well they would not abide your coming. I will go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And she did. She was a handy person to have along on a raid.
|
||
|
I would have considered this a doubtful errand, myself. I presently
|
||
|
saw the knights riding away, and Sandy coming back. That was
|
||
|
a relief. I judged she had somehow failed to get the first innings
|
||
|
--I mean in the conversation; otherwise the interview wouldn't have
|
||
|
been so short. But it turned out that she had managed the business
|
||
|
well; in fact, admirably. She said that when she told those people
|
||
|
I was The Boss, it hit them where they lived: "smote them sore
|
||
|
with fear and dread" was her word; and then they were ready to
|
||
|
put up with anything she might require. So she swore them to appear
|
||
|
at Arthur's court within two days and yield them, with horse and
|
||
|
harness, and be my knights henceforth, and subject to my command.
|
||
|
How much better she managed that thing than I should have done
|
||
|
it myself! She was a daisy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XV
|
||
|
|
||
|
SANDY'S TALE
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so I'm proprietor of some knights," said I, as we rode off.
|
||
|
"Who would ever have supposed that I should live to list up assets
|
||
|
of that sort. I shan't know what to do with them; unless I raffle
|
||
|
them off. How many of them are there, Sandy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Seven, please you, sir, and their squires."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a good haul. Who are they? Where do they hang out?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where do they hang out?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, where do they live?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, I understood thee not. That will I tell eftsoons." Then she
|
||
|
said musingly, and softly, turning the words daintily over her
|
||
|
tongue: "Hang they out--hang they out--where hang--where do they
|
||
|
hang out; eh, right so; where do they hang out. Of a truth the
|
||
|
phrase hath a fair and winsome grace, and is prettily worded
|
||
|
withal. I will repeat it anon and anon in mine idlesse, whereby
|
||
|
I may peradventure learn it. Where do they hang out. Even so!
|
||
|
already it falleth trippingly from my tongue, and forasmuch as--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Don't forget the cowboys, Sandy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Cowboys?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; the knights, you know: You were going to tell me about them.
|
||
|
A while back, you remember. Figuratively speaking, game's called."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Game--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, yes, yes! Go to the bat. I mean, get to work on your
|
||
|
statistics, and don't burn so much kindling getting your fire
|
||
|
started. Tell me about the knights."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will well, and lightly will begin. So they two departed and
|
||
|
rode into a great forest. And--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Great Scott!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
You see, I recognized my mistake at once. I had set her works
|
||
|
a-going; it was my own fault; she would be thirty days getting down
|
||
|
to those facts. And she generally began without a preface and
|
||
|
finished without a result. If you interrupted her she would either
|
||
|
go right along without noticing, or answer with a couple of words,
|
||
|
and go back and say the sentence over again. So, interruptions
|
||
|
only did harm; and yet I had to interrupt, and interrupt pretty
|
||
|
frequently, too, in order to save my life; a person would die if
|
||
|
he let her monotony drip on him right along all day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Great Scott!" I said in my distress. She went right back and
|
||
|
began over again:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So they two departed and rode into a great forest. And--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Which_ two?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir Gawaine and Sir Uwaine. And so they came to an abbey of monks,
|
||
|
and there were well lodged. So on the morn they heard their masses
|
||
|
in the abbey, and so they rode forth till they came to a great
|
||
|
forest; then was Sir Gawaine ware in a valley by a turret, of
|
||
|
twelve fair damsels, and two knights armed on great horses, and
|
||
|
the damsels went to and fro by a tree. And then was Sir Gawaine
|
||
|
ware how there hung a white shield on that tree, and ever as the
|
||
|
damsels came by it they spit upon it, and some threw mire upon
|
||
|
the shield--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, if I hadn't seen the like myself in this country, Sandy,
|
||
|
I wouldn't believe it. But I've seen it, and I can just see those
|
||
|
creatures now, parading before that shield and acting like that.
|
||
|
The women here do certainly act like all possessed. Yes, and
|
||
|
I mean your best, too, society's very choicest brands. The humblest
|
||
|
hello-girl along ten thousand miles of wire could teach gentleness,
|
||
|
patience, modesty, manners, to the highest duchess in Arthur's land."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hello-girl?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, but don't you ask me to explain; it's a new kind of a girl;
|
||
|
they don't have them here; one often speaks sharply to them when
|
||
|
they are not the least in fault, and he can't get over feeling
|
||
|
sorry for it and ashamed of himself in thirteen hundred years,
|
||
|
it's such shabby mean conduct and so unprovoked; the fact is,
|
||
|
no gentleman ever does it--though I--well, I myself, if I've got
|
||
|
to confess--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Peradventure she--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Never mind her; never mind her; I tell you I couldn't ever explain
|
||
|
her so you would understand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even so be it, sith ye are so minded. Then Sir Gawaine and
|
||
|
Sir Uwaine went and saluted them, and asked them why they did that
|
||
|
despite to the shield. Sirs, said the damsels, we shall tell you.
|
||
|
There is a knight in this country that owneth this white shield,
|
||
|
and he is a passing good man of his hands, but he hateth all
|
||
|
ladies and gentlewomen, and therefore we do all this despite to
|
||
|
the shield. I will say you, said Sir Gawaine, it beseemeth evil
|
||
|
a good knight to despise all ladies and gentlewomen, and peradventure
|
||
|
though he hate you he hath some cause, and peradventure he loveth
|
||
|
in some other places ladies and gentlewomen, and to be loved again,
|
||
|
and he such a man of prowess as ye speak of--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Man of prowess--yes, that is the man to please them, Sandy.
|
||
|
Man of brains--that is a thing they never think of. Tom Sayers
|
||
|
--John Heenan--John L. Sullivan--pity but you could be here. You
|
||
|
would have your legs under the Round Table and a 'Sir' in front
|
||
|
of your names within the twenty-four hours; and you could bring
|
||
|
about a new distribution of the married princesses and duchesses
|
||
|
of the Court in another twenty-four. The fact is, it is just
|
||
|
a sort of polished-up court of Comanches, and there isn't a squaw
|
||
|
in it who doesn't stand ready at the dropping of a hat to desert
|
||
|
to the buck with the biggest string of scalps at his belt."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--and he be such a man of prowess as ye speak of, said Sir Gawaine.
|
||
|
Now, what is his name? Sir, said they, his name is Marhaus the
|
||
|
king's son of Ireland."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Son of the king of Ireland, you mean; the other form doesn't mean
|
||
|
anything. And look out and hold on tight, now, we must jump
|
||
|
this gully.... There, we are all right now. This horse belongs in
|
||
|
the circus; he is born before his time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know him well, said Sir Uwaine, he is a passing good knight as
|
||
|
any is on live."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_On live_. If you've got a fault in the world, Sandy, it is that
|
||
|
you are a shade too archaic. But it isn't any matter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--for I saw him once proved at a justs where many knights were
|
||
|
gathered, and that time there might no man withstand him. Ah, said
|
||
|
Sir Gawaine, damsels, methinketh ye are to blame, for it is to
|
||
|
suppose he that hung that shield there will not be long therefrom,
|
||
|
and then may those knights match him on horseback, and that is
|
||
|
more your worship than thus; for I will abide no longer to see
|
||
|
a knight's shield dishonored. And therewith Sir Uwaine and
|
||
|
Sir Gawaine departed a little from them, and then were they ware
|
||
|
where Sir Marhaus came riding on a great horse straight toward
|
||
|
them. And when the twelve damsels saw Sir Marhaus they fled into
|
||
|
the turret as they were wild, so that some of them fell by the way.
|
||
|
Then the one of the knights of the tower dressed his shield, and
|
||
|
said on high, Sir Marhaus defend thee. And so they ran together
|
||
|
that the knight brake his spear on Marhaus, and Sir Marhaus smote
|
||
|
him so hard that he brake his neck and the horse's back--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, that is just the trouble about this state of things,
|
||
|
it ruins so many horses."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That saw the other knight of the turret, and dressed him toward
|
||
|
Marhaus, and they went so eagerly together, that the knight of
|
||
|
the turret was soon smitten down, horse and man, stark dead--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Another_ horse gone; I tell you it is a custom that ought to be
|
||
|
broken up. I don't see how people with any feeling can applaud
|
||
|
and support it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
. . . .
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So these two knights came together with great random--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw that I had been asleep and missed a chapter, but I didn't
|
||
|
say anything. I judged that the Irish knight was in trouble with
|
||
|
the visitors by this time, and this turned out to be the case.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--that Sir Uwaine smote Sir Marhaus that his spear brast in pieces
|
||
|
on the shield, and Sir Marhaus smote him so sore that horse and
|
||
|
man he bare to the earth, and hurt Sir Uwaine on the left side--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The truth is, Alisande, these archaics are a little _too_ simple;
|
||
|
the vocabulary is too limited, and so, by consequence, descriptions
|
||
|
suffer in the matter of variety; they run too much to level Saharas
|
||
|
of fact, and not enough to picturesque detail; this throws about
|
||
|
them a certain air of the monotonous; in fact the fights are all
|
||
|
alike: a couple of people come together with great random
|
||
|
--random is a good word, and so is exegesis, for that matter, and
|
||
|
so is holocaust, and defalcation, and usufruct and a hundred others,
|
||
|
but land! a body ought to discriminate--they come together with
|
||
|
great random, and a spear is brast, and one party brake his shield
|
||
|
and the other one goes down, horse and man, over his horse-tail
|
||
|
and brake his neck, and then the next candidate comes randoming in,
|
||
|
and brast _his_ spear, and the other man brast his shield, and down
|
||
|
_he_ goes, horse and man, over his horse-tail, and brake _his_ neck,
|
||
|
and then there's another elected, and another and another and still
|
||
|
another, till the material is all used up; and when you come to
|
||
|
figure up results, you can't tell one fight from another, nor who
|
||
|
whipped; and as a _picture_, of living, raging, roaring battle,
|
||
|
sho! why, it's pale and noiseless--just ghosts scuffling in a fog.
|
||
|
Dear me, what would this barren vocabulary get out of the mightiest
|
||
|
spectacle?--the burning of Rome in Nero's time, for instance?
|
||
|
Why, it would merely say, 'Town burned down; no insurance; boy
|
||
|
brast a window, fireman brake his neck!' Why, _that_ ain't a picture!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a good deal of a lecture, I thought, but it didn't disturb
|
||
|
Sandy, didn't turn a feather; her steam soared steadily up again,
|
||
|
the minute I took off the lid:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then Sir Marhaus turned his horse and rode toward Gawaine with
|
||
|
his spear. And when Sir Gawaine saw that, he dressed his shield,
|
||
|
and they aventred their spears, and they came together with all
|
||
|
the might of their horses, that either knight smote other so hard
|
||
|
in the midst of their shields, but Sir Gawaine's spear brake--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I knew it would."
|
||
|
|
||
|
--"but Sir Marhaus's spear held; and therewith Sir Gawaine and
|
||
|
his horse rushed down to the earth--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Just so--and brake his back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
--"and lightly Sir Gawaine rose upon his feet and pulled out
|
||
|
his sword, and dressed him toward Sir Marhaus on foot, and therewith
|
||
|
either came unto other eagerly, and smote together with their
|
||
|
swords, that their shields flew in cantels, and they bruised their
|
||
|
helms and their hauberks, and wounded either other. But Sir Gawaine,
|
||
|
fro it passed nine of the clock, waxed by the space of three hours
|
||
|
ever stronger and stronger and thrice his might was increased.
|
||
|
All this espied Sir Marhaus, and had great wonder how his might
|
||
|
increased, and so they wounded other passing sore; and then when
|
||
|
it was come noon--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The pelting sing-song of it carried me forward to scenes and
|
||
|
sounds of my boyhood days:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"N-e-e-ew Haven! ten minutes for refreshments--knductr'll strike
|
||
|
the gong-bell two minutes before train leaves--passengers for
|
||
|
the Shore line please take seats in the rear k'yar, this k'yar
|
||
|
don't go no furder--_ahh_-pls, _aw_-rnjz, b'_nan_ners,
|
||
|
_s-a-n-d_'ches, p--_op_-corn!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
--"and waxed past noon and drew toward evensong. Sir Gawaine's
|
||
|
strength feebled and waxed passing faint, that unnethes he might
|
||
|
dure any longer, and Sir Marhaus was then bigger and bigger--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Which strained his armor, of course; and yet little would one
|
||
|
of these people mind a small thing like that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
--"and so, Sir Knight, said Sir Marhaus, I have well felt that
|
||
|
ye are a passing good knight, and a marvelous man of might as ever
|
||
|
I felt any, while it lasteth, and our quarrels are not great, and
|
||
|
therefore it were a pity to do you hurt, for I feel you are passing
|
||
|
feeble. Ah, said Sir Gawaine, gentle knight, ye say the word
|
||
|
that I should say. And therewith they took off their helms and
|
||
|
either kissed other, and there they swore together either to love
|
||
|
other as brethren--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I lost the thread there, and dozed off to slumber, thinking
|
||
|
about what a pity it was that men with such superb strength
|
||
|
--strength enabling them to stand up cased in cruelly burdensome
|
||
|
iron and drenched with perspiration, and hack and batter and bang
|
||
|
each other for six hours on a stretch--should not have been born
|
||
|
at a time when they could put it to some useful purpose. Take
|
||
|
a jackass, for instance: a jackass has that kind of strength, and
|
||
|
puts it to a useful purpose, and is valuable to this world because
|
||
|
he is a jackass; but a nobleman is not valuable because he is
|
||
|
a jackass. It is a mixture that is always ineffectual, and should
|
||
|
never have been attempted in the first place. And yet, once you
|
||
|
start a mistake, the trouble is done and you never know what is
|
||
|
going to come of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I came to myself again and began to listen, I perceived that
|
||
|
I had lost another chapter, and that Alisande had wandered a long
|
||
|
way off with her people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so they rode and came into a deep valley full of stones,
|
||
|
and thereby they saw a fair stream of water; above thereby was
|
||
|
the head of the stream, a fair fountain, and three damsels sitting
|
||
|
thereby. In this country, said Sir Marhaus, came never knight
|
||
|
since it was christened, but he found strange adventures--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is not good form, Alisande. Sir Marhaus the king's son of
|
||
|
Ireland talks like all the rest; you ought to give him a brogue,
|
||
|
or at least a characteristic expletive; by this means one would
|
||
|
recognize him as soon as he spoke, without his ever being named.
|
||
|
It is a common literary device with the great authors. You should
|
||
|
make him say, 'In this country, be jabers, came never knight since
|
||
|
it was christened, but he found strange adventures, be jabers.'
|
||
|
You see how much better that sounds."
|
||
|
|
||
|
--"came never knight but he found strange adventures, be jabers.
|
||
|
Of a truth it doth indeed, fair lord, albeit 'tis passing hard
|
||
|
to say, though peradventure that will not tarry but better speed
|
||
|
with usage. And then they rode to the damsels, and either saluted
|
||
|
other, and the eldest had a garland of gold about her head, and
|
||
|
she was threescore winter of age or more--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The _damsel_ was?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even so, dear lord--and her hair was white under the garland--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Celluloid teeth, nine dollars a set, as like as not--the loose-fit
|
||
|
kind, that go up and down like a portcullis when you eat, and
|
||
|
fall out when you laugh."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The second damsel was of thirty winter of age, with a circlet of
|
||
|
gold about her head. The third damsel was but fifteen year of age--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Billows of thought came rolling over my soul, and the voice faded
|
||
|
out of my hearing!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fifteen! Break--my heart! oh, my lost darling! Just her age
|
||
|
who was so gentle, and lovely, and all the world to me, and whom
|
||
|
I shall never see again! How the thought of her carries me back
|
||
|
over wide seas of memory to a vague dim time, a happy time, so many,
|
||
|
many centuries hence, when I used to wake in the soft summer
|
||
|
mornings, out of sweet dreams of her, and say "Hello, Central!"
|
||
|
just to hear her dear voice come melting back to me with a
|
||
|
"Hello, Hank!" that was music of the spheres to my enchanted ear.
|
||
|
She got three dollars a week, but she was worth it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not follow Alisande's further explanation of who our
|
||
|
captured knights were, now--I mean in case she should ever get
|
||
|
to explaining who they were. My interest was gone, my thoughts
|
||
|
were far away, and sad. By fitful glimpses of the drifting tale,
|
||
|
caught here and there and now and then, I merely noted in a vague
|
||
|
way that each of these three knights took one of these three damsels
|
||
|
up behind him on his horse, and one rode north, another east,
|
||
|
the other south, to seek adventures, and meet again and lie, after
|
||
|
year and day. Year and day--and without baggage. It was of
|
||
|
a piece with the general simplicity of the country.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sun was now setting. It was about three in the afternoon when
|
||
|
Alisande had begun to tell me who the cowboys were; so she had made
|
||
|
pretty good progress with it--for her. She would arrive some time
|
||
|
or other, no doubt, but she was not a person who could be hurried.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were approaching a castle which stood on high ground; a huge,
|
||
|
strong, venerable structure, whose gray towers and battlements were
|
||
|
charmingly draped with ivy, and whose whole majestic mass was
|
||
|
drenched with splendors flung from the sinking sun. It was the
|
||
|
largest castle we had seen, and so I thought it might be the one
|
||
|
we were after, but Sandy said no. She did not know who owned it;
|
||
|
she said she had passed it without calling, when she went down
|
||
|
to Camelot.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVI
|
||
|
|
||
|
MORGAN LE FAY
|
||
|
|
||
|
If knights errant were to be believed, not all castles were desirable
|
||
|
places to seek hospitality in. As a matter of fact, knights errant
|
||
|
were _not_ persons to be believed--that is, measured by modern
|
||
|
standards of veracity; yet, measured by the standards of their own
|
||
|
time, and scaled accordingly, you got the truth. It was very
|
||
|
simple: you discounted a statement ninety-seven per cent; the rest
|
||
|
was fact. Now after making this allowance, the truth remained
|
||
|
that if I could find out something about a castle before ringing
|
||
|
the door-bell--I mean hailing the warders--it was the sensible
|
||
|
thing to do. So I was pleased when I saw in the distance a horseman
|
||
|
making the bottom turn of the road that wound down from this castle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we approached each other, I saw that he wore a plumed helmet,
|
||
|
and seemed to be otherwise clothed in steel, but bore a curious
|
||
|
addition also--a stiff square garment like a herald's tabard.
|
||
|
However, I had to smile at my own forgetfulness when I got nearer
|
||
|
and read this sign on his tabard:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Persimmon's Soap -- All the Prime-Donna Use It."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was a little idea of my own, and had several wholesome purposes
|
||
|
in view toward the civilizing and uplifting of this nation. In the
|
||
|
first place, it was a furtive, underhand blow at this nonsense
|
||
|
of knight errantry, though nobody suspected that but me. I had
|
||
|
started a number of these people out--the bravest knights I could
|
||
|
get--each sandwiched between bulletin-boards bearing one device
|
||
|
or another, and I judged that by and by when they got to be numerous
|
||
|
enough they would begin to look ridiculous; and then, even the
|
||
|
steel-clad ass that _hadn't_ any board would himself begin to look
|
||
|
ridiculous because he was out of the fashion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Secondly, these missionaries would gradually, and without creating
|
||
|
suspicion or exciting alarm, introduce a rudimentary cleanliness
|
||
|
among the nobility, and from them it would work down to the people,
|
||
|
if the priests could be kept quiet. This would undermine the Church.
|
||
|
I mean would be a step toward that. Next, education--next, freedom
|
||
|
--and then she would begin to crumble. It being my conviction that
|
||
|
any Established Church is an established crime, an established
|
||
|
slave-pen, I had no scruples, but was willing to assail it in
|
||
|
any way or with any weapon that promised to hurt it. Why, in my
|
||
|
own former day--in remote centuries not yet stirring in the womb
|
||
|
of time--there were old Englishmen who imagined that they had been
|
||
|
born in a free country: a "free" country with the Corporation Act
|
||
|
and the Test still in force in it--timbers propped against men's
|
||
|
liberties and dishonored consciences to shore up an Established
|
||
|
Anachronism with.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My missionaries were taught to spell out the gilt signs on their
|
||
|
tabards--the showy gilding was a neat idea, I could have got the
|
||
|
king to wear a bulletin-board for the sake of that barbaric
|
||
|
splendor--they were to spell out these signs and then explain to
|
||
|
the lords and ladies what soap was; and if the lords and ladies
|
||
|
were afraid of it, get them to try it on a dog. The missionary's
|
||
|
next move was to get the family together and try it on himself;
|
||
|
he was to stop at no experiment, however desperate, that could
|
||
|
convince the nobility that soap was harmless; if any final doubt
|
||
|
remained, he must catch a hermit--the woods were full of them;
|
||
|
saints they called themselves, and saints they were believed to be.
|
||
|
They were unspeakably holy, and worked miracles, and everybody
|
||
|
stood in awe of them. If a hermit could survive a wash, and that
|
||
|
failed to convince a duke, give him up, let him alone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Whenever my missionaries overcame a knight errant on the road
|
||
|
they washed him, and when he got well they swore him to go and
|
||
|
get a bulletin-board and disseminate soap and civilization the rest
|
||
|
of his days. As a consequence the workers in the field were
|
||
|
increasing by degrees, and the reform was steadily spreading.
|
||
|
My soap factory felt the strain early. At first I had only two
|
||
|
hands; but before I had left home I was already employing fifteen,
|
||
|
and running night and day; and the atmospheric result was getting
|
||
|
so pronounced that the king went sort of fainting and gasping
|
||
|
around and said he did not believe he could stand it much longer,
|
||
|
and Sir Launcelot got so that he did hardly anything but walk up
|
||
|
and down the roof and swear, although I told him it was worse up
|
||
|
there than anywhere else, but he said he wanted plenty of air; and
|
||
|
he was always complaining that a palace was no place for a soap
|
||
|
factory anyway, and said if a man was to start one in his house
|
||
|
he would be damned if he wouldn't strangle him. There were ladies
|
||
|
present, too, but much these people ever cared for that; they would
|
||
|
swear before children, if the wind was their way when the factory
|
||
|
was going.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This missionary knight's name was La Cote Male Taile, and he said
|
||
|
that this castle was the abode of Morgan le Fay, sister of
|
||
|
King Arthur, and wife of King Uriens, monarch of a realm about
|
||
|
as big as the District of Columbia--you could stand in the middle
|
||
|
of it and throw bricks into the next kingdom. "Kings" and "Kingdoms"
|
||
|
were as thick in Britain as they had been in little Palestine in
|
||
|
Joshua's time, when people had to sleep with their knees pulled up
|
||
|
because they couldn't stretch out without a passport.
|
||
|
|
||
|
La Cote was much depressed, for he had scored here the worst
|
||
|
failure of his campaign. He had not worked off a cake; yet he had
|
||
|
tried all the tricks of the trade, even to the washing of a hermit;
|
||
|
but the hermit died. This was, indeed, a bad failure, for this
|
||
|
animal would now be dubbed a martyr, and would take his place
|
||
|
among the saints of the Roman calendar. Thus made he his moan,
|
||
|
this poor Sir La Cote Male Taile, and sorrowed passing sore. And
|
||
|
so my heart bled for him, and I was moved to comfort and stay him.
|
||
|
Wherefore I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Forbear to grieve, fair knight, for this is not a defeat. We have
|
||
|
brains, you and I; and for such as have brains there are no defeats,
|
||
|
but only victories. Observe how we will turn this seeming disaster
|
||
|
into an advertisement; an advertisement for our soap; and the
|
||
|
biggest one, to draw, that was ever thought of; an advertisement
|
||
|
that will transform that Mount Washington defeat into a Matterhorn
|
||
|
victory. We will put on your bulletin-board, '_Patronized by the
|
||
|
elect_.' How does that strike you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Verily, it is wonderly bethought!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, a body is bound to admit that for just a modest little
|
||
|
one-line ad, it's a corker."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So the poor colporteur's griefs vanished away. He was a brave
|
||
|
fellow, and had done mighty feats of arms in his time. His chief
|
||
|
celebrity rested upon the events of an excursion like this one
|
||
|
of mine, which he had once made with a damsel named Maledisant,
|
||
|
who was as handy with her tongue as was Sandy, though in a different
|
||
|
way, for her tongue churned forth only railings and insult, whereas
|
||
|
Sandy's music was of a kindlier sort. I knew his story well, and so
|
||
|
I knew how to interpret the compassion that was in his face when he
|
||
|
bade me farewell. He supposed I was having a bitter hard time of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sandy and I discussed his story, as we rode along, and she said
|
||
|
that La Cote's bad luck had begun with the very beginning of that
|
||
|
trip; for the king's fool had overthrown him on the first day,
|
||
|
and in such cases it was customary for the girl to desert to the
|
||
|
conqueror, but Maledisant didn't do it; and also persisted afterward
|
||
|
in sticking to him, after all his defeats. But, said I, suppose
|
||
|
the victor should decline to accept his spoil? She said that that
|
||
|
wouldn't answer--he must. He couldn't decline; it wouldn't be
|
||
|
regular. I made a note of that. If Sandy's music got to be too
|
||
|
burdensome, some time, I would let a knight defeat me, on the chance
|
||
|
that she would desert to him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In due time we were challenged by the warders, from the castle
|
||
|
walls, and after a parley admitted. I have nothing pleasant to
|
||
|
tell about that visit. But it was not a disappointment, for I knew
|
||
|
Mrs. le Fay by reputation, and was not expecting anything pleasant.
|
||
|
She was held in awe by the whole realm, for she had made everybody
|
||
|
believe she was a great sorceress. All her ways were wicked, all
|
||
|
her instincts devilish. She was loaded to the eyelids with cold
|
||
|
malice. All her history was black with crime; and among her crimes
|
||
|
murder was common. I was most curious to see her; as curious as
|
||
|
I could have been to see Satan. To my surprise she was beautiful;
|
||
|
black thoughts had failed to make her expression repulsive, age
|
||
|
had failed to wrinkle her satin skin or mar its bloomy freshness.
|
||
|
She could have passed for old Uriens' granddaughter, she could
|
||
|
have been mistaken for sister to her own son.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as we were fairly within the castle gates we were ordered
|
||
|
into her presence. King Uriens was there, a kind-faced old man
|
||
|
with a subdued look; and also the son, Sir Uwaine le Blanchemains,
|
||
|
in whom I was, of course, interested on account of the tradition
|
||
|
that he had once done battle with thirty knights, and also on
|
||
|
account of his trip with Sir Gawaine and Sir Marhaus, which Sandy
|
||
|
had been aging me with. But Morgan was the main attraction, the
|
||
|
conspicuous personality here; she was head chief of this household,
|
||
|
that was plain. She caused us to be seated, and then she began,
|
||
|
with all manner of pretty graces and graciousnesses, to ask me
|
||
|
questions. Dear me, it was like a bird or a flute, or something,
|
||
|
talking. I felt persuaded that this woman must have been
|
||
|
misrepresented, lied about. She trilled along, and trilled along,
|
||
|
and presently a handsome young page, clothed like the rainbow, and
|
||
|
as easy and undulatory of movement as a wave, came with something
|
||
|
on a golden salver, and, kneeling to present it to her, overdid
|
||
|
his graces and lost his balance, and so fell lightly against her
|
||
|
knee. She slipped a dirk into him in as matter-of-course a way as
|
||
|
another person would have harpooned a rat!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Poor child! he slumped to the floor, twisted his silken limbs in
|
||
|
one great straining contortion of pain, and was dead. Out of the
|
||
|
old king was wrung an involuntary "O-h!" of compassion. The look
|
||
|
he got, made him cut it suddenly short and not put any more hyphens
|
||
|
in it. Sir Uwaine, at a sign from his mother, went to the anteroom
|
||
|
and called some servants, and meanwhile madame went rippling sweetly
|
||
|
along with her talk.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw that she was a good housekeeper, for while she talked she
|
||
|
kept a corner of her eye on the servants to see that they made
|
||
|
no balks in handling the body and getting it out; when they came
|
||
|
with fresh clean towels, she sent back for the other kind; and
|
||
|
when they had finished wiping the floor and were going, she indicated
|
||
|
a crimson fleck the size of a tear which their duller eyes had
|
||
|
overlooked. It was plain to me that La Cote Male Taile had failed
|
||
|
to see the mistress of the house. Often, how louder and clearer
|
||
|
than any tongue, does dumb circumstantial evidence speak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Morgan le Fay rippled along as musically as ever. Marvelous woman.
|
||
|
And what a glance she had: when it fell in reproof upon those
|
||
|
servants, they shrunk and quailed as timid people do when the
|
||
|
lightning flashes out of a cloud. I could have got the habit
|
||
|
myself. It was the same with that poor old Brer Uriens; he was
|
||
|
always on the ragged edge of apprehension; she could not even turn
|
||
|
toward him but he winced.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the midst of the talk I let drop a complimentary word about
|
||
|
King Arthur, forgetting for the moment how this woman hated her
|
||
|
brother. That one little compliment was enough. She clouded up
|
||
|
like storm; she called for her guards, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hale me these varlets to the dungeons."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That struck cold on my ears, for her dungeons had a reputation.
|
||
|
Nothing occurred to me to say--or do. But not so with Sandy.
|
||
|
As the guard laid a hand upon me, she piped up with the tranquilest
|
||
|
confidence, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"God's wounds, dost thou covet destruction, thou maniac? It is
|
||
|
The Boss!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now what a happy idea that was!--and so simple; yet it would never
|
||
|
have occurred to me. I was born modest; not all over, but in spots;
|
||
|
and this was one of the spots.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The effect upon madame was electrical. It cleared her countenance
|
||
|
and brought back her smiles and all her persuasive graces and
|
||
|
blandishments; but nevertheless she was not able to entirely cover up
|
||
|
with them the fact that she was in a ghastly fright. She said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"La, but do list to thine handmaid! as if one gifted with powers
|
||
|
like to mine might say the thing which I have said unto one who
|
||
|
has vanquished Merlin, and not be jesting. By mine enchantments
|
||
|
I foresaw your coming, and by them I knew you when you entered
|
||
|
here. I did but play this little jest with hope to surprise you
|
||
|
into some display of your art, as not doubting you would blast
|
||
|
the guards with occult fires, consuming them to ashes on the spot,
|
||
|
a marvel much beyond mine own ability, yet one which I have long
|
||
|
been childishly curious to see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The guards were less curious, and got out as soon as they got permission.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVII
|
||
|
|
||
|
A ROYAL BANQUET
|
||
|
|
||
|
Madame, seeing me pacific and unresentful, no doubt judged that
|
||
|
I was deceived by her excuse; for her fright dissolved away, and
|
||
|
she was soon so importunate to have me give an exhibition and kill
|
||
|
somebody, that the thing grew to be embarrassing. However, to my
|
||
|
relief she was presently interrupted by the call to prayers. I will
|
||
|
say this much for the nobility: that, tyrannical, murderous,
|
||
|
rapacious, and morally rotten as they were, they were deeply and
|
||
|
enthusiastically religious. Nothing could divert them from the
|
||
|
regular and faithful performance of the pieties enjoined by the
|
||
|
Church. More than once I had seen a noble who had gotten his
|
||
|
enemy at a disadvantage, stop to pray before cutting his throat;
|
||
|
more than once I had seen a noble, after ambushing and despatching
|
||
|
his enemy, retire to the nearest wayside shrine and humbly give
|
||
|
thanks, without even waiting to rob the body. There was to be
|
||
|
nothing finer or sweeter in the life of even Benvenuto Cellini,
|
||
|
that rough-hewn saint, ten centuries later. All the nobles of
|
||
|
Britain, with their families, attended divine service morning and
|
||
|
night daily, in their private chapels, and even the worst of them
|
||
|
had family worship five or six times a day besides. The credit
|
||
|
of this belonged entirely to the Church. Although I was no friend
|
||
|
to that Catholic Church, I was obliged to admit this. And often,
|
||
|
in spite of me, I found myself saying, "What would this country
|
||
|
be without the Church?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
After prayers we had dinner in a great banqueting hall which was
|
||
|
lighted by hundreds of grease-jets, and everything was as fine and
|
||
|
lavish and rudely splendid as might become the royal degree of the
|
||
|
hosts. At the head of the hall, on a dais, was the table of the
|
||
|
king, queen, and their son, Prince Uwaine. Stretching down the hall
|
||
|
from this, was the general table, on the floor. At this, above
|
||
|
the salt, sat the visiting nobles and the grown members of their
|
||
|
families, of both sexes,--the resident Court, in effect--sixty-one
|
||
|
persons; below the salt sat minor officers of the household, with
|
||
|
their principal subordinates: altogether a hundred and eighteen
|
||
|
persons sitting, and about as many liveried servants standing
|
||
|
behind their chairs, or serving in one capacity or another. It was
|
||
|
a very fine show. In a gallery a band with cymbals, horns, harps,
|
||
|
and other horrors, opened the proceedings with what seemed to be
|
||
|
the crude first-draft or original agony of the wail known to later
|
||
|
centuries as "In the Sweet Bye and Bye." It was new, and ought
|
||
|
to have been rehearsed a little more. For some reason or other
|
||
|
the queen had the composer hanged, after dinner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After this music, the priest who stood behind the royal table said
|
||
|
a noble long grace in ostensible Latin. Then the battalion of
|
||
|
waiters broke away from their posts, and darted, rushed, flew,
|
||
|
fetched and carried, and the mighty feeding began; no words
|
||
|
anywhere, but absorbing attention to business. The rows of chops
|
||
|
opened and shut in vast unison, and the sound of it was like to
|
||
|
the muffled burr of subterranean machinery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The havoc continued an hour and a half, and unimaginable was the
|
||
|
destruction of substantials. Of the chief feature of the feast
|
||
|
--the huge wild boar that lay stretched out so portly and imposing
|
||
|
at the start--nothing was left but the semblance of a hoop-skirt;
|
||
|
and he was but the type and symbol of what had happened to all
|
||
|
the other dishes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the pastries and so on, the heavy drinking began--and the talk.
|
||
|
Gallon after gallon of wine and mead disappeared, and everybody
|
||
|
got comfortable, then happy, then sparklingly joyous--both sexes,
|
||
|
--and by and by pretty noisy. Men told anecdotes that were terrific
|
||
|
to hear, but nobody blushed; and when the nub was sprung, the
|
||
|
assemblage let go with a horse-laugh that shook the fortress.
|
||
|
Ladies answered back with historiettes that would almost have made
|
||
|
Queen Margaret of Navarre or even the great Elizabeth of England
|
||
|
hide behind a handkerchief, but nobody hid here, but only laughed
|
||
|
--howled, you may say. In pretty much all of these dreadful stories,
|
||
|
ecclesiastics were the hardy heroes, but that didn't worry the
|
||
|
chaplain any, he had his laugh with the rest; more than that, upon
|
||
|
invitation he roared out a song which was of as daring a sort as
|
||
|
any that was sung that night.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By midnight everybody was fagged out, and sore with laughing; and,
|
||
|
as a rule, drunk: some weepingly, some affectionately, some
|
||
|
hilariously, some quarrelsomely, some dead and under the table.
|
||
|
Of the ladies, the worst spectacle was a lovely young duchess, whose
|
||
|
wedding-eve this was; and indeed she was a spectacle, sure enough.
|
||
|
Just as she was she could have sat in advance for the portrait of the
|
||
|
young daughter of the Regent d'Orleans, at the famous dinner whence
|
||
|
she was carried, foul-mouthed, intoxicated, and helpless, to her bed,
|
||
|
in the lost and lamented days of the Ancient Regime.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Suddenly, even while the priest was lifting his hands, and all
|
||
|
conscious heads were bowed in reverent expectation of the coming
|
||
|
blessing, there appeared under the arch of the far-off door at
|
||
|
the bottom of the hall an old and bent and white-haired lady,
|
||
|
leaning upon a crutch-stick; and she lifted the stick and pointed it
|
||
|
toward the queen and cried out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The wrath and curse of God fall upon you, woman without pity,
|
||
|
who have slain mine innocent grandchild and made desolate this
|
||
|
old heart that had nor chick, nor friend nor stay nor comfort in
|
||
|
all this world but him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Everybody crossed himself in a grisly fright, for a curse was an
|
||
|
awful thing to those people; but the queen rose up majestic, with
|
||
|
the death-light in her eye, and flung back this ruthless command:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lay hands on her! To the stake with her!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The guards left their posts to obey. It was a shame; it was a
|
||
|
cruel thing to see. What could be done? Sandy gave me a look;
|
||
|
I knew she had another inspiration. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do what you choose."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was up and facing toward the queen in a moment. She indicated
|
||
|
me, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Madame, _he_ saith this may not be. Recall the commandment, or he
|
||
|
will dissolve the castle and it shall vanish away like the instable
|
||
|
fabric of a dream!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Confound it, what a crazy contract to pledge a person to! What if
|
||
|
the queen--
|
||
|
|
||
|
But my consternation subsided there, and my panic passed off;
|
||
|
for the queen, all in a collapse, made no show of resistance but
|
||
|
gave a countermanding sign and sunk into her seat. When she reached
|
||
|
it she was sober. So were many of the others. The assemblage rose,
|
||
|
whiffed ceremony to the winds, and rushed for the door like a mob;
|
||
|
overturning chairs, smashing crockery, tugging, struggling,
|
||
|
shouldering, crowding--anything to get out before I should change
|
||
|
my mind and puff the castle into the measureless dim vacancies of
|
||
|
space. Well, well, well, they _were_ a superstitious lot. It is
|
||
|
all a body can do to conceive of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The poor queen was so scared and humbled that she was even afraid
|
||
|
to hang the composer without first consulting me. I was very sorry
|
||
|
for her--indeed, any one would have been, for she was really
|
||
|
suffering; so I was willing to do anything that was reasonable, and
|
||
|
had no desire to carry things to wanton extremities. I therefore
|
||
|
considered the matter thoughtfully, and ended by having the
|
||
|
musicians ordered into our presence to play that Sweet Bye and
|
||
|
Bye again, which they did. Then I saw that she was right, and
|
||
|
gave her permission to hang the whole band. This little relaxation
|
||
|
of sternness had a good effect upon the queen. A statesman gains
|
||
|
little by the arbitrary exercise of iron-clad authority upon all
|
||
|
occasions that offer, for this wounds the just pride of his
|
||
|
subordinates, and thus tends to undermine his strength. A little
|
||
|
concession, now and then, where it can do no harm, is the wiser policy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now that the queen was at ease in her mind once more, and measurably
|
||
|
happy, her wine naturally began to assert itself again, and it got
|
||
|
a little the start of her. I mean it set her music going--her silver
|
||
|
bell of a tongue. Dear me, she was a master talker. It would not
|
||
|
become me to suggest that it was pretty late and that I was a tired
|
||
|
man and very sleepy. I wished I had gone off to bed when I had
|
||
|
the chance. Now I must stick it out; there was no other way. So
|
||
|
she tinkled along and along, in the otherwise profound and ghostly
|
||
|
hush of the sleeping castle, until by and by there came, as if
|
||
|
from deep down under us, a far-away sound, as of a muffled shriek
|
||
|
--with an expression of agony about it that made my flesh crawl.
|
||
|
The queen stopped, and her eyes lighted with pleasure; she tilted
|
||
|
her graceful head as a bird does when it listens. The sound bored
|
||
|
its way up through the stillness again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is it?" I said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is truly a stubborn soul, and endureth long. It is many hours now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Endureth what?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The rack. Come--ye shall see a blithe sight. An he yield not
|
||
|
his secret now, ye shall see him torn asunder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
What a silky smooth hellion she was; and so composed and serene,
|
||
|
when the cords all down my legs were hurting in sympathy with that
|
||
|
man's pain. Conducted by mailed guards bearing flaring torches,
|
||
|
we tramped along echoing corridors, and down stone stairways dank
|
||
|
and dripping, and smelling of mould and ages of imprisoned night
|
||
|
--a chill, uncanny journey and a long one, and not made the shorter
|
||
|
or the cheerier by the sorceress's talk, which was about this
|
||
|
sufferer and his crime. He had been accused by an anonymous
|
||
|
informer, of having killed a stag in the royal preserves. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Anonymous testimony isn't just the right thing, your Highness.
|
||
|
It were fairer to confront the accused with the accuser."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had not thought of that, it being but of small consequence.
|
||
|
But an I would, I could not, for that the accuser came masked by
|
||
|
night, and told the forester, and straightway got him hence again,
|
||
|
and so the forester knoweth him not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then is this Unknown the only person who saw the stag killed?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, _no_ man _saw_ the killing, but this Unknown saw this hardy
|
||
|
wretch near to the spot where the stag lay, and came with right
|
||
|
loyal zeal and betrayed him to the forester."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So the Unknown was near the dead stag, too? Isn't it just possible
|
||
|
that he did the killing himself? His loyal zeal--in a mask--looks
|
||
|
just a shade suspicious. But what is your highness's idea for
|
||
|
racking the prisoner? Where is the profit?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He will not confess, else; and then were his soul lost. For his
|
||
|
crime his life is forfeited by the law--and of a surety will I see
|
||
|
that he payeth it!--but it were peril to my own soul to let him
|
||
|
die unconfessed and unabsolved. Nay, I were a fool to fling me
|
||
|
into hell for _his_ accommodation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, your Highness, suppose he has nothing to confess?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As to that, we shall see, anon. An I rack him to death and he
|
||
|
confess not, it will peradventure show that he had indeed naught
|
||
|
to confess--ye will grant that that is sooth? Then shall I not be
|
||
|
damned for an unconfessed man that had naught to confess
|
||
|
--wherefore, I shall be safe."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the stubborn unreasoning of the time. It was useless to
|
||
|
argue with her. Arguments have no chance against petrified
|
||
|
training; they wear it as little as the waves wear a cliff. And
|
||
|
her training was everybody's. The brightest intellect in the land
|
||
|
would not have been able to see that her position was defective.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we entered the rack-cell I caught a picture that will not go
|
||
|
from me; I wish it would. A native young giant of thirty or
|
||
|
thereabouts lay stretched upon the frame on his back, with his
|
||
|
wrists and ankles tied to ropes which led over windlasses at either
|
||
|
end. There was no color in him; his features were contorted and
|
||
|
set, and sweat-drops stood upon his forehead. A priest bent over
|
||
|
him on each side; the executioner stood by; guards were on duty;
|
||
|
smoking torches stood in sockets along the walls; in a corner
|
||
|
crouched a poor young creature, her face drawn with anguish,
|
||
|
a half-wild and hunted look in her eyes, and in her lap lay a little
|
||
|
child asleep. Just as we stepped across the threshold the
|
||
|
executioner gave his machine a slight turn, which wrung a cry
|
||
|
from both the prisoner and the woman; but I shouted, and the
|
||
|
executioner released the strain without waiting to see who spoke.
|
||
|
I could not let this horror go on; it would have killed me to
|
||
|
see it. I asked the queen to let me clear the place and speak
|
||
|
to the prisoner privately; and when she was going to object I spoke
|
||
|
in a low voice and said I did not want to make a scene before
|
||
|
her servants, but I must have my way; for I was King Arthur's
|
||
|
representative, and was speaking in his name. She saw she had
|
||
|
to yield. I asked her to indorse me to these people, and then
|
||
|
leave me. It was not pleasant for her, but she took the pill;
|
||
|
and even went further than I was meaning to require. I only wanted
|
||
|
the backing of her own authority; but she said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye will do in all things as this lord shall command. It is The Boss."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was certainly a good word to conjure with: you could see it
|
||
|
by the squirming of these rats. The queen's guards fell into line,
|
||
|
and she and they marched away, with their torch-bearers, and woke
|
||
|
the echoes of the cavernous tunnels with the measured beat of their
|
||
|
retreating footfalls. I had the prisoner taken from the rack and
|
||
|
placed upon his bed, and medicaments applied to his hurts, and
|
||
|
wine given him to drink. The woman crept near and looked on,
|
||
|
eagerly, lovingly, but timorously,--like one who fears a repulse;
|
||
|
indeed, she tried furtively to touch the man's forehead, and jumped
|
||
|
back, the picture of fright, when I turned unconsciously toward
|
||
|
her. It was pitiful to see.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lord," I said, "stroke him, lass, if you want to. Do anything
|
||
|
you're a mind to; don't mind me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Why, her eyes were as grateful as an animal's, when you do it
|
||
|
a kindness that it understands. The baby was out of her way and
|
||
|
she had her cheek against the man's in a minute and her hands
|
||
|
fondling his hair, and her happy tears running down. The man
|
||
|
revived and caressed his wife with his eyes, which was all he
|
||
|
could do. I judged I might clear the den, now, and I did; cleared
|
||
|
it of all but the family and myself. Then I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, my friend, tell me your side of this matter; I know
|
||
|
the other side."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man moved his head in sign of refusal. But the woman looked
|
||
|
pleased--as it seemed to me--pleased with my suggestion. I went on--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know of me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. All do, in Arthur's realms."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If my reputation has come to you right and straight, you should
|
||
|
not be afraid to speak."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The woman broke in, eagerly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, fair my lord, do thou persuade him! Thou canst an thou wilt.
|
||
|
Ah, he suffereth so; and it is for me--for _me_! And how can I bear it?
|
||
|
I would I might see him die--a sweet, swift death; oh, my Hugo,
|
||
|
I cannot bear this one!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And she fell to sobbing and grovelling about my feet, and still
|
||
|
imploring. Imploring what? The man's death? I could not quite
|
||
|
get the bearings of the thing. But Hugo interrupted her and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Peace! Ye wit not what ye ask. Shall I starve whom I love,
|
||
|
to win a gentle death? I wend thou knewest me better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," I said, "I can't quite make this out. It is a puzzle. Now--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, dear my lord, an ye will but persuade him! Consider how
|
||
|
these his tortures wound me! Oh, and he will not speak!--whereas,
|
||
|
the healing, the solace that lie in a blessed swift death--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What _are_ you maundering about? He's going out from here a free
|
||
|
man and whole--he's not going to die."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man's white face lit up, and the woman flung herself at me
|
||
|
in a most surprising explosion of joy, and cried out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is saved!--for it is the king's word by the mouth of the king's
|
||
|
servant--Arthur, the king whose word is gold!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then you do believe I can be trusted, after all. Why
|
||
|
didn't you before?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who doubted? Not I, indeed; and not she."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, why wouldn't you tell me your story, then?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye had made no promise; else had it been otherwise."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I see, I see.... And yet I believe I don't quite see, after all.
|
||
|
You stood the torture and refused to confess; which shows plain
|
||
|
enough to even the dullest understanding that you had nothing
|
||
|
to confess--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I, my lord? How so? It was I that killed the deer!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You _did_? Oh, dear, this is the most mixed-up business that ever--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear lord, I begged him on my knees to confess, but--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You _did_! It gets thicker and thicker. What did you want him
|
||
|
to do that for?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sith it would bring him a quick death and save him all this
|
||
|
cruel pain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well--yes, there is reason in that. But _he_ didn't want the
|
||
|
quick death."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He? Why, of a surety he _did_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, why in the world _didn't_ he confess?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, sweet sir, and leave my wife and chick without bread and shelter?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, heart of gold, now I see it! The bitter law takes the convicted
|
||
|
man's estate and beggars his widow and his orphans. They could
|
||
|
torture you to death, but without conviction or confession they
|
||
|
could not rob your wife and baby. You stood by them like a man;
|
||
|
and _you_--true wife and the woman that you are--you would have
|
||
|
bought him release from torture at cost to yourself of slow
|
||
|
starvation and death--well, it humbles a body to think what your
|
||
|
sex can do when it comes to self-sacrifice. I'll book you both
|
||
|
for my colony; you'll like it there; it's a Factory where I'm going
|
||
|
to turn groping and grubbing automata into _men_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
IN THE QUEEN'S DUNGEONS
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I arranged all that; and I had the man sent to his home.
|
||
|
I had a great desire to rack the executioner; not because he was
|
||
|
a good, painstaking and paingiving official,--for surely it was
|
||
|
not to his discredit that he performed his functions well--but to
|
||
|
pay him back for wantonly cuffing and otherwise distressing that
|
||
|
young woman. The priests told me about this, and were generously
|
||
|
hot to have him punished. Something of this disagreeable sort
|
||
|
was turning up every now and then. I mean, episodes that showed
|
||
|
that not all priests were frauds and self-seekers, but that many,
|
||
|
even the great majority, of these that were down on the ground
|
||
|
among the common people, were sincere and right-hearted, and
|
||
|
devoted to the alleviation of human troubles and sufferings.
|
||
|
Well, it was a thing which could not be helped, so I seldom fretted
|
||
|
about it, and never many minutes at a time; it has never been my
|
||
|
way to bother much about things which you can't cure. But I did
|
||
|
not like it, for it was just the sort of thing to keep people
|
||
|
reconciled to an Established Church. We _must_ have a religion
|
||
|
--it goes without saying--but my idea is, to have it cut up into
|
||
|
forty free sects, so that they will police each other, as had been
|
||
|
the case in the United States in my time. Concentration of power
|
||
|
in a political machine is bad; and an Established Church is
|
||
|
only a political machine; it was invented for that; it is nursed,
|
||
|
cradled, preserved for that; it is an enemy to human liberty, and
|
||
|
does no good which it could not better do in a split-up and scattered
|
||
|
condition. That wasn't law; it wasn't gospel: it was only
|
||
|
an opinion--my opinion, and I was only a man, one man: so it wasn't
|
||
|
worth any more than the pope's--or any less, for that matter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I couldn't rack the executioner, neither would I overlook
|
||
|
the just complaint of the priests. The man must be punished
|
||
|
somehow or other, so I degraded him from his office and made him
|
||
|
leader of the band--the new one that was to be started. He begged
|
||
|
hard, and said he couldn't play--a plausible excuse, but too thin;
|
||
|
there wasn't a musician in the country that could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The queen was a good deal outraged, next morning when she found
|
||
|
she was going to have neither Hugo's life nor his property. But
|
||
|
I told her she must bear this cross; that while by law and custom
|
||
|
she certainly was entitled to both the man's life and his property,
|
||
|
there were extenuating circumstances, and so in Arthur the king's
|
||
|
name I had pardoned him. The deer was ravaging the man's fields,
|
||
|
and he had killed it in sudden passion, and not for gain; and he
|
||
|
had carried it into the royal forest in the hope that that might make
|
||
|
detection of the misdoer impossible. Confound her, I couldn't
|
||
|
make her see that sudden passion is an extenuating circumstance
|
||
|
in the killing of venison--or of a person--so I gave it up and let
|
||
|
her sulk it out. I _did_ think I was going to make her see it by
|
||
|
remarking that her own sudden passion in the case of the page
|
||
|
modified that crime.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Crime!" she exclaimed. "How thou talkest! Crime, forsooth!
|
||
|
Man, I am going to _pay_ for him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Oh, it was no use to waste sense on her. Training--training is
|
||
|
everything; training is all there is _to_ a person. We speak of
|
||
|
nature; it is folly; there is no such thing as nature; what we
|
||
|
call by that misleading name is merely heredity and training.
|
||
|
We have no thoughts of our own, no opinions of our own; they are
|
||
|
transmitted to us, trained into us. All that is original in us,
|
||
|
and therefore fairly creditable or discreditable to us, can be
|
||
|
covered up and hidden by the point of a cambric needle, all the
|
||
|
rest being atoms contributed by, and inherited from, a procession
|
||
|
of ancestors that stretches back a billion years to the Adam-clam
|
||
|
or grasshopper or monkey from whom our race has been so tediously
|
||
|
and ostentatiously and unprofitably developed. And as for me,
|
||
|
all that I think about in this plodding sad pilgrimage, this
|
||
|
pathetic drift between the eternities, is to look out and humbly
|
||
|
live a pure and high and blameless life, and save that one
|
||
|
microscopic atom in me that is truly _me_: the rest may land in
|
||
|
Sheol and welcome for all I care.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No, confound her, her intellect was good, she had brains enough,
|
||
|
but her training made her an ass--that is, from a many-centuries-later
|
||
|
point of view. To kill the page was no crime--it was her right;
|
||
|
and upon her right she stood, serenely and unconscious of offense.
|
||
|
She was a result of generations of training in the unexamined and
|
||
|
unassailed belief that the law which permitted her to kill a subject
|
||
|
when she chose was a perfectly right and righteous one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, we must give even Satan his due. She deserved a compliment
|
||
|
for one thing; and I tried to pay it, but the words stuck in my
|
||
|
throat. She had a right to kill the boy, but she was in no wise
|
||
|
obliged to pay for him. That was law for some other people, but
|
||
|
not for her. She knew quite well that she was doing a large and
|
||
|
generous thing to pay for that lad, and that I ought in common
|
||
|
fairness to come out with something handsome about it, but I
|
||
|
couldn't--my mouth refused. I couldn't help seeing, in my fancy,
|
||
|
that poor old grandma with the broken heart, and that fair young
|
||
|
creature lying butchered, his little silken pomps and vanities
|
||
|
laced with his golden blood. How could she _pay_ for him! _Whom_
|
||
|
could she pay? And so, well knowing that this woman, trained
|
||
|
as she had been, deserved praise, even adulation, I was yet not
|
||
|
able to utter it, trained as I had been. The best I could do was
|
||
|
to fish up a compliment from outside, so to speak--and the pity
|
||
|
of it was, that it was true:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Madame, your people will adore you for this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quite true, but I meant to hang her for it some day if I lived.
|
||
|
Some of those laws were too bad, altogether too bad. A master
|
||
|
might kill his slave for nothing--for mere spite, malice, or
|
||
|
to pass the time--just as we have seen that the crowned head could
|
||
|
do it with _his_ slave, that is to say, anybody. A gentleman could
|
||
|
kill a free commoner, and pay for him--cash or garden-truck.
|
||
|
A noble could kill a noble without expense, as far as the law was
|
||
|
concerned, but reprisals in kind were to be expected. _Any_body
|
||
|
could kill _some_body, except the commoner and the slave; these had
|
||
|
no privileges. If they killed, it was murder, and the law wouldn't
|
||
|
stand murder. It made short work of the experimenter--and of
|
||
|
his family, too, if he murdered somebody who belonged up among
|
||
|
the ornamental ranks. If a commoner gave a noble even so much
|
||
|
as a Damiens-scratch which didn't kill or even hurt, he got Damiens'
|
||
|
dose for it just the same; they pulled him to rags and tatters
|
||
|
with horses, and all the world came to see the show, and crack
|
||
|
jokes, and have a good time; and some of the performances of the
|
||
|
best people present were as tough, and as properly unprintable,
|
||
|
as any that have been printed by the pleasant Casanova in his
|
||
|
chapter about the dismemberment of Louis XV's poor awkward enemy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had had enough of this grisly place by this time, and wanted
|
||
|
to leave, but I couldn't, because I had something on my mind that
|
||
|
my conscience kept prodding me about, and wouldn't let me forget.
|
||
|
If I had the remaking of man, he wouldn't have any conscience.
|
||
|
It is one of the most disagreeable things connected with a person;
|
||
|
and although it certainly does a great deal of good, it cannot
|
||
|
be said to pay, in the long run; it would be much better to have
|
||
|
less good and more comfort. Still, this is only my opinion, and
|
||
|
I am only one man; others, with less experience, may think
|
||
|
differently. They have a right to their view. I only stand
|
||
|
to this: I have noticed my conscience for many years, and I know
|
||
|
it is more trouble and bother to me than anything else I started
|
||
|
with. I suppose that in the beginning I prized it, because we
|
||
|
prize anything that is ours; and yet how foolish it was to think so.
|
||
|
If we look at it in another way, we see how absurd it is: if I had
|
||
|
an anvil in me would I prize it? Of course not. And yet when you
|
||
|
come to think, there is no real difference between a conscience
|
||
|
and an anvil--I mean for comfort. I have noticed it a thousand
|
||
|
times. And you could dissolve an anvil with acids, when you
|
||
|
couldn't stand it any longer; but there isn't any way that you can
|
||
|
work off a conscience--at least so it will stay worked off; not
|
||
|
that I know of, anyway.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was something I wanted to do before leaving, but it was
|
||
|
a disagreeable matter, and I hated to go at it. Well, it bothered
|
||
|
me all the morning. I could have mentioned it to the old king,
|
||
|
but what would be the use?--he was but an extinct volcano; he had
|
||
|
been active in his time, but his fire was out, this good while,
|
||
|
he was only a stately ash-pile now; gentle enough, and kindly
|
||
|
enough for my purpose, without doubt, but not usable. He was
|
||
|
nothing, this so-called king: the queen was the only power there.
|
||
|
And she was a Vesuvius. As a favor, she might consent to warm
|
||
|
a flock of sparrows for you, but then she might take that very
|
||
|
opportunity to turn herself loose and bury a city. However,
|
||
|
I reflected that as often as any other way, when you are expecting
|
||
|
the worst, you get something that is not so bad, after all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So I braced up and placed my matter before her royal Highness.
|
||
|
I said I had been having a general jail-delivery at Camelot and
|
||
|
among neighboring castles, and with her permission I would like
|
||
|
to examine her collection, her bric-a-brac--that is to say, her
|
||
|
prisoners. She resisted; but I was expecting that. But she finally
|
||
|
consented. I was expecting that, too, but not so soon. That about
|
||
|
ended my discomfort. She called her guards and torches, and
|
||
|
we went down into the dungeons. These were down under the castle's
|
||
|
foundations, and mainly were small cells hollowed out of the living
|
||
|
rock. Some of these cells had no light at all. In one of them was
|
||
|
a woman, in foul rags, who sat on the ground, and would not answer
|
||
|
a question or speak a word, but only looked up at us once or twice,
|
||
|
through a cobweb of tangled hair, as if to see what casual thing
|
||
|
it might be that was disturbing with sound and light the meaningless
|
||
|
dull dream that was become her life; after that, she sat bowed,
|
||
|
with her dirt-caked fingers idly interlocked in her lap, and gave
|
||
|
no further sign. This poor rack of bones was a woman of middle
|
||
|
age, apparently; but only apparently; she had been there nine
|
||
|
years, and was eighteen when she entered. She was a commoner,
|
||
|
and had been sent here on her bridal night by Sir Breuse Sance Pite,
|
||
|
a neighboring lord whose vassal her father was, and to which said
|
||
|
lord she had refused what has since been called le droit du
|
||
|
seigneur, and, moreover, had opposed violence to violence and spilt
|
||
|
half a gill of his almost sacred blood. The young husband had
|
||
|
interfered at that point, believing the bride's life in danger,
|
||
|
and had flung the noble out into the midst of the humble and
|
||
|
trembling wedding guests, in the parlor, and left him there
|
||
|
astonished at this strange treatment, and implacably embittered
|
||
|
against both bride and groom. The said lord being cramped for
|
||
|
dungeon-room had asked the queen to accommodate his two criminals,
|
||
|
and here in her bastile they had been ever since; hither, indeed,
|
||
|
they had come before their crime was an hour old, and had never
|
||
|
seen each other since. Here they were, kenneled like toads in the
|
||
|
same rock; they had passed nine pitch dark years within fifty feet
|
||
|
of each other, yet neither knew whether the other was alive or not.
|
||
|
All the first years, their only question had been--asked with
|
||
|
beseechings and tears that might have moved stones, in time,
|
||
|
perhaps, but hearts are not stones: "Is he alive?" "Is she alive?"
|
||
|
But they had never got an answer; and at last that question was
|
||
|
not asked any more--or any other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I wanted to see the man, after hearing all this. He was thirty-four
|
||
|
years old, and looked sixty. He sat upon a squared block of
|
||
|
stone, with his head bent down, his forearms resting on his knees,
|
||
|
his long hair hanging like a fringe before his face, and he was
|
||
|
muttering to himself. He raised his chin and looked us slowly
|
||
|
over, in a listless dull way, blinking with the distress of the
|
||
|
torchlight, then dropped his head and fell to muttering again
|
||
|
and took no further notice of us. There were some pathetically
|
||
|
suggestive dumb witnesses present. On his wrists and ankles were
|
||
|
cicatrices, old smooth scars, and fastened to the stone on which
|
||
|
he sat was a chain with manacles and fetters attached; but this
|
||
|
apparatus lay idle on the ground, and was thick with rust. Chains
|
||
|
cease to be needed after the spirit has gone out of a prisoner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not rouse the man; so I said we would take him to her,
|
||
|
and see--to the bride who was the fairest thing in the earth to him,
|
||
|
once--roses, pearls, and dew made flesh, for him; a wonder-work,
|
||
|
the master-work of nature: with eyes like no other eyes, and voice
|
||
|
like no other voice, and a freshness, and lithe young grace, and
|
||
|
beauty, that belonged properly to the creatures of dreams--as he
|
||
|
thought--and to no other. The sight of her would set his stagnant
|
||
|
blood leaping; the sight of her--
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it was a disappointment. They sat together on the ground and
|
||
|
looked dimly wondering into each other's faces a while, with a
|
||
|
sort of weak animal curiosity; then forgot each other's presence,
|
||
|
and dropped their eyes, and you saw that they were away again and
|
||
|
wandering in some far land of dreams and shadows that we know
|
||
|
nothing about.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had them taken out and sent to their friends. The queen did not
|
||
|
like it much. Not that she felt any personal interest in the matter,
|
||
|
but she thought it disrespectful to Sir Breuse Sance Pite. However,
|
||
|
I assured her that if he found he couldn't stand it I would fix him
|
||
|
so that he could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I set forty-seven prisoners loose out of those awful rat-holes,
|
||
|
and left only one in captivity. He was a lord, and had killed
|
||
|
another lord, a sort of kinsman of the queen. That other lord
|
||
|
had ambushed him to assassinate him, but this fellow had got the
|
||
|
best of him and cut his throat. However, it was not for that that
|
||
|
I left him jailed, but for maliciously destroying the only public
|
||
|
well in one of his wretched villages. The queen was bound to hang
|
||
|
him for killing her kinsman, but I would not allow it: it was no
|
||
|
crime to kill an assassin. But I said I was willing to let her
|
||
|
hang him for destroying the well; so she concluded to put up with
|
||
|
that, as it was better than nothing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Dear me, for what trifling offenses the most of those forty-seven
|
||
|
men and women were shut up there! Indeed, some were there for
|
||
|
no distinct offense at all, but only to gratify somebody's spite;
|
||
|
and not always the queen's by any means, but a friend's. The newest
|
||
|
prisoner's crime was a mere remark which he had made. He said
|
||
|
he believed that men were about all alike, and one man as good
|
||
|
as another, barring clothes. He said he believed that if you were
|
||
|
to strip the nation naked and send a stranger through the crowd, he
|
||
|
couldn't tell the king from a quack doctor, nor a duke from a hotel
|
||
|
clerk. Apparently here was a man whose brains had not been reduced
|
||
|
to an ineffectual mush by idiotic training. I set him loose and
|
||
|
sent him to the Factory.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Some of the cells carved in the living rock were just behind the
|
||
|
face of the precipice, and in each of these an arrow-slit had been
|
||
|
pierced outward to the daylight, and so the captive had a thin
|
||
|
ray from the blessed sun for his comfort. The case of one of
|
||
|
these poor fellows was particularly hard. From his dusky swallow's
|
||
|
hole high up in that vast wall of native rock he could peer out
|
||
|
through the arrow-slit and see his own home off yonder in the
|
||
|
valley; and for twenty-two years he had watched it, with heartache
|
||
|
and longing, through that crack. He could see the lights shine
|
||
|
there at night, and in the daytime he could see figures go in and
|
||
|
come out--his wife and children, some of them, no doubt, though
|
||
|
he could not make out at that distance. In the course of years
|
||
|
he noted festivities there, and tried to rejoice, and wondered
|
||
|
if they were weddings or what they might be. And he noted funerals;
|
||
|
and they wrung his heart. He could make out the coffin, but he
|
||
|
could not determine its size, and so could not tell whether it was
|
||
|
wife or child. He could see the procession form, with priests
|
||
|
and mourners, and move solemnly away, bearing the secret with
|
||
|
them. He had left behind him five children and a wife; and in
|
||
|
nineteen years he had seen five funerals issue, and none of them
|
||
|
humble enough in pomp to denote a servant. So he had lost five
|
||
|
of his treasures; there must still be one remaining--one now
|
||
|
infinitely, unspeakably precious,--but _which_ one? wife, or child?
|
||
|
That was the question that tortured him, by night and by day,
|
||
|
asleep and awake. Well, to have an interest, of some sort, and
|
||
|
half a ray of light, when you are in a dungeon, is a great support
|
||
|
to the body and preserver of the intellect. This man was in pretty
|
||
|
good condition yet. By the time he had finished telling me his
|
||
|
distressful tale, I was in the same state of mind that you would
|
||
|
have been in yourself, if you have got average human curiosity;
|
||
|
that is to say, I was as burning up as he was to find out which
|
||
|
member of the family it was that was left. So I took him over
|
||
|
home myself; and an amazing kind of a surprise party it was, too
|
||
|
--typhoons and cyclones of frantic joy, and whole Niagaras of happy
|
||
|
tears; and by George! we found the aforetime young matron graying
|
||
|
toward the imminent verge of her half century, and the babies all
|
||
|
men and women, and some of them married and experimenting familywise
|
||
|
themselves--for not a soul of the tribe was dead! Conceive of the
|
||
|
ingenious devilishness of that queen: she had a special hatred for
|
||
|
this prisoner, and she had _invented_ all those funerals herself,
|
||
|
to scorch his heart with; and the sublimest stroke of genius of
|
||
|
the whole thing was leaving the family-invoice a funeral _short_,
|
||
|
so as to let him wear his poor old soul out guessing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But for me, he never would have got out. Morgan le Fay hated him
|
||
|
with her whole heart, and she never would have softened toward him.
|
||
|
And yet his crime was committed more in thoughtlessness than
|
||
|
deliberate depravity. He had said she had red hair. Well, she
|
||
|
had; but that was no way to speak of it. When red-headed people
|
||
|
are above a certain social grade their hair is auburn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Consider it: among these forty-seven captives there were five
|
||
|
whose names, offenses, and dates of incarceration were no longer
|
||
|
known! One woman and four men--all bent, and wrinkled, and
|
||
|
mind-extinguished patriarchs. They themselves had long ago forgotten
|
||
|
these details; at any rate they had mere vague theories about them,
|
||
|
nothing definite and nothing that they repeated twice in the same
|
||
|
way. The succession of priests whose office it had been to pray
|
||
|
daily with the captives and remind them that God had put them
|
||
|
there, for some wise purpose or other, and teach them that patience,
|
||
|
humbleness, and submission to oppression was what He loved to see
|
||
|
in parties of a subordinate rank, had traditions about these poor
|
||
|
old human ruins, but nothing more. These traditions went but
|
||
|
little way, for they concerned the length of the incarceration only,
|
||
|
and not the names of the offenses. And even by the help of
|
||
|
tradition the only thing that could be proven was that none of
|
||
|
the five had seen daylight for thirty-five years: how much longer
|
||
|
this privation has lasted was not guessable. The king and the queen
|
||
|
knew nothing about these poor creatures, except that they were
|
||
|
heirlooms, assets inherited, along with the throne, from the former
|
||
|
firm. Nothing of their history had been transmitted with their
|
||
|
persons, and so the inheriting owners had considered them of no
|
||
|
value, and had felt no interest in them. I said to the queen:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then why in the world didn't you set them free?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The question was a puzzler. She didn't know _why_ she hadn't, the
|
||
|
thing had never come up in her mind. So here she was, forecasting
|
||
|
the veritable history of future prisoners of the Castle d'If,
|
||
|
without knowing it. It seemed plain to me now, that with her
|
||
|
training, those inherited prisoners were merely property--nothing
|
||
|
more, nothing less. Well, when we inherit property, it does not
|
||
|
occur to us to throw it away, even when we do not value it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I brought my procession of human bats up into the open world
|
||
|
and the glare of the afternoon sun--previously blindfolding them,
|
||
|
in charity for eyes so long untortured by light--they were a
|
||
|
spectacle to look at. Skeletons, scarecrows, goblins, pathetic
|
||
|
frights, every one; legitimatest possible children of Monarchy
|
||
|
by the Grace of God and the Established Church. I muttered absently:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I _wish_ I could photograph them!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
You have seen that kind of people who will never let on that they
|
||
|
don't know the meaning of a new big word. The more ignorant they
|
||
|
are, the more pitifully certain they are to pretend you haven't
|
||
|
shot over their heads. The queen was just one of that sort, and
|
||
|
was always making the stupidest blunders by reason of it. She
|
||
|
hesitated a moment; then her face brightened up with sudden
|
||
|
comprehension, and she said she would do it for me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought to myself: She? why what can she know about photography?
|
||
|
But it was a poor time to be thinking. When I looked around, she
|
||
|
was moving on the procession with an axe!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, she certainly was a curious one, was Morgan le Fay. I have
|
||
|
seen a good many kinds of women in my time, but she laid over them
|
||
|
all for variety. And how sharply characteristic of her this episode
|
||
|
was. She had no more idea than a horse of how to photograph
|
||
|
a procession; but being in doubt, it was just like her to try
|
||
|
to do it with an axe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIX
|
||
|
|
||
|
KNIGHT-ERRANTRY AS A TRADE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sandy and I were on the road again, next morning, bright and early.
|
||
|
It was so good to open up one's lungs and take in whole luscious
|
||
|
barrels-ful of the blessed God's untainted, dew-fashioned,
|
||
|
woodland-scented air once more, after suffocating body and mind for two
|
||
|
days and nights in the moral and physical stenches of that intolerable
|
||
|
old buzzard-roost! I mean, for me: of course the place was all
|
||
|
right and agreeable enough for Sandy, for she had been used to
|
||
|
high life all her days.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Poor girl, her jaws had had a wearisome rest now for a while,
|
||
|
and I was expecting to get the consequences. I was right; but she
|
||
|
had stood by me most helpfully in the castle, and had mightily
|
||
|
supported and reinforced me with gigantic foolishnesses which were
|
||
|
worth more for the occasion than wisdoms double their size; so
|
||
|
I thought she had earned a right to work her mill for a while,
|
||
|
if she wanted to, and I felt not a pang when she started it up:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now turn we unto Sir Marhaus that rode with the damsel of thirty
|
||
|
winter of age southward--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you going to see if you can work up another half-stretch on
|
||
|
the trail of the cowboys, Sandy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even so, fair my lord."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go ahead, then. I won't interrupt this time, if I can help it.
|
||
|
Begin over again; start fair, and shake out all your reefs, and
|
||
|
I will load my pipe and give good attention."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now turn we unto Sir Marhaus that rode with the damsel of thirty
|
||
|
winter of age southward. And so they came into a deep forest,
|
||
|
and by fortune they were nighted, and rode along in a deep way,
|
||
|
and at the last they came into a courtelage where abode the duke
|
||
|
of South Marches, and there they asked harbour. And on the morn
|
||
|
the duke sent unto Sir Marhaus, and bad him make him ready. And
|
||
|
so Sir Marhaus arose and armed him, and there was a mass sung
|
||
|
afore him, and he brake his fast, and so mounted on horseback in
|
||
|
the court of the castle, there they should do the battle. So there
|
||
|
was the duke already on horseback, clean armed, and his six sons
|
||
|
by him, and every each had a spear in his hand, and so they
|
||
|
encountered, whereas the duke and his two sons brake their spears
|
||
|
upon him, but Sir Marhaus held up his spear and touched none of
|
||
|
them. Then came the four sons by couples, and two of them brake
|
||
|
their spears, and so did the other two. And all this while
|
||
|
Sir Marhaus touched them not. Then Sir Marhaus ran to the duke,
|
||
|
and smote him with his spear that horse and man fell to the earth.
|
||
|
And so he served his sons. And then Sir Marhaus alight down, and
|
||
|
bad the duke yield him or else he would slay him. And then some
|
||
|
of his sons recovered, and would have set upon Sir Marhaus. Then
|
||
|
Sir Marhaus said to the duke, Cease thy sons, or else I will do
|
||
|
the uttermost to you all. When the duke saw he might not escape
|
||
|
the death, he cried to his sons, and charged them to yield them
|
||
|
to Sir Marhaus. And they kneeled all down and put the pommels
|
||
|
of their swords to the knight, and so he received them. And then
|
||
|
they holp up their father, and so by their common assent promised
|
||
|
unto Sir Marhaus never to be foes unto King Arthur, and thereupon
|
||
|
at Whitsuntide after, to come he and his sons, and put them in
|
||
|
the king's grace.*
|
||
|
|
||
|
[*Footnote: The story is borrowed, language and all, from the
|
||
|
Morte d'Arthur.--M.T.]
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even so standeth the history, fair Sir Boss. Now ye shall wit
|
||
|
that that very duke and his six sons are they whom but few days
|
||
|
past you also did overcome and send to Arthur's court!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, Sandy, you can't mean it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An I speak not sooth, let it be the worse for me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well, well,--now who would ever have thought it? One
|
||
|
whole duke and six dukelets; why, Sandy, it was an elegant haul.
|
||
|
Knight-errantry is a most chuckle-headed trade, and it is tedious
|
||
|
hard work, too, but I begin to see that there _is_ money in it,
|
||
|
after all, if you have luck. Not that I would ever engage in it
|
||
|
as a business, for I wouldn't. No sound and legitimate business
|
||
|
can be established on a basis of speculation. A successful whirl
|
||
|
in the knight-errantry line--now what is it when you blow away
|
||
|
the nonsense and come down to the cold facts? It's just a corner
|
||
|
in pork, that's all, and you can't make anything else out of it.
|
||
|
You're rich--yes,--suddenly rich--for about a day, maybe a week;
|
||
|
then somebody corners the market on _you_, and down goes your
|
||
|
bucket-shop; ain't that so, Sandy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Whethersoever it be that my mind miscarrieth, bewraying simple
|
||
|
language in such sort that the words do seem to come endlong
|
||
|
and overthwart--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's no use in beating about the bush and trying to get around
|
||
|
it that way, Sandy, it's _so_, just as I say. I _know_ it's so. And,
|
||
|
moreover, when you come right down to the bedrock, knight-errantry
|
||
|
is _worse_ than pork; for whatever happens, the pork's left, and
|
||
|
so somebody's benefited anyway; but when the market breaks, in a
|
||
|
knight-errantry whirl, and every knight in the pool passes in his
|
||
|
checks, what have you got for assets? Just a rubbish-pile of
|
||
|
battered corpses and a barrel or two of busted hardware. Can you
|
||
|
call _those_ assets? Give me pork, every time. Am I right?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, peradventure my head being distraught by the manifold matters
|
||
|
whereunto the confusions of these but late adventured haps and
|
||
|
fortunings whereby not I alone nor you alone, but every each of us,
|
||
|
meseemeth--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, it's not your head, Sandy. Your head's all right, as far as
|
||
|
it goes, but you don't know business; that's where the trouble
|
||
|
is. It unfits you to argue about business, and you're wrong
|
||
|
to be always trying. However, that aside, it was a good haul,
|
||
|
anyway, and will breed a handsome crop of reputation in Arthur's
|
||
|
court. And speaking of the cowboys, what a curious country this
|
||
|
is for women and men that never get old. Now there's Morgan le Fay,
|
||
|
as fresh and young as a Vassar pullet, to all appearances, and
|
||
|
here is this old duke of the South Marches still slashing away with
|
||
|
sword and lance at his time of life, after raising such a family
|
||
|
as he has raised. As I understand it, Sir Gawaine killed seven
|
||
|
of his sons, and still he had six left for Sir Marhaus and me to
|
||
|
take into camp. And then there was that damsel of sixty winter
|
||
|
of age still excursioning around in her frosty bloom--How old
|
||
|
are you, Sandy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the first time I ever struck a still place in her. The mill
|
||
|
had shut down for repairs, or something.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE OGRE'S CASTLE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Between six and nine we made ten miles, which was plenty for a
|
||
|
horse carrying triple--man, woman, and armor; then we stopped
|
||
|
for a long nooning under some trees by a limpid brook.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Right so came by and by a knight riding; and as he drew near he
|
||
|
made dolorous moan, and by the words of it I perceived that he
|
||
|
was cursing and swearing; yet nevertheless was I glad of his
|
||
|
coming, for that I saw he bore a bulletin-board whereon in letters
|
||
|
all of shining gold was writ:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"USE PETERSON'S PROPHYLACTIC TOOTH-BRUSH--ALL THE GO."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was glad of his coming, for even by this token I knew him for
|
||
|
knight of mine. It was Sir Madok de la Montaine, a burly great
|
||
|
fellow whose chief distinction was that he had come within an ace
|
||
|
of sending Sir Launcelot down over his horse-tail once. He was
|
||
|
never long in a stranger's presence without finding some pretext
|
||
|
or other to let out that great fact. But there was another fact
|
||
|
of nearly the same size, which he never pushed upon anybody unasked,
|
||
|
and yet never withheld when asked: that was, that the reason he
|
||
|
didn't quite succeed was, that he was interrupted and sent down
|
||
|
over horse-tail himself. This innocent vast lubber did not see
|
||
|
any particular difference between the two facts. I liked him,
|
||
|
for he was earnest in his work, and very valuable. And he was so
|
||
|
fine to look at, with his broad mailed shoulders, and the grand
|
||
|
leonine set of his plumed head, and his big shield with its quaint
|
||
|
device of a gauntleted hand clutching a prophylactic tooth-brush,
|
||
|
with motto: "Try Noyoudont." This was a tooth-wash that I was
|
||
|
introducing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was aweary, he said, and indeed he looked it; but he would not
|
||
|
alight. He said he was after the stove-polish man; and with this
|
||
|
he broke out cursing and swearing anew. The bulletin-boarder
|
||
|
referred to was Sir Ossaise of Surluse, a brave knight, and of
|
||
|
considerable celebrity on account of his having tried conclusions
|
||
|
in a tournament once, with no less a Mogul than Sir Gaheris
|
||
|
himself--although not successfully. He was of a light and laughing
|
||
|
disposition, and to him nothing in this world was serious. It was
|
||
|
for this reason that I had chosen him to work up a stove-polish
|
||
|
sentiment. There were no stoves yet, and so there could be nothing
|
||
|
serious about stove-polish. All that the agent needed to do was
|
||
|
to deftly and by degrees prepare the public for the great change,
|
||
|
and have them established in predilections toward neatness against
|
||
|
the time when the stove should appear upon the stage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir Madok was very bitter, and brake out anew with cursings. He
|
||
|
said he had cursed his soul to rags; and yet he would not get down
|
||
|
from his horse, neither would he take any rest, or listen to any
|
||
|
comfort, until he should have found Sir Ossaise and settled this
|
||
|
account. It appeared, by what I could piece together of the
|
||
|
unprofane fragments of his statement, that he had chanced upon
|
||
|
Sir Ossaise at dawn of the morning, and been told that if he would
|
||
|
make a short cut across the fields and swamps and broken hills and
|
||
|
glades, he could head off a company of travelers who would be rare
|
||
|
customers for prophylactics and tooth-wash. With characteristic
|
||
|
zeal Sir Madok had plunged away at once upon this quest, and after
|
||
|
three hours of awful crosslot riding had overhauled his game. And
|
||
|
behold, it was the five patriarchs that had been released from the
|
||
|
dungeons the evening before! Poor old creatures, it was all of
|
||
|
twenty years since any one of them had known what it was to be
|
||
|
equipped with any remaining snag or remnant of a tooth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Blank-blank-blank him," said Sir Madok, "an I do not stove-polish
|
||
|
him an I may find him, leave it to me; for never no knight that
|
||
|
hight Ossaise or aught else may do me this disservice and bide
|
||
|
on live, an I may find him, the which I have thereunto sworn a
|
||
|
great oath this day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And with these words and others, he lightly took his spear and
|
||
|
gat him thence. In the middle of the afternoon we came upon one
|
||
|
of those very patriarchs ourselves, in the edge of a poor village.
|
||
|
He was basking in the love of relatives and friends whom he had not
|
||
|
seen for fifty years; and about him and caressing him were also
|
||
|
descendants of his own body whom he had never seen at all till now;
|
||
|
but to him these were all strangers, his memory was gone, his mind
|
||
|
was stagnant. It seemed incredible that a man could outlast half
|
||
|
a century shut up in a dark hole like a rat, but here were his old
|
||
|
wife and some old comrades to testify to it. They could remember
|
||
|
him as he was in the freshness and strength of his young manhood,
|
||
|
when he kissed his child and delivered it to its mother's hands
|
||
|
and went away into that long oblivion. The people at the castle
|
||
|
could not tell within half a generation the length of time the man
|
||
|
had been shut up there for his unrecorded and forgotten offense;
|
||
|
but this old wife knew; and so did her old child, who stood there
|
||
|
among her married sons and daughters trying to realize a father
|
||
|
who had been to her a name, a thought, a formless image, a tradition,
|
||
|
all her life, and now was suddenly concreted into actual flesh
|
||
|
and blood and set before her face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a curious situation; yet it is not on that account that
|
||
|
I have made room for it here, but on account of a thing which
|
||
|
seemed to me still more curious. To wit, that this dreadful matter
|
||
|
brought from these downtrodden people no outburst of rage against
|
||
|
these oppressors. They had been heritors and subjects of cruelty
|
||
|
and outrage so long that nothing could have startled them but
|
||
|
a kindness. Yes, here was a curious revelation, indeed, of the
|
||
|
depth to which this people had been sunk in slavery. Their entire
|
||
|
being was reduced to a monotonous dead level of patience, resignation,
|
||
|
dumb uncomplaining acceptance of whatever might befall them in
|
||
|
this life. Their very imagination was dead. When you can say
|
||
|
that of a man, he has struck bottom, I reckon; there is no lower
|
||
|
deep for him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I rather wished I had gone some other road. This was not the sort
|
||
|
of experience for a statesman to encounter who was planning out
|
||
|
a peaceful revolution in his mind. For it could not help bringing
|
||
|
up the unget-aroundable fact that, all gentle cant and philosophizing
|
||
|
to the contrary notwithstanding, no people in the world ever did
|
||
|
achieve their freedom by goody-goody talk and moral suasion:
|
||
|
it being immutable law that all revolutions that will succeed must
|
||
|
_begin_ in blood, whatever may answer afterward. If history teaches
|
||
|
anything, it teaches that. What this folk needed, then, was a
|
||
|
Reign of Terror and a guillotine, and I was the wrong man for them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Two days later, toward noon, Sandy began to show signs of excitement
|
||
|
and feverish expectancy. She said we were approaching the ogre's
|
||
|
castle. I was surprised into an uncomfortable shock. The object
|
||
|
of our quest had gradually dropped out of my mind; this sudden
|
||
|
resurrection of it made it seem quite a real and startling thing
|
||
|
for a moment, and roused up in me a smart interest. Sandy's
|
||
|
excitement increased every moment; and so did mine, for that sort
|
||
|
of thing is catching. My heart got to thumping. You can't reason
|
||
|
with your heart; it has its own laws, and thumps about things which
|
||
|
the intellect scorns. Presently, when Sandy slid from the horse,
|
||
|
motioned me to stop, and went creeping stealthily, with her head
|
||
|
bent nearly to her knees, toward a row of bushes that bordered
|
||
|
a declivity, the thumpings grew stronger and quicker. And they
|
||
|
kept it up while she was gaining her ambush and getting her glimpse
|
||
|
over the declivity; and also while I was creeping to her side on
|
||
|
my knees. Her eyes were burning now, as she pointed with her
|
||
|
finger, and said in a panting whisper:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The castle! The castle! Lo, where it looms!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
What a welcome disappointment I experienced! I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Castle? It is nothing but a pigsty; a pigsty with a wattled
|
||
|
fence around it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She looked surprised and distressed. The animation faded out of
|
||
|
her face; and during many moments she was lost in thought and
|
||
|
silent. Then:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was not enchanted aforetime," she said in a musing fashion,
|
||
|
as if to herself. "And how strange is this marvel, and how awful
|
||
|
--that to the one perception it is enchanted and dight in a base
|
||
|
and shameful aspect; yet to the perception of the other it is not
|
||
|
enchanted, hath suffered no change, but stands firm and stately
|
||
|
still, girt with its moat and waving its banners in the blue air
|
||
|
from its towers. And God shield us, how it pricks the heart to
|
||
|
see again these gracious captives, and the sorrow deepened in their
|
||
|
sweet faces! We have tarried along, and are to blame."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw my cue. The castle was enchanted to _me_, not to her. It would
|
||
|
be wasted time to try to argue her out of her delusion, it couldn't
|
||
|
be done; I must just humor it. So I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is a common case--the enchanting of a thing to one eye and
|
||
|
leaving it in its proper form to another. You have heard of it
|
||
|
before, Sandy, though you haven't happened to experience it.
|
||
|
But no harm is done. In fact, it is lucky the way it is. If these
|
||
|
ladies were hogs to everybody and to themselves, it would be
|
||
|
necessary to break the enchantment, and that might be impossible
|
||
|
if one failed to find out the particular process of the enchantment.
|
||
|
And hazardous, too; for in attempting a disenchantment without the
|
||
|
true key, you are liable to err, and turn your hogs into dogs,
|
||
|
and the dogs into cats, the cats into rats, and so on, and end by
|
||
|
reducing your materials to nothing finally, or to an odorless gas
|
||
|
which you can't follow--which, of course, amounts to the same
|
||
|
thing. But here, by good luck, no one's eyes but mine are under
|
||
|
the enchantment, and so it is of no consequence to dissolve it.
|
||
|
These ladies remain ladies to you, and to themselves, and to
|
||
|
everybody else; and at the same time they will suffer in no way
|
||
|
from my delusion, for when I know that an ostensible hog is a
|
||
|
lady, that is enough for me, I know how to treat her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thanks, oh, sweet my lord, thou talkest like an angel. And I know
|
||
|
that thou wilt deliver them, for that thou art minded to great
|
||
|
deeds and art as strong a knight of your hands and as brave to will
|
||
|
and to do, as any that is on live."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will not leave a princess in the sty, Sandy. Are those three
|
||
|
yonder that to my disordered eyes are starveling swine-herds--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The ogres, Are _they_ changed also? It is most wonderful. Now
|
||
|
am I fearful; for how canst thou strike with sure aim when five of
|
||
|
their nine cubits of stature are to thee invisible? Ah, go warily,
|
||
|
fair sir; this is a mightier emprise than I wend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You be easy, Sandy. All I need to know is, how _much_ of an ogre
|
||
|
is invisible; then I know how to locate his vitals. Don't you be
|
||
|
afraid, I will make short work of these bunco-steerers. Stay
|
||
|
where you are."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I left Sandy kneeling there, corpse-faced but plucky and hopeful,
|
||
|
and rode down to the pigsty, and struck up a trade with the
|
||
|
swine-herds. I won their gratitude by buying out all the hogs
|
||
|
at the lump sum of sixteen pennies, which was rather above latest
|
||
|
quotations. I was just in time; for the Church, the lord of the
|
||
|
manor, and the rest of the tax-gatherers would have been along
|
||
|
next day and swept off pretty much all the stock, leaving the
|
||
|
swine-herds very short of hogs and Sandy out of princesses. But
|
||
|
now the tax people could be paid in cash, and there would be
|
||
|
a stake left besides. One of the men had ten children; and he
|
||
|
said that last year when a priest came and of his ten pigs took
|
||
|
the fattest one for tithes, the wife burst out upon him, and offered
|
||
|
him a child and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thou beast without bowels of mercy, why leave me my child, yet
|
||
|
rob me of the wherewithal to feed it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
How curious. The same thing had happened in the Wales of my day,
|
||
|
under this same old Established Church, which was supposed by many
|
||
|
to have changed its nature when it changed its disguise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sent the three men away, and then opened the sty gate and beckoned
|
||
|
Sandy to come--which she did; and not leisurely, but with the rush
|
||
|
of a prairie fire. And when I saw her fling herself upon those
|
||
|
hogs, with tears of joy running down her cheeks, and strain them
|
||
|
to her heart, and kiss them, and caress them, and call them
|
||
|
reverently by grand princely names, I was ashamed of her, ashamed
|
||
|
of the human race.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had to drive those hogs home--ten miles; and no ladies were
|
||
|
ever more fickle-minded or contrary. They would stay in no road,
|
||
|
no path; they broke out through the brush on all sides, and flowed
|
||
|
away in all directions, over rocks, and hills, and the roughest
|
||
|
places they could find. And they must not be struck, or roughly
|
||
|
accosted; Sandy could not bear to see them treated in ways unbecoming
|
||
|
their rank. The troublesomest old sow of the lot had to be called
|
||
|
my Lady, and your Highness, like the rest. It is annoying and
|
||
|
difficult to scour around after hogs, in armor. There was one
|
||
|
small countess, with an iron ring in her snout and hardly any hair
|
||
|
on her back, that was the devil for perversity. She gave me a race
|
||
|
of an hour, over all sorts of country, and then we were right where
|
||
|
we had started from, having made not a rod of real progress.
|
||
|
I seized her at last by the tail, and brought her along squealing.
|
||
|
When I overtook Sandy she was horrified, and said it was in the
|
||
|
last degree indelicate to drag a countess by her train.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We got the hogs home just at dark--most of them. The princess
|
||
|
Nerovens de Morganore was missing, and two of her ladies in waiting:
|
||
|
namely, Miss Angela Bohun, and the Demoiselle Elaine Courtemains,
|
||
|
the former of these two being a young black sow with a white star
|
||
|
in her forehead, and the latter a brown one with thin legs and a
|
||
|
slight limp in the forward shank on the starboard side--a couple
|
||
|
of the tryingest blisters to drive that I ever saw. Also among
|
||
|
the missing were several mere baronesses--and I wanted them to
|
||
|
stay missing; but no, all that sausage-meat had to be found; so
|
||
|
servants were sent out with torches to scour the woods and hills
|
||
|
to that end.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, the whole drove was housed in the house, and, great
|
||
|
guns!--well, I never saw anything like it. Nor ever heard anything
|
||
|
like it. And never smelt anything like it. It was like an
|
||
|
insurrection in a gasometer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE PILGRIMS
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I did get to bed at last I was unspeakably tired; the stretching
|
||
|
out, and the relaxing of the long-tense muscles, how luxurious,
|
||
|
how delicious! but that was as far as I could get--sleep was out of
|
||
|
the question for the present. The ripping and tearing and squealing
|
||
|
of the nobility up and down the halls and corridors was pandemonium
|
||
|
come again, and kept me broad awake. Being awake, my thoughts
|
||
|
were busy, of course; and mainly they busied themselves with Sandy's
|
||
|
curious delusion. Here she was, as sane a person as the kingdom
|
||
|
could produce; and yet, from my point of view she was acting like
|
||
|
a crazy woman. My land, the power of training! of influence!
|
||
|
of education! It can bring a body up to believe anything. I had
|
||
|
to put myself in Sandy's place to realize that she was not a
|
||
|
lunatic. Yes, and put her in mine, to demonstrate how easy it is
|
||
|
to seem a lunatic to a person who has not been taught as you have
|
||
|
been taught. If I had told Sandy I had seen a wagon, uninfluenced
|
||
|
by enchantment, spin along fifty miles an hour; had seen a man,
|
||
|
unequipped with magic powers, get into a basket and soar out of
|
||
|
sight among the clouds; and had listened, without any necromancer's
|
||
|
help, to the conversation of a person who was several hundred miles
|
||
|
away, Sandy would not merely have supposed me to be crazy, she
|
||
|
would have thought she knew it. Everybody around her believed in
|
||
|
enchantments; nobody had any doubts; to doubt that a castle could
|
||
|
be turned into a sty, and its occupants into hogs, would have been
|
||
|
the same as my doubting among Connecticut people the actuality
|
||
|
of the telephone and its wonders,--and in both cases would be
|
||
|
absolute proof of a diseased mind, an unsettled reason. Yes, Sandy
|
||
|
was sane; that must be admitted. If I also would be sane--to Sandy
|
||
|
--I must keep my superstitions about unenchanted and unmiraculous
|
||
|
locomotives, balloons, and telephones, to myself. Also, I believed
|
||
|
that the world was not flat, and hadn't pillars under it to support
|
||
|
it, nor a canopy over it to turn off a universe of water that
|
||
|
occupied all space above; but as I was the only person in the kingdom
|
||
|
afflicted with such impious and criminal opinions, I recognized
|
||
|
that it would be good wisdom to keep quiet about this matter, too,
|
||
|
if I did not wish to be suddenly shunned and forsaken by everybody
|
||
|
as a madman.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next morning Sandy assembled the swine in the dining-room and
|
||
|
gave them their breakfast, waiting upon them personally and
|
||
|
manifesting in every way the deep reverence which the natives of
|
||
|
her island, ancient and modern, have always felt for rank, let its
|
||
|
outward casket and the mental and moral contents be what they may.
|
||
|
I could have eaten with the hogs if I had had birth approaching my
|
||
|
lofty official rank; but I hadn't, and so accepted the unavoidable
|
||
|
slight and made no complaint. Sandy and I had our breakfast at
|
||
|
the second table. The family were not at home. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How many are in the family, Sandy, and where do they keep themselves?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Family?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Which family, good my lord?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, this family; your own family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sooth to say, I understand you not. I have no family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No family? Why, Sandy, isn't this your home?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now how indeed might that be? I have no home."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, whose house is this?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, wit you well I would tell you an I knew myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come--you don't even know these people? Then who invited us here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None invited us. We but came; that is all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, woman, this is a most extraordinary performance. The
|
||
|
effrontery of it is beyond admiration. We blandly march into
|
||
|
a man's house, and cram it full of the only really valuable nobility
|
||
|
the sun has yet discovered in the earth, and then it turns out
|
||
|
that we don't even know the man's name. How did you ever venture
|
||
|
to take this extravagant liberty? I supposed, of course, it was
|
||
|
your home. What will the man say?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What will he say? Forsooth what can he say but give thanks?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thanks for what?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her face was filled with a puzzled surprise:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Verily, thou troublest mine understanding with strange words.
|
||
|
Do ye dream that one of his estate is like to have the honor twice
|
||
|
in his life to entertain company such as we have brought to grace
|
||
|
his house withal?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, no--when you come to that. No, it's an even bet that this
|
||
|
is the first time he has had a treat like this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then let him be thankful, and manifest the same by grateful speech
|
||
|
and due humility; he were a dog, else, and the heir and ancestor
|
||
|
of dogs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To my mind, the situation was uncomfortable. It might become more so.
|
||
|
It might be a good idea to muster the hogs and move on. So I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The day is wasting, Sandy. It is time to get the nobility together
|
||
|
and be moving."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wherefore, fair sir and Boss?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We want to take them to their home, don't we?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"La, but list to him! They be of all the regions of the earth!
|
||
|
Each must hie to her own home; wend you we might do all these
|
||
|
journeys in one so brief life as He hath appointed that created
|
||
|
life, and thereto death likewise with help of Adam, who by sin
|
||
|
done through persuasion of his helpmeet, she being wrought upon
|
||
|
and bewrayed by the beguilements of the great enemy of man, that
|
||
|
serpent hight Satan, aforetime consecrated and set apart unto that
|
||
|
evil work by overmastering spite and envy begotten in his heart
|
||
|
through fell ambitions that did blight and mildew a nature erst
|
||
|
so white and pure whenso it hove with the shining multitudes
|
||
|
its brethren-born in glade and shade of that fair heaven wherein
|
||
|
all such as native be to that rich estate and--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Great Scott!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My lord?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, you know we haven't got time for this sort of thing. Don't
|
||
|
you see, we could distribute these people around the earth in less
|
||
|
time than it is going to take you to explain that we can't. We
|
||
|
mustn't talk now, we must act. You want to be careful; you mustn't
|
||
|
let your mill get the start of you that way, at a time like this.
|
||
|
To business now--and sharp's the word. Who is to take the
|
||
|
aristocracy home?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even their friends. These will come for them from the far parts
|
||
|
of the earth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was lightning from a clear sky, for unexpectedness; and the
|
||
|
relief of it was like pardon to a prisoner. She would remain to
|
||
|
deliver the goods, of course.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, Sandy, as our enterprise is handsomely and successfully
|
||
|
ended, I will go home and report; and if ever another one--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I also am ready; I will go with thee."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was recalling the pardon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How? You will go with me? Why should you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will I be traitor to my knight, dost think? That were dishonor.
|
||
|
I may not part from thee until in knightly encounter in the field
|
||
|
some overmatching champion shall fairly win and fairly wear me.
|
||
|
I were to blame an I thought that that might ever hap."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Elected for the long term," I sighed to myself. "I may as well
|
||
|
make the best of it." So then I spoke up and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All right; let us make a start."
|
||
|
|
||
|
While she was gone to cry her farewells over the pork, I gave that
|
||
|
whole peerage away to the servants. And I asked them to take
|
||
|
a duster and dust around a little where the nobilities had mainly
|
||
|
lodged and promenaded; but they considered that that would be
|
||
|
hardly worth while, and would moreover be a rather grave departure
|
||
|
from custom, and therefore likely to make talk. A departure from
|
||
|
custom--that settled it; it was a nation capable of committing any
|
||
|
crime but that. The servants said they would follow the fashion,
|
||
|
a fashion grown sacred through immemorial observance; they would
|
||
|
scatter fresh rushes in all the rooms and halls, and then the
|
||
|
evidence of the aristocratic visitation would be no longer visible.
|
||
|
It was a kind of satire on Nature: it was the scientific method,
|
||
|
the geologic method; it deposited the history of the family in
|
||
|
a stratified record; and the antiquary could dig through it and
|
||
|
tell by the remains of each period what changes of diet the family
|
||
|
had introduced successively for a hundred years.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first thing we struck that day was a procession of pilgrims.
|
||
|
It was not going our way, but we joined it, nevertheless; for it
|
||
|
was hourly being borne in upon me now, that if I would govern
|
||
|
this country wisely, I must be posted in the details of its life,
|
||
|
and not at second hand, but by personal observation and scrutiny.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This company of pilgrims resembled Chaucer's in this: that it
|
||
|
had in it a sample of about all the upper occupations and professions
|
||
|
the country could show, and a corresponding variety of costume.
|
||
|
There were young men and old men, young women and old women,
|
||
|
lively folk and grave folk. They rode upon mules and horses, and
|
||
|
there was not a side-saddle in the party; for this specialty was
|
||
|
to remain unknown in England for nine hundred years yet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a pleasant, friendly, sociable herd; pious, happy, merry and
|
||
|
full of unconscious coarsenesses and innocent indecencies. What
|
||
|
they regarded as the merry tale went the continual round and caused
|
||
|
no more embarrassment than it would have caused in the best English
|
||
|
society twelve centuries later. Practical jokes worthy of the
|
||
|
English wits of the first quarter of the far-off nineteenth century
|
||
|
were sprung here and there and yonder along the line, and compelled
|
||
|
the delightedest applause; and sometimes when a bright remark was
|
||
|
made at one end of the procession and started on its travels toward
|
||
|
the other, you could note its progress all the way by the sparkling
|
||
|
spray of laughter it threw off from its bows as it plowed along;
|
||
|
and also by the blushes of the mules in its wake.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sandy knew the goal and purpose of this pilgrimage, and she posted
|
||
|
me. She said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They journey to the Valley of Holiness, for to be blessed of the
|
||
|
godly hermits and drink of the miraculous waters and be cleansed
|
||
|
from sin."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is this watering place?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It lieth a two-day journey hence, by the borders of the land that
|
||
|
hight the Cuckoo Kingdom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tell me about it. Is it a celebrated place?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, of a truth, yes. There be none more so. Of old time there
|
||
|
lived there an abbot and his monks. Belike were none in the world
|
||
|
more holy than these; for they gave themselves to study of pious
|
||
|
books, and spoke not the one to the other, or indeed to any, and
|
||
|
ate decayed herbs and naught thereto, and slept hard, and prayed
|
||
|
much, and washed never; also they wore the same garment until it
|
||
|
fell from their bodies through age and decay. Right so came they
|
||
|
to be known of all the world by reason of these holy austerities,
|
||
|
and visited by rich and poor, and reverenced."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Proceed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But always there was lack of water there. Whereas, upon a time,
|
||
|
the holy abbot prayed, and for answer a great stream of clear
|
||
|
water burst forth by miracle in a desert place. Now were the
|
||
|
fickle monks tempted of the Fiend, and they wrought with their
|
||
|
abbot unceasingly by beggings and beseechings that he would construct
|
||
|
a bath; and when he was become aweary and might not resist more,
|
||
|
he said have ye your will, then, and granted that they asked.
|
||
|
Now mark thou what 'tis to forsake the ways of purity the which
|
||
|
He loveth, and wanton with such as be worldly and an offense.
|
||
|
These monks did enter into the bath and come thence washed as
|
||
|
white as snow; and lo, in that moment His sign appeared, in
|
||
|
miraculous rebuke! for His insulted waters ceased to flow, and
|
||
|
utterly vanished away."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They fared mildly, Sandy, considering how that kind of crime
|
||
|
is regarded in this country."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Belike; but it was their first sin; and they had been of perfect
|
||
|
life for long, and differing in naught from the angels. Prayers,
|
||
|
tears, torturings of the flesh, all was vain to beguile that water
|
||
|
to flow again. Even processions; even burnt-offerings; even votive
|
||
|
candles to the Virgin, did fail every each of them; and all in
|
||
|
the land did marvel."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How odd to find that even this industry has its financial panics,
|
||
|
and at times sees its assignats and greenbacks languish to zero,
|
||
|
and everything come to a standstill. Go on, Sandy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so upon a time, after year and day, the good abbot made humble
|
||
|
surrender and destroyed the bath. And behold, His anger was in that
|
||
|
moment appeased, and the waters gushed richly forth again, and even
|
||
|
unto this day they have not ceased to flow in that generous measure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then I take it nobody has washed since."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He that would essay it could have his halter free; yes, and
|
||
|
swiftly would he need it, too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The community has prospered since?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even from that very day. The fame of the miracle went abroad
|
||
|
into all lands. From every land came monks to join; they came
|
||
|
even as the fishes come, in shoals; and the monastery added building
|
||
|
to building, and yet others to these, and so spread wide its arms
|
||
|
and took them in. And nuns came, also; and more again, and yet
|
||
|
more; and built over against the monastery on the yon side of the
|
||
|
vale, and added building to building, until mighty was that nunnery.
|
||
|
And these were friendly unto those, and they joined their loving
|
||
|
labors together, and together they built a fair great foundling
|
||
|
asylum midway of the valley between."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You spoke of some hermits, Sandy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These have gathered there from the ends of the earth. A hermit
|
||
|
thriveth best where there be multitudes of pilgrims. Ye shall not
|
||
|
find no hermit of no sort wanting. If any shall mention a hermit
|
||
|
of a kind he thinketh new and not to be found but in some far
|
||
|
strange land, let him but scratch among the holes and caves and
|
||
|
swamps that line that Valley of Holiness, and whatsoever be his
|
||
|
breed, it skills not, he shall find a sample of it there."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I closed up alongside of a burly fellow with a fat good-humored
|
||
|
face, purposing to make myself agreeable and pick up some further
|
||
|
crumbs of fact; but I had hardly more than scraped acquaintance
|
||
|
with him when he began eagerly and awkwardly to lead up, in the
|
||
|
immemorial way, to that same old anecdote--the one Sir Dinadan
|
||
|
told me, what time I got into trouble with Sir Sagramor and was
|
||
|
challenged of him on account of it. I excused myself and dropped
|
||
|
to the rear of the procession, sad at heart, willing to go hence
|
||
|
from this troubled life, this vale of tears, this brief day of
|
||
|
broken rest, of cloud and storm, of weary struggle and monotonous
|
||
|
defeat; and yet shrinking from the change, as remembering how long
|
||
|
eternity is, and how many have wended thither who know that anecdote.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Early in the afternoon we overtook another procession of pilgrims;
|
||
|
but in this one was no merriment, no jokes, no laughter, no playful
|
||
|
ways, nor any happy giddiness, whether of youth or age. Yet both
|
||
|
were here, both age and youth; gray old men and women, strong men
|
||
|
and women of middle age, young husbands, young wives, little boys
|
||
|
and girls, and three babies at the breast. Even the children were
|
||
|
smileless; there was not a face among all these half a hundred
|
||
|
people but was cast down, and bore that set expression of hopelessness
|
||
|
which is bred of long and hard trials and old acquaintance with
|
||
|
despair. They were slaves. Chains led from their fettered feet
|
||
|
and their manacled hands to a sole-leather belt about their waists;
|
||
|
and all except the children were also linked together in a file
|
||
|
six feet apart, by a single chain which led from collar to collar
|
||
|
all down the line. They were on foot, and had tramped three
|
||
|
hundred miles in eighteen days, upon the cheapest odds and ends
|
||
|
of food, and stingy rations of that. They had slept in these
|
||
|
chains every night, bundled together like swine. They had upon
|
||
|
their bodies some poor rags, but they could not be said to be
|
||
|
clothed. Their irons had chafed the skin from their ankles and
|
||
|
made sores which were ulcerated and wormy. Their naked feet were
|
||
|
torn, and none walked without a limp. Originally there had been a
|
||
|
hundred of these unfortunates, but about half had been sold on
|
||
|
the trip. The trader in charge of them rode a horse and carried
|
||
|
a whip with a short handle and a long heavy lash divided into
|
||
|
several knotted tails at the end. With this whip he cut the
|
||
|
shoulders of any that tottered from weariness and pain, and
|
||
|
straightened them up. He did not speak; the whip conveyed his
|
||
|
desire without that. None of these poor creatures looked up as
|
||
|
we rode along by; they showed no consciousness of our presence.
|
||
|
And they made no sound but one; that was the dull and awful clank
|
||
|
of their chains from end to end of the long file, as forty-three
|
||
|
burdened feet rose and fell in unison. The file moved in a cloud
|
||
|
of its own making.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All these faces were gray with a coating of dust. One has seen
|
||
|
the like of this coating upon furniture in unoccupied houses, and
|
||
|
has written his idle thought in it with his finger. I was reminded
|
||
|
of this when I noticed the faces of some of those women, young
|
||
|
mothers carrying babes that were near to death and freedom, how
|
||
|
a something in their hearts was written in the dust upon their
|
||
|
faces, plain to see, and lord, how plain to read! for it was the
|
||
|
track of tears. One of these young mothers was but a girl, and
|
||
|
it hurt me to the heart to read that writing, and reflect that it
|
||
|
was come up out of the breast of such a child, a breast that ought
|
||
|
not to know trouble yet, but only the gladness of the morning of
|
||
|
life; and no doubt--
|
||
|
|
||
|
She reeled just then, giddy with fatigue, and down came the lash
|
||
|
and flicked a flake of skin from her naked shoulder. It stung me
|
||
|
as if I had been hit instead. The master halted the file and
|
||
|
jumped from his horse. He stormed and swore at this girl, and
|
||
|
said she had made annoyance enough with her laziness, and as this
|
||
|
was the last chance he should have, he would settle the account now.
|
||
|
She dropped on her knees and put up her hands and began to beg,
|
||
|
and cry, and implore, in a passion of terror, but the master gave
|
||
|
no attention. He snatched the child from her, and then made the
|
||
|
men-slaves who were chained before and behind her throw her on
|
||
|
the ground and hold her there and expose her body; and then he
|
||
|
laid on with his lash like a madman till her back was flayed, she
|
||
|
shrieking and struggling the while piteously. One of the men who
|
||
|
was holding her turned away his face, and for this humanity he was
|
||
|
reviled and flogged.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All our pilgrims looked on and commented--on the expert way in
|
||
|
which the whip was handled. They were too much hardened by lifelong
|
||
|
everyday familiarity with slavery to notice that there was anything
|
||
|
else in the exhibition that invited comment. This was what slavery
|
||
|
could do, in the way of ossifying what one may call the superior
|
||
|
lobe of human feeling; for these pilgrims were kind-hearted people,
|
||
|
and they would not have allowed that man to treat a horse like that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I wanted to stop the whole thing and set the slaves free, but that
|
||
|
would not do. I must not interfere too much and get myself a name
|
||
|
for riding over the country's laws and the citizen's rights
|
||
|
roughshod. If I lived and prospered I would be the death of
|
||
|
slavery, that I was resolved upon; but I would try to fix it so
|
||
|
that when I became its executioner it should be by command of
|
||
|
the nation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just here was the wayside shop of a smith; and now arrived a landed
|
||
|
proprietor who had bought this girl a few miles back, deliverable
|
||
|
here where her irons could be taken off. They were removed; then
|
||
|
there was a squabble between the gentleman and the dealer as to
|
||
|
which should pay the blacksmith. The moment the girl was delivered
|
||
|
from her irons, she flung herself, all tears and frantic sobbings,
|
||
|
into the arms of the slave who had turned away his face when she
|
||
|
was whipped. He strained her to his breast, and smothered her
|
||
|
face and the child's with kisses, and washed them with the rain
|
||
|
of his tears. I suspected. I inquired. Yes, I was right; it was
|
||
|
husband and wife. They had to be torn apart by force; the girl
|
||
|
had to be dragged away, and she struggled and fought and shrieked
|
||
|
like one gone mad till a turn of the road hid her from sight; and
|
||
|
even after that, we could still make out the fading plaint of those
|
||
|
receding shrieks. And the husband and father, with his wife and
|
||
|
child gone, never to be seen by him again in life?--well, the look
|
||
|
of him one might not bear at all, and so I turned away; but I knew
|
||
|
I should never get his picture out of my mind again, and there
|
||
|
it is to this day, to wring my heartstrings whenever I think of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We put up at the inn in a village just at nightfall, and when
|
||
|
I rose next morning and looked abroad, I was ware where a knight
|
||
|
came riding in the golden glory of the new day, and recognized him
|
||
|
for knight of mine--Sir Ozana le Cure Hardy. He was in the
|
||
|
gentlemen's furnishing line, and his missionarying specialty was
|
||
|
plug hats. He was clothed all in steel, in the beautifulest armor
|
||
|
of the time--up to where his helmet ought to have been; but he
|
||
|
hadn't any helmet, he wore a shiny stove-pipe hat, and was ridiculous
|
||
|
a spectacle as one might want to see. It was another of my
|
||
|
surreptitious schemes for extinguishing knighthood by making it
|
||
|
grotesque and absurd. Sir Ozana's saddle was hung about with
|
||
|
leather hat boxes, and every time he overcame a wandering knight
|
||
|
he swore him into my service and fitted him with a plug and made
|
||
|
him wear it. I dressed and ran down to welcome Sir Ozana and
|
||
|
get his news.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How is trade?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye will note that I have but these four left; yet were they sixteen
|
||
|
whenas I got me from Camelot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, you have certainly done nobly, Sir Ozana. Where have you
|
||
|
been foraging of late?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am but now come from the Valley of Holiness, please you sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am pointed for that place myself. Is there anything stirring
|
||
|
in the monkery, more than common?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By the mass ye may not question it!.... Give him good feed,
|
||
|
boy, and stint it not, an thou valuest thy crown; so get ye lightly
|
||
|
to the stable and do even as I bid.... Sir, it is parlous news
|
||
|
I bring, and--be these pilgrims? Then ye may not do better, good
|
||
|
folk, than gather and hear the tale I have to tell, sith it
|
||
|
concerneth you, forasmuch as ye go to find that ye will not find,
|
||
|
and seek that ye will seek in vain, my life being hostage for my
|
||
|
word, and my word and message being these, namely: That a hap
|
||
|
has happened whereof the like has not been seen no more but once
|
||
|
this two hundred years, which was the first and last time that
|
||
|
that said misfortune strake the holy valley in that form by
|
||
|
commandment of the Most High whereto by reasons just and causes
|
||
|
thereunto contributing, wherein the matter--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The miraculous fount hath ceased to flow!" This shout burst from
|
||
|
twenty pilgrim mouths at once.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye say well, good people. I was verging to it, even when ye spake."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Has somebody been washing again?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nay, it is suspected, but none believe it. It is thought to be
|
||
|
some other sin, but none wit what."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How are they feeling about the calamity?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None may describe it in words. The fount is these nine days dry.
|
||
|
The prayers that did begin then, and the lamentations in sackcloth
|
||
|
and ashes, and the holy processions, none of these have ceased
|
||
|
nor night nor day; and so the monks and the nuns and the foundlings
|
||
|
be all exhausted, and do hang up prayers writ upon parchment,
|
||
|
sith that no strength is left in man to lift up voice. And at last
|
||
|
they sent for thee, Sir Boss, to try magic and enchantment; and
|
||
|
if you could not come, then was the messenger to fetch Merlin,
|
||
|
and he is there these three days now, and saith he will fetch that
|
||
|
water though he burst the globe and wreck its kingdoms to accomplish
|
||
|
it; and right bravely doth he work his magic and call upon his
|
||
|
hellions to hie them hither and help, but not a whiff of moisture
|
||
|
hath he started yet, even so much as might qualify as mist upon
|
||
|
a copper mirror an ye count not the barrel of sweat he sweateth
|
||
|
betwixt sun and sun over the dire labors of his task; and if ye--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Breakfast was ready. As soon as it was over I showed to Sir Ozana
|
||
|
these words which I had written on the inside of his hat: "Chemical
|
||
|
Department, Laboratory extension, Section G. Pxxp. Send two of
|
||
|
first size, two of No. 3, and six of No. 4, together with the proper
|
||
|
complementary details--and two of my trained assistants." And I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now get you to Camelot as fast as you can fly, brave knight, and
|
||
|
show the writing to Clarence, and tell him to have these required
|
||
|
matters in the Valley of Holiness with all possible dispatch."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will well, Sir Boss," and he was off.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXII
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE HOLY FOUNTAIN
|
||
|
|
||
|
The pilgrims were human beings. Otherwise they would have acted
|
||
|
differently. They had come a long and difficult journey, and now
|
||
|
when the journey was nearly finished, and they learned that the main
|
||
|
thing they had come for had ceased to exist, they didn't do as
|
||
|
horses or cats or angle-worms would probably have done--turn back
|
||
|
and get at something profitable--no, anxious as they had before
|
||
|
been to see the miraculous fountain, they were as much as forty
|
||
|
times as anxious now to see the place where it had used to be.
|
||
|
There is no accounting for human beings.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We made good time; and a couple of hours before sunset we stood
|
||
|
upon the high confines of the Valley of Holiness, and our eyes
|
||
|
swept it from end to end and noted its features. That is, its
|
||
|
large features. These were the three masses of buildings. They
|
||
|
were distant and isolated temporalities shrunken to toy constructions
|
||
|
in the lonely waste of what seemed a desert--and was. Such a scene
|
||
|
is always mournful, it is so impressively still, and looks so
|
||
|
steeped in death. But there was a sound here which interrupted
|
||
|
the stillness only to add to its mournfulness; this was the faint
|
||
|
far sound of tolling bells which floated fitfully to us on the
|
||
|
passing breeze, and so faintly, so softly, that we hardly knew
|
||
|
whether we heard it with our ears or with our spirits.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We reached the monastery before dark, and there the males were
|
||
|
given lodging, but the women were sent over to the nunnery. The
|
||
|
bells were close at hand now, and their solemn booming smote
|
||
|
upon the ear like a message of doom. A superstitious despair
|
||
|
possessed the heart of every monk and published itself in his
|
||
|
ghastly face. Everywhere, these black-robed, soft-sandaled,
|
||
|
tallow-visaged specters appeared, flitted about and disappeared,
|
||
|
noiseless as the creatures of a troubled dream, and as uncanny.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The old abbot's joy to see me was pathetic. Even to tears; but
|
||
|
he did the shedding himself. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Delay not, son, but get to thy saving work. An we bring not
|
||
|
the water back again, and soon, we are ruined, and the good work
|
||
|
of two hundred years must end. And see thou do it with enchantments
|
||
|
that be holy, for the Church will not endure that work in her cause
|
||
|
be done by devil's magic."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When I work, Father, be sure there will be no devil's work
|
||
|
connected with it. I shall use no arts that come of the devil,
|
||
|
and no elements not created by the hand of God. But is Merlin
|
||
|
working strictly on pious lines?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, he said he would, my son, he said he would, and took oath
|
||
|
to make his promise good."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, in that case, let him proceed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But surely you will not sit idle by, but help?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will not answer to mix methods, Father; neither would it be
|
||
|
professional courtesy. Two of a trade must not underbid each
|
||
|
other. We might as well cut rates and be done with it; it would
|
||
|
arrive at that in the end. Merlin has the contract; no other
|
||
|
magician can touch it till he throws it up."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I will take it from him; it is a terrible emergency and the
|
||
|
act is thereby justified. And if it were not so, who will give
|
||
|
law to the Church? The Church giveth law to all; and what she
|
||
|
wills to do, that she may do, hurt whom it may. I will take it
|
||
|
from him; you shall begin upon the moment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It may not be, Father. No doubt, as you say, where power is
|
||
|
supreme, one can do as one likes and suffer no injury; but we poor
|
||
|
magicians are not so situated. Merlin is a very good magician
|
||
|
in a small way, and has quite a neat provincial reputation. He
|
||
|
is struggling along, doing the best he can, and it would not be
|
||
|
etiquette for me to take his job until he himself abandons it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The abbot's face lighted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, that is simple. There are ways to persuade him to abandon it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No-no, Father, it skills not, as these people say. If he were
|
||
|
persuaded against his will, he would load that well with a malicious
|
||
|
enchantment which would balk me until I found out its secret.
|
||
|
It might take a month. I could set up a little enchantment of
|
||
|
mine which I call the telephone, and he could not find out its
|
||
|
secret in a hundred years. Yes, you perceive, he might block me
|
||
|
for a month. Would you like to risk a month in a dry time like this?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A month! The mere thought of it maketh me to shudder. Have it
|
||
|
thy way, my son. But my heart is heavy with this disappointment.
|
||
|
Leave me, and let me wear my spirit with weariness and waiting,
|
||
|
even as I have done these ten long days, counterfeiting thus
|
||
|
the thing that is called rest, the prone body making outward sign
|
||
|
of repose where inwardly is none."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, it would have been best, all round, for Merlin to waive
|
||
|
etiquette and quit and call it half a day, since he would never be
|
||
|
able to start that water, for he was a true magician of the time;
|
||
|
which is to say, the big miracles, the ones that gave him his
|
||
|
reputation, always had the luck to be performed when nobody but
|
||
|
Merlin was present; he couldn't start this well with all this crowd
|
||
|
around to see; a crowd was as bad for a magician's miracle in
|
||
|
that day as it was for a spiritualist's miracle in mine; there was
|
||
|
sure to be some skeptic on hand to turn up the gas at the crucial
|
||
|
moment and spoil everything. But I did not want Merlin to retire
|
||
|
from the job until I was ready to take hold of it effectively
|
||
|
myself; and I could not do that until I got my things from Camelot,
|
||
|
and that would take two or three days.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My presence gave the monks hope, and cheered them up a good deal;
|
||
|
insomuch that they ate a square meal that night for the first time
|
||
|
in ten days. As soon as their stomachs had been properly reinforced
|
||
|
with food, their spirits began to rise fast; when the mead began to
|
||
|
go round they rose faster. By the time everybody was half-seas over,
|
||
|
the holy community was in good shape to make a night of it; so we
|
||
|
stayed by the board and put it through on that line. Matters got
|
||
|
to be very jolly. Good old questionable stories were told that made
|
||
|
the tears run down and cavernous mouths stand wide and the round
|
||
|
bellies shake with laughter; and questionable songs were bellowed out
|
||
|
in a mighty chorus that drowned the boom of the tolling bells.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last I ventured a story myself; and vast was the success of it.
|
||
|
Not right off, of course, for the native of those islands does
|
||
|
not, as a rule, dissolve upon the early applications of a humorous
|
||
|
thing; but the fifth time I told it, they began to crack in places;
|
||
|
the eight time I told it, they began to crumble; at the twelfth
|
||
|
repetition they fell apart in chunks; and at the fifteenth they
|
||
|
disintegrated, and I got a broom and swept them up. This language
|
||
|
is figurative. Those islanders--well, they are slow pay at first,
|
||
|
in the matter of return for your investment of effort, but in the end
|
||
|
they make the pay of all other nations poor and small by contrast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was at the well next day betimes. Merlin was there, enchanting
|
||
|
away like a beaver, but not raising the moisture. He was not in
|
||
|
a pleasant humor; and every time I hinted that perhaps this contract
|
||
|
was a shade too hefty for a novice he unlimbered his tongue and
|
||
|
cursed like a bishop--French bishop of the Regency days, I mean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Matters were about as I expected to find them. The "fountain" was
|
||
|
an ordinary well, it had been dug in the ordinary way, and stoned up
|
||
|
in the ordinary way. There was no miracle about it. Even the lie
|
||
|
that had created its reputation was not miraculous; I could have
|
||
|
told it myself, with one hand tied behind me. The well was in a
|
||
|
dark chamber which stood in the center of a cut-stone chapel, whose
|
||
|
walls were hung with pious pictures of a workmanship that would
|
||
|
have made a chromo feel good; pictures historically commemorative
|
||
|
of curative miracles which had been achieved by the waters when
|
||
|
nobody was looking. That is, nobody but angels; they are always
|
||
|
on deck when there is a miracle to the fore--so as to get put in
|
||
|
the picture, perhaps. Angels are as fond of that as a fire company;
|
||
|
look at the old masters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The well-chamber was dimly lighted by lamps; the water was drawn
|
||
|
with a windlass and chain by monks, and poured into troughs which
|
||
|
delivered it into stone reservoirs outside in the chapel--when
|
||
|
there was water to draw, I mean--and none but monks could enter
|
||
|
the well-chamber. I entered it, for I had temporary authority
|
||
|
to do so, by courtesy of my professional brother and subordinate.
|
||
|
But he hadn't entered it himself. He did everything by incantations;
|
||
|
he never worked his intellect. If he had stepped in there and used
|
||
|
his eyes, instead of his disordered mind, he could have cured
|
||
|
the well by natural means, and then turned it into a miracle in
|
||
|
the customary way; but no, he was an old numskull, a magician who
|
||
|
believed in his own magic; and no magician can thrive who is
|
||
|
handicapped with a superstition like that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had an idea that the well had sprung a leak; that some of the
|
||
|
wall stones near the bottom had fallen and exposed fissures that
|
||
|
allowed the water to escape. I measured the chain--98 feet. Then
|
||
|
I called in a couple of monks, locked the door, took a candle, and
|
||
|
made them lower me in the bucket. When the chain was all paid out,
|
||
|
the candle confirmed my suspicion; a considerable section of the
|
||
|
wall was gone, exposing a good big fissure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I almost regretted that my theory about the well's trouble was
|
||
|
correct, because I had another one that had a showy point or two
|
||
|
about it for a miracle. I remembered that in America, many
|
||
|
centuries later, when an oil well ceased to flow, they used to
|
||
|
blast it out with a dynamite torpedo. If I should find this well
|
||
|
dry and no explanation of it, I could astonish these people most
|
||
|
nobly by having a person of no especial value drop a dynamite
|
||
|
bomb into it. It was my idea to appoint Merlin. However, it was
|
||
|
plain that there was no occasion for the bomb. One cannot have
|
||
|
everything the way he would like it. A man has no business to
|
||
|
be depressed by a disappointment, anyway; he ought to make up his
|
||
|
mind to get even. That is what I did. I said to myself, I am in no
|
||
|
hurry, I can wait; that bomb will come good yet. And it did, too.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I was above ground again, I turned out the monks, and let down
|
||
|
a fish-line; the well was a hundred and fifty feet deep, and there
|
||
|
was forty-one feet of water in it. I called in a monk and asked:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How deep is the well?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That, sir, I wit not, having never been told."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How does the water usually stand in it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Near to the top, these two centuries, as the testimony goeth,
|
||
|
brought down to us through our predecessors."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was true--as to recent times at least--for there was witness
|
||
|
to it, and better witness than a monk; only about twenty or thirty
|
||
|
feet of the chain showed wear and use, the rest of it was unworn
|
||
|
and rusty. What had happened when the well gave out that other
|
||
|
time? Without doubt some practical person had come along and
|
||
|
mended the leak, and then had come up and told the abbot he had
|
||
|
discovered by divination that if the sinful bath were destroyed
|
||
|
the well would flow again. The leak had befallen again now, and
|
||
|
these children would have prayed, and processioned, and tolled
|
||
|
their bells for heavenly succor till they all dried up and blew
|
||
|
away, and no innocent of them all would ever have thought to drop
|
||
|
a fish-line into the well or go down in it and find out what was
|
||
|
really the matter. Old habit of mind is one of the toughest things
|
||
|
to get away from in the world. It transmits itself like physical
|
||
|
form and feature; and for a man, in those days, to have had an idea
|
||
|
that his ancestors hadn't had, would have brought him under suspicion
|
||
|
of being illegitimate. I said to the monk:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a difficult miracle to restore water in a dry well, but we
|
||
|
will try, if my brother Merlin fails. Brother Merlin is a very
|
||
|
passable artist, but only in the parlor-magic line, and he may
|
||
|
not succeed; in fact, is not likely to succeed. But that should
|
||
|
be nothing to his discredit; the man that can do _this_ kind of
|
||
|
miracle knows enough to keep hotel."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hotel? I mind not to have heard--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of hotel? It's what you call hostel. The man that can do this
|
||
|
miracle can keep hostel. I can do this miracle; I shall do this
|
||
|
miracle; yet I do not try to conceal from you that it is a miracle
|
||
|
to tax the occult powers to the last strain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None knoweth that truth better than the brotherhood, indeed; for
|
||
|
it is of record that aforetime it was parlous difficult and took
|
||
|
a year. Natheless, God send you good success, and to that end
|
||
|
will we pray."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As a matter of business it was a good idea to get the notion around
|
||
|
that the thing was difficult. Many a small thing has been made
|
||
|
large by the right kind of advertising. That monk was filled up
|
||
|
with the difficulty of this enterprise; he would fill up the others.
|
||
|
In two days the solicitude would be booming.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On my way home at noon, I met Sandy. She had been sampling the
|
||
|
hermits. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would like to do that myself. This is Wednesday. Is there
|
||
|
a matinee?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A which, please you, sir?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Matinee. Do they keep open afternoons?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The hermits, of course."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Keep open?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, keep open. Isn't that plain enough? Do they knock off at noon?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Knock off?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Knock off?--yes, knock off. What is the matter with knock off?
|
||
|
I never saw such a dunderhead; can't you understand anything at all?
|
||
|
In plain terms, do they shut up shop, draw the game, bank the fires--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Shut up shop, draw--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There, never mind, let it go; you make me tired. You can't seem
|
||
|
to understand the simplest thing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would I might please thee, sir, and it is to me dole and sorrow
|
||
|
that I fail, albeit sith I am but a simple damsel and taught of
|
||
|
none, being from the cradle unbaptized in those deep waters of
|
||
|
learning that do anoint with a sovereignty him that partaketh of
|
||
|
that most noble sacrament, investing him with reverend state to
|
||
|
the mental eye of the humble mortal who, by bar and lack of that
|
||
|
great consecration seeth in his own unlearned estate but a symbol
|
||
|
of that other sort of lack and loss which men do publish to the
|
||
|
pitying eye with sackcloth trappings whereon the ashes of grief
|
||
|
do lie bepowdered and bestrewn, and so, when such shall in the
|
||
|
darkness of his mind encounter these golden phrases of high mystery,
|
||
|
these shut-up-shops, and draw-the-game, and bank-the-fires, it is
|
||
|
but by the grace of God that he burst not for envy of the mind that
|
||
|
can beget, and tongue that can deliver so great and mellow-sounding
|
||
|
miracles of speech, and if there do ensue confusion in that humbler
|
||
|
mind, and failure to divine the meanings of these wonders, then
|
||
|
if so be this miscomprehension is not vain but sooth and true,
|
||
|
wit ye well it is the very substance of worshipful dear homage and
|
||
|
may not lightly be misprized, nor had been, an ye had noted this
|
||
|
complexion of mood and mind and understood that that I would
|
||
|
I could not, and that I could not I might not, nor yet nor might
|
||
|
_nor_ could, nor might-not nor could-not, might be by advantage
|
||
|
turned to the desired _would_, and so I pray you mercy of my fault,
|
||
|
and that ye will of your kindness and your charity forgive it, good
|
||
|
my master and most dear lord."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I couldn't make it all out--that is, the details--but I got the
|
||
|
general idea; and enough of it, too, to be ashamed. It was not
|
||
|
fair to spring those nineteenth century technicalities upon the
|
||
|
untutored infant of the sixth and then rail at her because she
|
||
|
couldn't get their drift; and when she was making the honest best
|
||
|
drive at it she could, too, and no fault of hers that she couldn't
|
||
|
fetch the home plate; and so I apologized. Then we meandered
|
||
|
pleasantly away toward the hermit holes in sociable converse
|
||
|
together, and better friends than ever.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was gradually coming to have a mysterious and shuddery reverence
|
||
|
for this girl; nowadays whenever she pulled out from the station
|
||
|
and got her train fairly started on one of those horizonless
|
||
|
transcontinental sentences of hers, it was borne in upon me that
|
||
|
I was standing in the awful presence of the Mother of the German
|
||
|
Language. I was so impressed with this, that sometimes when she
|
||
|
began to empty one of these sentences on me I unconsciously took
|
||
|
the very attitude of reverence, and stood uncovered; and if words
|
||
|
had been water, I had been drowned, sure. She had exactly the
|
||
|
German way; whatever was in her mind to be delivered, whether a
|
||
|
mere remark, or a sermon, or a cyclopedia, or the history of a war,
|
||
|
she would get it into a single sentence or die. Whenever the literary
|
||
|
German dives into a sentence, that is the last you are going to see
|
||
|
of him till he emerges on the other side of his Atlantic with his
|
||
|
verb in his mouth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We drifted from hermit to hermit all the afternoon. It was a most
|
||
|
strange menagerie. The chief emulation among them seemed to be,
|
||
|
to see which could manage to be the uncleanest and most prosperous
|
||
|
with vermin. Their manner and attitudes were the last expression
|
||
|
of complacent self-righteousness. It was one anchorite's pride
|
||
|
to lie naked in the mud and let the insects bite him and blister
|
||
|
him unmolested; it was another's to lean against a rock, all day
|
||
|
long, conspicuous to the admiration of the throng of pilgrims
|
||
|
and pray; it was another's to go naked and crawl around on all fours;
|
||
|
it was another's to drag about with him, year in and year out,
|
||
|
eighty pounds of iron; it was another's to never lie down when
|
||
|
he slept, but to stand among the thorn-bushes and snore when there
|
||
|
were pilgrims around to look; a woman, who had the white hair of
|
||
|
age, and no other apparel, was black from crown to heel with
|
||
|
forty-seven years of holy abstinence from water. Groups of gazing
|
||
|
pilgrims stood around all and every of these strange objects, lost
|
||
|
in reverent wonder, and envious of the fleckless sanctity which
|
||
|
these pious austerities had won for them from an exacting heaven.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By and by we went to see one of the supremely great ones. He was
|
||
|
a mighty celebrity; his fame had penetrated all Christendom; the
|
||
|
noble and the renowned journeyed from the remotest lands on the globe
|
||
|
to pay him reverence. His stand was in the center of the widest part
|
||
|
of the valley; and it took all that space to hold his crowds.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His stand was a pillar sixty feet high, with a broad platform on
|
||
|
the top of it. He was now doing what he had been doing every day
|
||
|
for twenty years up there--bowing his body ceaselessly and rapidly
|
||
|
almost to his feet. It was his way of praying. I timed him with a
|
||
|
stop watch, and he made 1,244 revolutions in 24 minutes and
|
||
|
46 seconds. It seemed a pity to have all this power going to waste.
|
||
|
It was one of the most useful motions in mechanics, the pedal
|
||
|
movement; so I made a note in my memorandum book, purposing some
|
||
|
day to apply a system of elastic cords to him and run a sewing
|
||
|
machine with it. I afterward carried out that scheme, and got
|
||
|
five years' good service out of him; in which time he turned out
|
||
|
upward of eighteen thousand first-rate tow-linen shirts, which
|
||
|
was ten a day. I worked him Sundays and all; he was going, Sundays,
|
||
|
the same as week days, and it was no use to waste the power.
|
||
|
These shirts cost me nothing but just the mere trifle for the
|
||
|
materials--I furnished those myself, it would not have been right
|
||
|
to make him do that--and they sold like smoke to pilgrims at a
|
||
|
dollar and a half apiece, which was the price of fifty cows or
|
||
|
a blooded race horse in Arthurdom. They were regarded as a perfect
|
||
|
protection against sin, and advertised as such by my knights
|
||
|
everywhere, with the paint-pot and stencil-plate; insomuch that
|
||
|
there was not a cliff or a bowlder or a dead wall in England but
|
||
|
you could read on it at a mile distance:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Buy the only genuine St. Stylite; patronized by the Nobility.
|
||
|
Patent applied for."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was more money in the business than one knew what to do with.
|
||
|
As it extended, I brought out a line of goods suitable for kings,
|
||
|
and a nobby thing for duchesses and that sort, with ruffles down
|
||
|
the forehatch and the running-gear clewed up with a featherstitch
|
||
|
to leeward and then hauled aft with a back-stay and triced up with
|
||
|
a half-turn in the standing rigging forward of the weather-gaskets.
|
||
|
Yes, it was a daisy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But about that time I noticed that the motive power had taken to
|
||
|
standing on one leg, and I found that there was something the matter
|
||
|
with the other one; so I stocked the business and unloaded, taking
|
||
|
Sir Bors de Ganis into camp financially along with certain of his
|
||
|
friends; for the works stopped within a year, and the good saint
|
||
|
got him to his rest. But he had earned it. I can say that for him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I saw him that first time--however, his personal condition
|
||
|
will not quite bear description here. You can read it in the
|
||
|
Lives of the Saints.*
|
||
|
|
||
|
[*All the details concerning the hermits, in this chapter, are from
|
||
|
Lecky--but greatly modified. This book not being a history but
|
||
|
only a tale, the majority of the historian's frank details were too
|
||
|
strong for reproduction in it.--_Editor_]
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
RESTORATION OF THE FOUNTAIN
|
||
|
|
||
|
Saturday noon I went to the well and looked on a while. Merlin
|
||
|
was still burning smoke-powders, and pawing the air, and muttering
|
||
|
gibberish as hard as ever, but looking pretty down-hearted, for
|
||
|
of course he had not started even a perspiration in that well yet.
|
||
|
Finally I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How does the thing promise by this time, partner?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Behold, I am even now busied with trial of the powerfulest
|
||
|
enchantment known to the princes of the occult arts in the lands
|
||
|
of the East; an it fail me, naught can avail. Peace, until I finish."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He raised a smoke this time that darkened all the region, and must
|
||
|
have made matters uncomfortable for the hermits, for the wind
|
||
|
was their way, and it rolled down over their dens in a dense and
|
||
|
billowy fog. He poured out volumes of speech to match, and contorted
|
||
|
his body and sawed the air with his hands in a most extraordinary
|
||
|
way. At the end of twenty minutes he dropped down panting, and
|
||
|
about exhausted. Now arrived the abbot and several hundred monks
|
||
|
and nuns, and behind them a multitude of pilgrims and a couple of
|
||
|
acres of foundlings, all drawn by the prodigious smoke, and all
|
||
|
in a grand state of excitement. The abbot inquired anxiously for
|
||
|
results. Merlin said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If any labor of mortal might break the spell that binds these
|
||
|
waters, this which I have but just essayed had done it. It has
|
||
|
failed; whereby I do now know that that which I had feared is
|
||
|
a truth established; the sign of this failure is, that the most
|
||
|
potent spirit known to the magicians of the East, and whose name
|
||
|
none may utter and live, has laid his spell upon this well. The
|
||
|
mortal does not breathe, nor ever will, who can penetrate the secret
|
||
|
of that spell, and without that secret none can break it. The
|
||
|
water will flow no more forever, good Father. I have done what
|
||
|
man could. Suffer me to go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course this threw the abbot into a good deal of a consternation.
|
||
|
He turned to me with the signs of it in his face, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye have heard him. Is it true?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Part of it is."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not all, then, not all! What part is true?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That that spirit with the Russian name has put his spell
|
||
|
upon the well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"God's wounds, then are we ruined!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Possibly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But not certainly? Ye mean, not certainly?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wherefore, ye also mean that when he saith none can break the spell--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, when he says that, he says what isn't necessarily true.
|
||
|
There are conditions under which an effort to break it may have
|
||
|
some chance--that is, some small, some trifling chance--of success."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The conditions--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, they are nothing difficult. Only these: I want the well
|
||
|
and the surroundings for the space of half a mile, entirely to
|
||
|
myself from sunset to-day until I remove the ban--and nobody
|
||
|
allowed to cross the ground but by my authority."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are these all?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And you have no fear to try?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, none. One may fail, of course; and one may also succeed.
|
||
|
One can try, and I am ready to chance it. I have my conditions?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These and all others ye may name. I will issue commandment
|
||
|
to that effect."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wait," said Merlin, with an evil smile. "Ye wit that he that
|
||
|
would break this spell must know that spirit's name?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, I know his name."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And wit you also that to know it skills not of itself, but ye
|
||
|
must likewise pronounce it? Ha-ha! Knew ye that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, I knew that, too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You had that knowledge! Art a fool? Are ye minded to utter
|
||
|
that name and die?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Utter it? Why certainly. I would utter it if it was Welsh."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye are even a dead man, then; and I go to tell Arthur."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's all right. Take your gripsack and get along. The thing
|
||
|
for _you_ to do is to go home and work the weather, John W. Merlin."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a home shot, and it made him wince; for he was the worst
|
||
|
weather-failure in the kingdom. Whenever he ordered up the
|
||
|
danger-signals along the coast there was a week's dead calm, sure,
|
||
|
and every time he prophesied fair weather it rained brickbats.
|
||
|
But I kept him in the weather bureau right along, to undermine
|
||
|
his reputation. However, that shot raised his bile, and instead
|
||
|
of starting home to report my death, he said he would remain
|
||
|
and enjoy it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My two experts arrived in the evening, and pretty well fagged,
|
||
|
for they had traveled double tides. They had pack-mules along,
|
||
|
and had brought everything I needed--tools, pump, lead pipe,
|
||
|
Greek fire, sheaves of big rockets, roman candles, colored fire
|
||
|
sprays, electric apparatus, and a lot of sundries--everything
|
||
|
necessary for the stateliest kind of a miracle. They got their
|
||
|
supper and a nap, and about midnight we sallied out through a
|
||
|
solitude so wholly vacant and complete that it quite overpassed
|
||
|
the required conditions. We took possession of the well and its
|
||
|
surroundings. My boys were experts in all sorts of things, from
|
||
|
the stoning up of a well to the constructing of a mathematical
|
||
|
instrument. An hour before sunrise we had that leak mended in
|
||
|
ship-shape fashion, and the water began to rise. Then we stowed our
|
||
|
fireworks in the chapel, locked up the place, and went home to bed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before the noon mass was over, we were at the well again; for there
|
||
|
was a deal to do yet, and I was determined to spring the miracle
|
||
|
before midnight, for business reasons: for whereas a miracle
|
||
|
worked for the Church on a week-day is worth a good deal, it is
|
||
|
worth six times as much if you get it in on a Sunday. In nine hours
|
||
|
the water had risen to its customary level--that is to say, it was
|
||
|
within twenty-three feet of the top. We put in a little iron pump,
|
||
|
one of the first turned out by my works near the capital; we bored
|
||
|
into a stone reservoir which stood against the outer wall of the
|
||
|
well-chamber and inserted a section of lead pipe that was long
|
||
|
enough to reach to the door of the chapel and project beyond
|
||
|
the threshold, where the gushing water would be visible to the
|
||
|
two hundred and fifty acres of people I was intending should be
|
||
|
present on the flat plain in front of this little holy hillock at
|
||
|
the proper time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We knocked the head out of an empty hogshead and hoisted this
|
||
|
hogshead to the flat roof of the chapel, where we clamped it down
|
||
|
fast, poured in gunpowder till it lay loosely an inch deep on the
|
||
|
bottom, then we stood up rockets in the hogshead as thick as they
|
||
|
could loosely stand, all the different breeds of rockets there are;
|
||
|
and they made a portly and imposing sheaf, I can tell you. We
|
||
|
grounded the wire of a pocket electrical battery in that powder,
|
||
|
we placed a whole magazine of Greek fire on each corner of the
|
||
|
roof--blue on one corner, green on another, red on another, and
|
||
|
purple on the last--and grounded a wire in each.
|
||
|
|
||
|
About two hundred yards off, in the flat, we built a pen of
|
||
|
scantlings, about four feet high, and laid planks on it, and so
|
||
|
made a platform. We covered it with swell tapestries borrowed
|
||
|
for the occasion, and topped it off with the abbot's own throne.
|
||
|
When you are going to do a miracle for an ignorant race, you want
|
||
|
to get in every detail that will count; you want to make all the
|
||
|
properties impressive to the public eye; you want to make matters
|
||
|
comfortable for your head guest; then you can turn yourself loose
|
||
|
and play your effects for all they are worth. I know the value of
|
||
|
these things, for I know human nature. You can't throw too much
|
||
|
style into a miracle. It costs trouble, and work, and sometimes
|
||
|
money; but it pays in the end. Well, we brought the wires to
|
||
|
the ground at the chapel, and then brought them under the ground
|
||
|
to the platform, and hid the batteries there. We put a rope fence
|
||
|
a hundred feet square around the platform to keep off the common
|
||
|
multitude, and that finished the work. My idea was, doors open
|
||
|
at 10:30, performance to begin at 11:25 sharp. I wished I could
|
||
|
charge admission, but of course that wouldn't answer. I instructed
|
||
|
my boys to be in the chapel as early as 10, before anybody was
|
||
|
around, and be ready to man the pumps at the proper time, and
|
||
|
make the fur fly. Then we went home to supper.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The news of the disaster to the well had traveled far by this time;
|
||
|
and now for two or three days a steady avalanche of people had
|
||
|
been pouring into the valley. The lower end of the valley was
|
||
|
become one huge camp; we should have a good house, no question
|
||
|
about that. Criers went the rounds early in the evening and
|
||
|
announced the coming attempt, which put every pulse up to fever
|
||
|
heat. They gave notice that the abbot and his official suite would
|
||
|
move in state and occupy the platform at 10:30, up to which time
|
||
|
all the region which was under my ban must be clear; the bells
|
||
|
would then cease from tolling, and this sign should be permission
|
||
|
to the multitudes to close in and take their places.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was at the platform and all ready to do the honors when the
|
||
|
abbot's solemn procession hove in sight--which it did not do till
|
||
|
it was nearly to the rope fence, because it was a starless black
|
||
|
night and no torches permitted. With it came Merlin, and took
|
||
|
a front seat on the platform; he was as good as his word for once.
|
||
|
One could not see the multitudes banked together beyond the ban,
|
||
|
but they were there, just the same. The moment the bells stopped,
|
||
|
those banked masses broke and poured over the line like a vast
|
||
|
black wave, and for as much as a half hour it continued to flow,
|
||
|
and then it solidified itself, and you could have walked upon
|
||
|
a pavement of human heads to--well, miles.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had a solemn stage-wait, now, for about twenty minutes--a thing
|
||
|
I had counted on for effect; it is always good to let your audience
|
||
|
have a chance to work up its expectancy. At length, out of the
|
||
|
silence a noble Latin chant--men's voices--broke and swelled up
|
||
|
and rolled away into the night, a majestic tide of melody. I had
|
||
|
put that up, too, and it was one of the best effects I ever invented.
|
||
|
When it was finished I stood up on the platform and extended my
|
||
|
hands abroad, for two minutes, with my face uplifted--that always
|
||
|
produces a dead hush--and then slowly pronounced this ghastly word
|
||
|
with a kind of awfulness which caused hundreds to tremble, and
|
||
|
many women to faint:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Constantinopolitanischerdudelsackspfeifenmachersgesellschafft!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just as I was moaning out the closing hunks of that word, I touched
|
||
|
off one of my electric connections and all that murky world of
|
||
|
people stood revealed in a hideous blue glare! It was immense
|
||
|
--that effect! Lots of people shrieked, women curled up and quit
|
||
|
in every direction, foundlings collapsed by platoons. The abbot
|
||
|
and the monks crossed themselves nimbly and their lips fluttered
|
||
|
with agitated prayers. Merlin held his grip, but he was astonished
|
||
|
clear down to his corns; he had never seen anything to begin
|
||
|
with that, before. Now was the time to pile in the effects. I lifted
|
||
|
my hands and groaned out this word--as it were in agony:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nihilistendynamittheaterkaestchenssprengungsattentaetsversuchungen!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
--and turned on the red fire! You should have heard that Atlantic
|
||
|
of people moan and howl when that crimson hell joined the blue!
|
||
|
After sixty seconds I shouted:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Transvaaltruppentropentransporttrampelthiertreibertrauungsthraenen-
|
||
|
tragoedie!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
--and lit up the green fire! After waiting only forty seconds this
|
||
|
time, I spread my arms abroad and thundered out the devastating
|
||
|
syllables of this word of words:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mekkamuselmannenmassenmenchenmoerdermohrenmuttermarmormonumentenmacher!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
--and whirled on the purple glare! There they were, all going
|
||
|
at once, red, blue, green, purple!--four furious volcanoes pouring
|
||
|
vast clouds of radiant smoke aloft, and spreading a blinding
|
||
|
rainbowed noonday to the furthest confines of that valley. In
|
||
|
the distance one could see that fellow on the pillar standing rigid
|
||
|
against the background of sky, his seesaw stopped for the first
|
||
|
time in twenty years. I knew the boys were at the pump now and
|
||
|
ready. So I said to the abbot:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The time is come, Father. I am about to pronounce the dread name
|
||
|
and command the spell to dissolve. You want to brace up, and take
|
||
|
hold of something." Then I shouted to the people: "Behold, in
|
||
|
another minute the spell will be broken, or no mortal can break it.
|
||
|
If it break, all will know it, for you will see the sacred water
|
||
|
gush from the chapel door!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I stood a few moments, to let the hearers have a chance to spread
|
||
|
my announcement to those who couldn't hear, and so convey it
|
||
|
to the furthest ranks, then I made a grand exhibition of extra
|
||
|
posturing and gesturing, and shouted:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lo, I command the fell spirit that possesses the holy fountain
|
||
|
to now disgorge into the skies all the infernal fires that still
|
||
|
remain in him, and straightway dissolve his spell and flee hence
|
||
|
to the pit, there to lie bound a thousand years. By his own dread
|
||
|
name I command it--BGWJJILLIGKKK!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I touched off the hogshead of rockets, and a vast fountain of
|
||
|
dazzling lances of fire vomited itself toward the zenith with a
|
||
|
hissing rush, and burst in mid-sky into a storm of flashing jewels!
|
||
|
One mighty groan of terror started up from the massed people
|
||
|
--then suddenly broke into a wild hosannah of joy--for there, fair
|
||
|
and plain in the uncanny glare, they saw the freed water leaping
|
||
|
forth! The old abbot could not speak a word, for tears and the
|
||
|
chokings in his throat; without utterance of any sort, he folded me
|
||
|
in his arms and mashed me. It was more eloquent than speech.
|
||
|
And harder to get over, too, in a country where there were really
|
||
|
no doctors that were worth a damaged nickel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
You should have seen those acres of people throw themselves down
|
||
|
in that water and kiss it; kiss it, and pet it, and fondle it, and
|
||
|
talk to it as if it were alive, and welcome it back with the dear
|
||
|
names they gave their darlings, just as if it had been a friend who
|
||
|
was long gone away and lost, and was come home again. Yes, it was
|
||
|
pretty to see, and made me think more of them than I had done before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sent Merlin home on a shutter. He had caved in and gone down
|
||
|
like a landslide when I pronounced that fearful name, and had
|
||
|
never come to since. He never had heard that name before,--neither
|
||
|
had I--but to him it was the right one. Any jumble would have
|
||
|
been the right one. He admitted, afterward, that that spirit's own
|
||
|
mother could not have pronounced that name better than I did.
|
||
|
He never could understand how I survived it, and I didn't tell
|
||
|
him. It is only young magicians that give away a secret like that.
|
||
|
Merlin spent three months working enchantments to try to find out
|
||
|
the deep trick of how to pronounce that name and outlive it.
|
||
|
But he didn't arrive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I started to the chapel, the populace uncovered and fell back
|
||
|
reverently to make a wide way for me, as if I had been some kind
|
||
|
of a superior being--and I was. I was aware of that. I took along
|
||
|
a night shift of monks, and taught them the mystery of the pump,
|
||
|
and set them to work, for it was plain that a good part of the
|
||
|
people out there were going to sit up with the water all night,
|
||
|
consequently it was but right that they should have all they wanted
|
||
|
of it. To those monks that pump was a good deal of a miracle
|
||
|
itself, and they were full of wonder over it; and of admiration,
|
||
|
too, of the exceeding effectiveness of its performance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a great night, an immense night. There was reputation in it.
|
||
|
I could hardly get to sleep for glorying over it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXIV
|
||
|
|
||
|
A RIVAL MAGICIAN
|
||
|
|
||
|
My influence in the Valley of Holiness was something prodigious
|
||
|
now. It seemed worth while to try to turn it to some valuable
|
||
|
account. The thought came to me the next morning, and was suggested
|
||
|
by my seeing one of my knights who was in the soap line come
|
||
|
riding in. According to history, the monks of this place two
|
||
|
centuries before had been worldly minded enough to want to wash.
|
||
|
It might be that there was a leaven of this unrighteousness still
|
||
|
remaining. So I sounded a Brother:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wouldn't you like a bath?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He shuddered at the thought--the thought of the peril of it to
|
||
|
the well--but he said with feeling:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"One needs not to ask that of a poor body who has not known that
|
||
|
blessed refreshment sith that he was a boy. Would God I might
|
||
|
wash me! but it may not be, fair sir, tempt me not; it is forbidden."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then he sighed in such a sorrowful way that I was resolved
|
||
|
he should have at least one layer of his real estate removed,
|
||
|
if it sized up my whole influence and bankrupted the pile. So I
|
||
|
went to the abbot and asked for a permit for this Brother. He
|
||
|
blenched at the idea--I don't mean that you could see him blench,
|
||
|
for of course you couldn't see it without you scraped him, and
|
||
|
I didn't care enough about it to scrape him, but I knew the blench
|
||
|
was there, just the same, and within a book-cover's thickness of
|
||
|
the surface, too--blenched, and trembled. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, son, ask aught else thou wilt, and it is thine, and freely
|
||
|
granted out of a grateful heart--but this, oh, this! Would you
|
||
|
drive away the blessed water again?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, Father, I will not drive it away. I have mysterious knowledge
|
||
|
which teaches me that there was an error that other time when
|
||
|
it was thought the institution of the bath banished the fountain."
|
||
|
A large interest began to show up in the old man's face. "My
|
||
|
knowledge informs me that the bath was innocent of that misfortune,
|
||
|
which was caused by quite another sort of sin."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These are brave words--but--but right welcome, if they be true."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are true, indeed. Let me build the bath again, Father.
|
||
|
Let me build it again, and the fountain shall flow forever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You promise this?--you promise it? Say the word--say you promise it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do promise it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then will I have the first bath myself! Go--get ye to your work.
|
||
|
Tarry not, tarry not, but go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I and my boys were at work, straight off. The ruins of the old
|
||
|
bath were there yet in the basement of the monastery, not a stone
|
||
|
missing. They had been left just so, all these lifetimes, and
|
||
|
avoided with a pious fear, as things accursed. In two days we
|
||
|
had it all done and the water in--a spacious pool of clear pure
|
||
|
water that a body could swim in. It was running water, too.
|
||
|
It came in, and went out, through the ancient pipes. The old abbot
|
||
|
kept his word, and was the first to try it. He went down black
|
||
|
and shaky, leaving the whole black community above troubled and
|
||
|
worried and full of bodings; but he came back white and joyful,
|
||
|
and the game was made! another triumph scored.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a good campaign that we made in that Valley of Holiness,
|
||
|
and I was very well satisfied, and ready to move on now, but
|
||
|
I struck a disappointment. I caught a heavy cold, and it started
|
||
|
up an old lurking rheumatism of mine. Of course the rheumatism
|
||
|
hunted up my weakest place and located itself there. This was
|
||
|
the place where the abbot put his arms about me and mashed me, what
|
||
|
time he was moved to testify his gratitude to me with an embrace.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When at last I got out, I was a shadow. But everybody was full
|
||
|
of attentions and kindnesses, and these brought cheer back into
|
||
|
my life, and were the right medicine to help a convalescent swiftly
|
||
|
up toward health and strength again; so I gained fast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sandy was worn out with nursing; so I made up my mind to turn out
|
||
|
and go a cruise alone, leaving her at the nunnery to rest up.
|
||
|
My idea was to disguise myself as a freeman of peasant degree
|
||
|
and wander through the country a week or two on foot. This would
|
||
|
give me a chance to eat and lodge with the lowliest and poorest
|
||
|
class of free citizens on equal terms. There was no other way
|
||
|
to inform myself perfectly of their everyday life and the operation
|
||
|
of the laws upon it. If I went among them as a gentleman, there
|
||
|
would be restraints and conventionalities which would shut me out
|
||
|
from their private joys and troubles, and I should get no further
|
||
|
than the outside shell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One morning I was out on a long walk to get up muscle for my trip,
|
||
|
and had climbed the ridge which bordered the northern extremity
|
||
|
of the valley, when I came upon an artificial opening in the face
|
||
|
of a low precipice, and recognized it by its location as a hermitage
|
||
|
which had often been pointed out to me from a distance as the den
|
||
|
of a hermit of high renown for dirt and austerity. I knew he had
|
||
|
lately been offered a situation in the Great Sahara, where lions
|
||
|
and sandflies made the hermit-life peculiarly attractive and
|
||
|
difficult, and had gone to Africa to take possession, so I thought
|
||
|
I would look in and see how the atmosphere of this den agreed
|
||
|
with its reputation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My surprise was great: the place was newly swept and scoured.
|
||
|
Then there was another surprise. Back in the gloom of the cavern
|
||
|
I heard the clink of a little bell, and then this exclamation:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hello Central! Is this you, Camelot?--Behold, thou mayst glad
|
||
|
thy heart an thou hast faith to believe the wonderful when that
|
||
|
it cometh in unexpected guise and maketh itself manifest in
|
||
|
impossible places--here standeth in the flesh his mightiness
|
||
|
The Boss, and with thine own ears shall ye hear him speak!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now what a radical reversal of things this was; what a jumbling
|
||
|
together of extravagant incongruities; what a fantastic conjunction
|
||
|
of opposites and irreconcilables--the home of the bogus miracle
|
||
|
become the home of a real one, the den of a mediaeval hermit turned
|
||
|
into a telephone office!
|
||
|
|
||
|
The telephone clerk stepped into the light, and I recognized one
|
||
|
of my young fellows. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How long has this office been established here, Ulfius?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But since midnight, fair Sir Boss, an it please you. We saw many
|
||
|
lights in the valley, and so judged it well to make a station,
|
||
|
for that where so many lights be needs must they indicate a town
|
||
|
of goodly size."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Quite right. It isn't a town in the customary sense, but it's
|
||
|
a good stand, anyway. Do you know where you are?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of that I have had no time to make inquiry; for whenas my
|
||
|
comradeship moved hence upon their labors, leaving me in charge,
|
||
|
I got me to needed rest, purposing to inquire when I waked, and
|
||
|
report the place's name to Camelot for record."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, this is the Valley of Holiness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It didn't take; I mean, he didn't start at the name, as I had
|
||
|
supposed he would. He merely said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will so report it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, the surrounding regions are filled with the noise of late
|
||
|
wonders that have happened here! You didn't hear of them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, ye will remember we move by night, and avoid speech with all.
|
||
|
We learn naught but that we get by the telephone from Camelot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why _they_ know all about this thing. Haven't they told you anything
|
||
|
about the great miracle of the restoration of a holy fountain?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, _that_? Indeed yes. But the name of _this_ valley doth woundily
|
||
|
differ from the name of _that_ one; indeed to differ wider were not pos--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What was that name, then?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Valley of Hellishness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_That_ explains it. Confound a telephone, anyway. It is the very
|
||
|
demon for conveying similarities of sound that are miracles of
|
||
|
divergence from similarity of sense. But no matter, you know
|
||
|
the name of the place now. Call up Camelot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did it, and had Clarence sent for. It was good to hear my boy's
|
||
|
voice again. It was like being home. After some affectionate
|
||
|
interchanges, and some account of my late illness, I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is new?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The king and queen and many of the court do start even in this
|
||
|
hour, to go to your valley to pay pious homage to the waters ye
|
||
|
have restored, and cleanse themselves of sin, and see the place
|
||
|
where the infernal spirit spouted true hell-flames to the clouds
|
||
|
--an ye listen sharply ye may hear me wink and hear me likewise
|
||
|
smile a smile, sith 'twas I that made selection of those flames
|
||
|
from out our stock and sent them by your order."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Does the king know the way to this place?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The king?--no, nor to any other in his realms, mayhap; but the lads
|
||
|
that holp you with your miracle will be his guide and lead the way,
|
||
|
and appoint the places for rests at noons and sleeps at night."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This will bring them here--when?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mid-afternoon, or later, the third day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Anything else in the way of news?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The king hath begun the raising of the standing army ye suggested
|
||
|
to him; one regiment is complete and officered."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The mischief! I wanted a main hand in that myself. There is
|
||
|
only one body of men in the kingdom that are fitted to officer
|
||
|
a regular army."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--and now ye will marvel to know there's not so much as one
|
||
|
West Pointer in that regiment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What are you talking about? Are you in earnest?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is truly as I have said."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, this makes me uneasy. Who were chosen, and what was the
|
||
|
method? Competitive examination?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, I know naught of the method. I but know this--these
|
||
|
officers be all of noble family, and are born--what is it you
|
||
|
call it?--chuckleheads."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's something wrong, Clarence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Comfort yourself, then; for two candidates for a lieutenancy do
|
||
|
travel hence with the king--young nobles both--and if you but wait
|
||
|
where you are you will hear them questioned."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is news to the purpose. I will get one West Pointer in,
|
||
|
anyway. Mount a man and send him to that school with a message;
|
||
|
let him kill horses, if necessary, but he must be there before
|
||
|
sunset to-night and say--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is no need. I have laid a ground wire to the school.
|
||
|
Prithee let me connect you with it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It sounded good! In this atmosphere of telephones and lightning
|
||
|
communication with distant regions, I was breathing the breath
|
||
|
of life again after long suffocation. I realized, then, what a
|
||
|
creepy, dull, inanimate horror this land had been to me all these
|
||
|
years, and how I had been in such a stifled condition of mind as
|
||
|
to have grown used to it almost beyond the power to notice it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I gave my order to the superintendent of the Academy personally.
|
||
|
I also asked him to bring me some paper and a fountain pen and
|
||
|
a box or so of safety matches. I was getting tired of doing
|
||
|
without these conveniences. I could have them now, as I wasn't
|
||
|
going to wear armor any more at present, and therefore could get
|
||
|
at my pockets.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I got back to the monastery, I found a thing of interest
|
||
|
going on. The abbot and his monks were assembled in the great
|
||
|
hall, observing with childish wonder and faith the performances
|
||
|
of a new magician, a fresh arrival. His dress was the extreme of
|
||
|
the fantastic; as showy and foolish as the sort of thing an Indian
|
||
|
medicine-man wears. He was mowing, and mumbling, and gesticulating,
|
||
|
and drawing mystical figures in the air and on the floor,--the
|
||
|
regular thing, you know. He was a celebrity from Asia--so he
|
||
|
said, and that was enough. That sort of evidence was as good
|
||
|
as gold, and passed current everywhere.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How easy and cheap it was to be a great magician on this fellow's
|
||
|
terms. His specialty was to tell you what any individual on the
|
||
|
face of the globe was doing at the moment; and what he had done
|
||
|
at any time in the past, and what he would do at any time in the
|
||
|
future. He asked if any would like to know what the Emperor of
|
||
|
the East was doing now? The sparkling eyes and the delighted rubbing
|
||
|
of hands made eloquent answer--this reverend crowd _would_ like to
|
||
|
know what that monarch was at, just as this moment. The fraud
|
||
|
went through some more mummery, and then made grave announcement:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The high and mighty Emperor of the East doth at this moment put
|
||
|
money in the palm of a holy begging friar--one, two, three pieces,
|
||
|
and they be all of silver."
|
||
|
|
||
|
A buzz of admiring exclamations broke out, all around:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is marvelous!" "Wonderful!" "What study, what labor, to have
|
||
|
acquired a so amazing power as this!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Would they like to know what the Supreme Lord of Inde was doing?
|
||
|
Yes. He told them what the Supreme Lord of Inde was doing. Then
|
||
|
he told them what the Sultan of Egypt was at; also what the King
|
||
|
of the Remote Seas was about. And so on and so on; and with each
|
||
|
new marvel the astonishment at his accuracy rose higher and higher.
|
||
|
They thought he must surely strike an uncertain place some time;
|
||
|
but no, he never had to hesitate, he always knew, and always with
|
||
|
unerring precision. I saw that if this thing went on I should lose
|
||
|
my supremacy, this fellow would capture my following, I should
|
||
|
be left out in the cold. I must put a cog in his wheel, and do it
|
||
|
right away, too. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I might ask, I should very greatly like to know what a certain
|
||
|
person is doing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Speak, and freely. I will tell you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be difficult--perhaps impossible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My art knoweth not that word. The more difficult it is, the more
|
||
|
certainly will I reveal it to you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
You see, I was working up the interest. It was getting pretty
|
||
|
high, too; you could see that by the craning necks all around,
|
||
|
and the half-suspended breathing. So now I climaxed it:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you make no mistake--if you tell me truly what I want to
|
||
|
know--I will give you two hundred silver pennies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The fortune is mine! I will tell you what you would know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then tell me what I am doing with my right hand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah-h!" There was a general gasp of surprise. It had not occurred
|
||
|
to anybody in the crowd--that simple trick of inquiring about
|
||
|
somebody who wasn't ten thousand miles away. The magician was
|
||
|
hit hard; it was an emergency that had never happened in his
|
||
|
experience before, and it corked him; he didn't know how to meet
|
||
|
it. He looked stunned, confused; he couldn't say a word. "Come,"
|
||
|
I said, "what are you waiting for? Is it possible you can answer up,
|
||
|
right off, and tell what anybody on the other side of the earth is
|
||
|
doing, and yet can't tell what a person is doing who isn't three
|
||
|
yards from you? Persons behind me know what I am doing with my
|
||
|
right hand--they will indorse you if you tell correctly." He was
|
||
|
still dumb. "Very well, I'll tell you why you don't speak up and
|
||
|
tell; it is because you don't know. _You_ a magician! Good friends,
|
||
|
this tramp is a mere fraud and liar."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This distressed the monks and terrified them. They were not used
|
||
|
to hearing these awful beings called names, and they did not know
|
||
|
what might be the consequence. There was a dead silence now;
|
||
|
superstitious bodings were in every mind. The magician began to
|
||
|
pull his wits together, and when he presently smiled an easy,
|
||
|
nonchalant smile, it spread a mighty relief around; for it indicated
|
||
|
that his mood was not destructive. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It hath struck me speechless, the frivolity of this person's
|
||
|
speech. Let all know, if perchance there be any who know it not,
|
||
|
that enchanters of my degree deign not to concern themselves with
|
||
|
the doings of any but kings, princes, emperors, them that be born
|
||
|
in the purple and them only. Had ye asked me what Arthur the great
|
||
|
king is doing, it were another matter, and I had told ye; but the
|
||
|
doings of a subject interest me not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, I misunderstood you. I thought you said 'anybody,' and so
|
||
|
I supposed 'anybody' included--well, anybody; that is, everybody."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It doth--anybody that is of lofty birth; and the better if
|
||
|
he be royal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That, it meseemeth, might well be," said the abbot, who saw his
|
||
|
opportunity to smooth things and avert disaster, "for it were not
|
||
|
likely that so wonderful a gift as this would be conferred for
|
||
|
the revelation of the concerns of lesser beings than such as be
|
||
|
born near to the summits of greatness. Our Arthur the king--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would you know of him?" broke in the enchanter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Most gladly, yea, and gratefully."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Everybody was full of awe and interest again right away, the
|
||
|
incorrigible idiots. They watched the incantations absorbingly,
|
||
|
and looked at me with a "There, now, what can you say to that?"
|
||
|
air, when the announcement came:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The king is weary with the chase, and lieth in his palace these
|
||
|
two hours sleeping a dreamless sleep."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"God's benison upon him!" said the abbot, and crossed himself;
|
||
|
"may that sleep be to the refreshment of his body and his soul."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so it might be, if he were sleeping," I said, "but the king
|
||
|
is not sleeping, the king rides."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here was trouble again--a conflict of authority. Nobody knew which
|
||
|
of us to believe; I still had some reputation left. The magician's
|
||
|
scorn was stirred, and he said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lo, I have seen many wonderful soothsayers and prophets and
|
||
|
magicians in my life days, but none before that could sit idle and
|
||
|
see to the heart of things with never an incantation to help."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have lived in the woods, and lost much by it. I use incantations
|
||
|
myself, as this good brotherhood are aware--but only on occasions
|
||
|
of moment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
When it comes to sarcasming, I reckon I know how to keep my end up.
|
||
|
That jab made this fellow squirm. The abbot inquired after the
|
||
|
queen and the court, and got this information:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They be all on sleep, being overcome by fatigue, like as to the king."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is merely another lie. Half of them are about their amusements,
|
||
|
the queen and the other half are not sleeping, they ride. Now
|
||
|
perhaps you can spread yourself a little, and tell us where the king
|
||
|
and queen and all that are this moment riding with them are going?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They sleep now, as I said; but on the morrow they will ride,
|
||
|
for they go a journey toward the sea."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And where will they be the day after to-morrow at vespers?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Far to the north of Camelot, and half their journey will be done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is another lie, by the space of a hundred and fifty miles.
|
||
|
Their journey will not be merely half done, it will be all done,
|
||
|
and they will be _here_, in this valley."
|
||
|
|
||
|
_That_ was a noble shot! It set the abbot and the monks in a whirl
|
||
|
of excitement, and it rocked the enchanter to his base. I followed
|
||
|
the thing right up:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If the king does not arrive, I will have myself ridden on a rail:
|
||
|
if he does I will ride you on a rail instead."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Next day I went up to the telephone office and found that the king
|
||
|
had passed through two towns that were on the line. I spotted
|
||
|
his progress on the succeeding day in the same way. I kept these
|
||
|
matters to myself. The third day's reports showed that if he
|
||
|
kept up his gait he would arrive by four in the afternoon. There
|
||
|
was still no sign anywhere of interest in his coming; there seemed
|
||
|
to be no preparations making to receive him in state; a strange
|
||
|
thing, truly. Only one thing could explain this: that other
|
||
|
magician had been cutting under me, sure. This was true. I asked
|
||
|
a friend of mine, a monk, about it, and he said, yes, the magician
|
||
|
had tried some further enchantments and found out that the court
|
||
|
had concluded to make no journey at all, but stay at home. Think
|
||
|
of that! Observe how much a reputation was worth in such a country.
|
||
|
These people had seen me do the very showiest bit of magic in
|
||
|
history, and the only one within their memory that had a positive
|
||
|
value, and yet here they were, ready to take up with an adventurer
|
||
|
who could offer no evidence of his powers but his mere unproven word.
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, it was not good politics to let the king come without
|
||
|
any fuss and feathers at all, so I went down and drummed up a
|
||
|
procession of pilgrims and smoked out a batch of hermits and
|
||
|
started them out at two o'clock to meet him. And that was the
|
||
|
sort of state he arrived in. The abbot was helpless with rage
|
||
|
and humiliation when I brought him out on a balcony and showed
|
||
|
him the head of the state marching in and never a monk on hand to
|
||
|
offer him welcome, and no stir of life or clang of joy-bell to glad
|
||
|
his spirit. He took one look and then flew to rouse out his forces.
|
||
|
The next minute the bells were dinning furiously, and the various
|
||
|
buildings were vomiting monks and nuns, who went swarming in a
|
||
|
rush toward the coming procession; and with them went that magician
|
||
|
--and he was on a rail, too, by the abbot's order; and his reputation
|
||
|
was in the mud, and mine was in the sky again. Yes, a man can
|
||
|
keep his trademark current in such a country, but he can't sit
|
||
|
around and do it; he has got to be on deck and attending to business
|
||
|
right along.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXV
|
||
|
|
||
|
A COMPETITIVE EXAMINATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the king traveled for change of air, or made a progress, or
|
||
|
visited a distant noble whom he wished to bankrupt with the cost
|
||
|
of his keep, part of the administration moved with him. It was
|
||
|
a fashion of the time. The Commission charged with the examination
|
||
|
of candidates for posts in the army came with the king to the
|
||
|
Valley, whereas they could have transacted their business just
|
||
|
as well at home. And although this expedition was strictly a
|
||
|
holiday excursion for the king, he kept some of his business
|
||
|
functions going just the same. He touched for the evil, as usual;
|
||
|
he held court in the gate at sunrise and tried cases, for he was
|
||
|
himself Chief Justice of the King's Bench.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He shone very well in this latter office. He was a wise and humane
|
||
|
judge, and he clearly did his honest best and fairest,--according
|
||
|
to his lights. That is a large reservation. His lights--I mean
|
||
|
his rearing--often colored his decisions. Whenever there was a
|
||
|
dispute between a noble or gentleman and a person of lower degree,
|
||
|
the king's leanings and sympathies were for the former class always,
|
||
|
whether he suspected it or not. It was impossible that this should
|
||
|
be otherwise. The blunting effects of slavery upon the slaveholder's
|
||
|
moral perceptions are known and conceded, the world over; and a
|
||
|
privileged class, an aristocracy, is but a band of slaveholders
|
||
|
under another name. This has a harsh sound, and yet should not
|
||
|
be offensive to any--even to the noble himself--unless the fact
|
||
|
itself be an offense: for the statement simply formulates a fact.
|
||
|
The repulsive feature of slavery is the _thing_, not its name. One
|
||
|
needs but to hear an aristocrat speak of the classes that are below
|
||
|
him to recognize--and in but indifferently modified measure
|
||
|
--the very air and tone of the actual slaveholder; and behind these
|
||
|
are the slaveholder's spirit, the slaveholder's blunted feeling.
|
||
|
They are the result of the same cause in both cases: the possessor's
|
||
|
old and inbred custom of regarding himself as a superior being.
|
||
|
The king's judgments wrought frequent injustices, but it was merely
|
||
|
the fault of his training, his natural and unalterable sympathies.
|
||
|
He was as unfitted for a judgeship as would be the average mother
|
||
|
for the position of milk-distributor to starving children in
|
||
|
famine-time; her own children would fare a shade better than the rest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One very curious case came before the king. A young girl, an
|
||
|
orphan, who had a considerable estate, married a fine young fellow
|
||
|
who had nothing. The girl's property was within a seigniory held
|
||
|
by the Church. The bishop of the diocese, an arrogant scion of
|
||
|
the great nobility, claimed the girl's estate on the ground that
|
||
|
she had married privately, and thus had cheated the Church out
|
||
|
of one of its rights as lord of the seigniory--the one heretofore
|
||
|
referred to as le droit du seigneur. The penalty of refusal or
|
||
|
avoidance was confiscation. The girl's defense was, that the
|
||
|
lordship of the seigniory was vested in the bishop, and the
|
||
|
particular right here involved was not transferable, but must be
|
||
|
exercised by the lord himself or stand vacated; and that an older
|
||
|
law, of the Church itself, strictly barred the bishop from exercising
|
||
|
it. It was a very odd case, indeed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It reminded me of something I had read in my youth about the
|
||
|
ingenious way in which the aldermen of London raised the money
|
||
|
that built the Mansion House. A person who had not taken the
|
||
|
Sacrament according to the Anglican rite could not stand as a
|
||
|
candidate for sheriff of London. Thus Dissenters were ineligible;
|
||
|
they could not run if asked, they could not serve if elected.
|
||
|
The aldermen, who without any question were Yankees in disguise,
|
||
|
hit upon this neat device: they passed a by-law imposing a fine
|
||
|
of L400 upon any one who should refuse to be a candidate for
|
||
|
sheriff, and a fine of L600 upon any person who, after being
|
||
|
elected sheriff, refused to serve. Then they went to work and
|
||
|
elected a lot of Dissenters, one after another, and kept it up
|
||
|
until they had collected L15,000 in fines; and there stands the
|
||
|
stately Mansion House to this day, to keep the blushing citizen
|
||
|
in mind of a long past and lamented day when a band of Yankees
|
||
|
slipped into London and played games of the sort that has given
|
||
|
their race a unique and shady reputation among all truly good
|
||
|
and holy peoples that be in the earth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl's case seemed strong to me; the bishop's case was just
|
||
|
as strong. I did not see how the king was going to get out of
|
||
|
this hole. But he got out. I append his decision:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Truly I find small difficulty here, the matter being even a
|
||
|
child's affair for simpleness. An the young bride had conveyed
|
||
|
notice, as in duty bound, to her feudal lord and proper master
|
||
|
and protector the bishop, she had suffered no loss, for the said
|
||
|
bishop could have got a dispensation making him, for temporary
|
||
|
conveniency, eligible to the exercise of his said right, and thus
|
||
|
would she have kept all she had. Whereas, failing in her first
|
||
|
duty, she hath by that failure failed in all; for whoso, clinging
|
||
|
to a rope, severeth it above his hands, must fall; it being no
|
||
|
defense to claim that the rest of the rope is sound, neither any
|
||
|
deliverance from his peril, as he shall find. Pardy, the woman's
|
||
|
case is rotten at the source. It is the decree of the court that
|
||
|
she forfeit to the said lord bishop all her goods, even to the
|
||
|
last farthing that she doth possess, and be thereto mulcted in
|
||
|
the costs. Next!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here was a tragic end to a beautiful honeymoon not yet three months
|
||
|
old. Poor young creatures! They had lived these three months
|
||
|
lapped to the lips in worldly comforts. These clothes and trinkets
|
||
|
they were wearing were as fine and dainty as the shrewdest stretch
|
||
|
of the sumptuary laws allowed to people of their degree; and in
|
||
|
these pretty clothes, she crying on his shoulder, and he trying
|
||
|
to comfort her with hopeful words set to the music of despair,
|
||
|
they went from the judgment seat out into the world homeless,
|
||
|
bedless, breadless; why, the very beggars by the roadsides were
|
||
|
not so poor as they.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, the king was out of the hole; and on terms satisfactory to
|
||
|
the Church and the rest of the aristocracy, no doubt. Men write
|
||
|
many fine and plausible arguments in support of monarchy, but
|
||
|
the fact remains that where every man in a State has a vote, brutal
|
||
|
laws are impossible. Arthur's people were of course poor material
|
||
|
for a republic, because they had been debased so long by monarchy;
|
||
|
and yet even they would have been intelligent enough to make short
|
||
|
work of that law which the king had just been administering if it
|
||
|
had been submitted to their full and free vote. There is a phrase
|
||
|
which has grown so common in the world's mouth that it has come
|
||
|
to seem to have sense and meaning--the sense and meaning implied
|
||
|
when it is used; that is the phrase which refers to this or that or
|
||
|
the other nation as possibly being "capable of self-government";
|
||
|
and the implied sense of it is, that there has been a nation
|
||
|
somewhere, some time or other which _wasn't_ capable of it--wasn't as
|
||
|
able to govern itself as some self-appointed specialists were or
|
||
|
would be to govern it. The master minds of all nations, in all
|
||
|
ages, have sprung in affluent multitude from the mass of the nation,
|
||
|
and from the mass of the nation only--not from its privileged
|
||
|
classes; and so, no matter what the nation's intellectual grade
|
||
|
was; whether high or low, the bulk of its ability was in the long
|
||
|
ranks of its nameless and its poor, and so it never saw the day
|
||
|
that it had not the material in abundance whereby to govern itself.
|
||
|
Which is to assert an always self-proven fact: that even the best
|
||
|
governed and most free and most enlightened monarchy is still
|
||
|
behind the best condition attainable by its people; and that the
|
||
|
same is true of kindred governments of lower grades, all the way
|
||
|
down to the lowest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
King Arthur had hurried up the army business altogether beyond
|
||
|
my calculations. I had not supposed he would move in the matter
|
||
|
while I was away; and so I had not mapped out a scheme for determining
|
||
|
the merits of officers; I had only remarked that it would be wise
|
||
|
to submit every candidate to a sharp and searching examination;
|
||
|
and privately I meant to put together a list of military qualifications
|
||
|
that nobody could answer to but my West Pointers. That ought
|
||
|
to have been attended to before I left; for the king was so taken
|
||
|
with the idea of a standing army that he couldn't wait but must
|
||
|
get about it at once, and get up as good a scheme of examination
|
||
|
as he could invent out of his own head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was impatient to see what this was; and to show, too, how much
|
||
|
more admirable was the one which I should display to the Examining
|
||
|
Board. I intimated this, gently, to the king, and it fired his
|
||
|
curiosity. When the Board was assembled, I followed him in; and
|
||
|
behind us came the candidates. One of these candidates was a bright
|
||
|
young West Pointer of mine, and with him were a couple of my
|
||
|
West Point professors.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I saw the Board, I did not know whether to cry or to laugh.
|
||
|
The head of it was the officer known to later centuries as Norroy
|
||
|
King-at-Arms! The two other members were chiefs of bureaus in
|
||
|
his department; and all three were priests, of course; all officials
|
||
|
who had to know how to read and write were priests.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My candidate was called first, out of courtesy to me, and the head
|
||
|
of the Board opened on him with official solemnity:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Name?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mal-ease."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Son of?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Webster."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Webster--Webster. H'm--I--my memory faileth to recall the
|
||
|
name. Condition?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Weaver."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Weaver!--God keep us!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king was staggered, from his summit to his foundations; one
|
||
|
clerk fainted, and the others came near it. The chairman pulled
|
||
|
himself together, and said indignantly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is sufficient. Get you hence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I appealed to the king. I begged that my candidate might be
|
||
|
examined. The king was willing, but the Board, who were all
|
||
|
well-born folk, implored the king to spare them the indignity of
|
||
|
examining the weaver's son. I knew they didn't know enough to
|
||
|
examine him anyway, so I joined my prayers to theirs and the king
|
||
|
turned the duty over to my professors. I had had a blackboard
|
||
|
prepared, and it was put up now, and the circus began. It was
|
||
|
beautiful to hear the lad lay out the science of war, and wallow
|
||
|
in details of battle and siege, of supply, transportation, mining
|
||
|
and countermining, grand tactics, big strategy and little strategy,
|
||
|
signal service, infantry, cavalry, artillery, and all about siege
|
||
|
guns, field guns, gatling guns, rifled guns, smooth bores, musket
|
||
|
practice, revolver practice--and not a solitary word of it all
|
||
|
could these catfish make head or tail of, you understand--and it
|
||
|
was handsome to see him chalk off mathematical nightmares on the
|
||
|
blackboard that would stump the angels themselves, and do it like
|
||
|
nothing, too--all about eclipses, and comets, and solstices, and
|
||
|
constellations, and mean time, and sidereal time, and dinner time,
|
||
|
and bedtime, and every other imaginable thing above the clouds or
|
||
|
under them that you could harry or bullyrag an enemy with and make
|
||
|
him wish he hadn't come--and when the boy made his military salute
|
||
|
and stood aside at last, I was proud enough to hug him, and all
|
||
|
those other people were so dazed they looked partly petrified,
|
||
|
partly drunk, and wholly caught out and snowed under. I judged
|
||
|
that the cake was ours, and by a large majority.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Education is a great thing. This was the same youth who had come
|
||
|
to West Point so ignorant that when I asked him, "If a general
|
||
|
officer should have a horse shot under him on the field of battle,
|
||
|
what ought he to do?" answered up naively and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Get up and brush himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
One of the young nobles was called up now. I thought I would
|
||
|
question him a little myself. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can your lordship read?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
His face flushed indignantly, and he fired this at me:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Takest me for a clerk? I trow I am not of a blood that--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Answer the question!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He crowded his wrath down and made out to answer "No."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can you write?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He wanted to resent this, too, but I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You will confine yourself to the questions, and make no comments.
|
||
|
You are not here to air your blood or your graces, and nothing
|
||
|
of the sort will be permitted. Can you write?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you know the multiplication table?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wit not what ye refer to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How much is 9 times 6?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a mystery that is hidden from me by reason that the emergency
|
||
|
requiring the fathoming of it hath not in my life-days occurred,
|
||
|
and so, not having no need to know this thing, I abide barren
|
||
|
of the knowledge."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If A trade a barrel of onions to B, worth 2 pence the bushel,
|
||
|
in exchange for a sheep worth 4 pence and a dog worth a penny,
|
||
|
and C kill the dog before delivery, because bitten by the same,
|
||
|
who mistook him for D, what sum is still due to A from B, and
|
||
|
which party pays for the dog, C or D, and who gets the money?
|
||
|
If A, is the penny sufficient, or may he claim consequential damages
|
||
|
in the form of additional money to represent the possible profit
|
||
|
which might have inured from the dog, and classifiable as earned
|
||
|
increment, that is to say, usufruct?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Verily, in the all-wise and unknowable providence of God, who
|
||
|
moveth in mysterious ways his wonders to perform, have I never
|
||
|
heard the fellow to this question for confusion of the mind and
|
||
|
congestion of the ducts of thought. Wherefore I beseech you let
|
||
|
the dog and the onions and these people of the strange and godless
|
||
|
names work out their several salvations from their piteous and
|
||
|
wonderful difficulties without help of mine, for indeed their
|
||
|
trouble is sufficient as it is, whereas an I tried to help I should
|
||
|
but damage their cause the more and yet mayhap not live myself
|
||
|
to see the desolation wrought."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you know of the laws of attraction and gravitation?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If there be such, mayhap his grace the king did promulgate them
|
||
|
whilst that I lay sick about the beginning of the year and thereby
|
||
|
failed to hear his proclamation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you know of the science of optics?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know of governors of places, and seneschals of castles, and
|
||
|
sheriffs of counties, and many like small offices and titles of
|
||
|
honor, but him you call the Science of Optics I have not heard
|
||
|
of before; peradventure it is a new dignity."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, in this country."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Try to conceive of this mollusk gravely applying for an official
|
||
|
position, of any kind under the sun! Why, he had all the earmarks
|
||
|
of a typewriter copyist, if you leave out the disposition to
|
||
|
contribute uninvited emendations of your grammar and punctuation.
|
||
|
It was unaccountable that he didn't attempt a little help of that
|
||
|
sort out of his majestic supply of incapacity for the job. But that
|
||
|
didn't prove that he hadn't material in him for the disposition,
|
||
|
it only proved that he wasn't a typewriter copyist yet. After
|
||
|
nagging him a little more, I let the professors loose on him and
|
||
|
they turned him inside out, on the line of scientific war, and
|
||
|
found him empty, of course. He knew somewhat about the warfare
|
||
|
of the time--bushwhacking around for ogres, and bull-fights in
|
||
|
the tournament ring, and such things--but otherwise he was empty
|
||
|
and useless. Then we took the other young noble in hand, and he
|
||
|
was the first one's twin, for ignorance and incapacity. I delivered
|
||
|
them into the hands of the chairman of the Board with the comfortable
|
||
|
consciousness that their cake was dough. They were examined in
|
||
|
the previous order of precedence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Name, so please you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pertipole, son of Sir Pertipole, Baron of Barley Mash."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Grandfather?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Also Sir Pertipole, Baron of Barley Mash."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Great-grandfather?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The same name and title."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Great-great-grandfather?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We had none, worshipful sir, the line failing before it had
|
||
|
reached so far back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It mattereth not. It is a good four generations, and fulfilleth
|
||
|
the requirements of the rule."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fulfills what rule?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The rule requiring four generations of nobility or else the
|
||
|
candidate is not eligible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A man not eligible for a lieutenancy in the army unless he can
|
||
|
prove four generations of noble descent?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even so; neither lieutenant nor any other officer may be commissioned
|
||
|
without that qualification."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, come, this is an astonishing thing. What good is such a
|
||
|
qualification as that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What good? It is a hardy question, fair sir and Boss, since it doth
|
||
|
go far to impugn the wisdom of even our holy Mother Church herself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As how?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For that she hath established the self-same rule regarding
|
||
|
saints. By her law none may be canonized until he hath lain dead
|
||
|
four generations."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I see, I see--it is the same thing. It is wonderful. In the one
|
||
|
case a man lies dead-alive four generations--mummified in ignorance
|
||
|
and sloth--and that qualifies him to command live people, and take
|
||
|
their weal and woe into his impotent hands; and in the other case,
|
||
|
a man lies bedded with death and worms four generations, and that
|
||
|
qualifies him for office in the celestial camp. Does the king's
|
||
|
grace approve of this strange law?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, truly I see naught about it that is strange. All places of
|
||
|
honor and of profit do belong, by natural right, to them that be
|
||
|
of noble blood, and so these dignities in the army are their
|
||
|
property and would be so without this or any rule. The rule is
|
||
|
but to mark a limit. Its purpose is to keep out too recent blood,
|
||
|
which would bring into contempt these offices, and men of lofty
|
||
|
lineage would turn their backs and scorn to take them. I were
|
||
|
to blame an I permitted this calamity. _You_ can permit it an you
|
||
|
are minded so to do, for you have the delegated authority, but
|
||
|
that the king should do it were a most strange madness and not
|
||
|
comprehensible to any."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I yield. Proceed, sir Chief of the Herald's College."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The chairman resumed as follows:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By what illustrious achievement for the honor of the Throne and
|
||
|
State did the founder of your great line lift himself to the
|
||
|
sacred dignity of the British nobility?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He built a brewery."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sire, the Board finds this candidate perfect in all the requirements
|
||
|
and qualifications for military command, and doth hold his case
|
||
|
open for decision after due examination of his competitor."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The competitor came forward and proved exactly four generations
|
||
|
of nobility himself. So there was a tie in military qualifications
|
||
|
that far.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He stood aside a moment, and Sir Pertipole was questioned further:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of what condition was the wife of the founder of your line?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She came of the highest landed gentry, yet she was not noble;
|
||
|
she was gracious and pure and charitable, of a blameless life and
|
||
|
character, insomuch that in these regards was she peer of the
|
||
|
best lady in the land."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That will do. Stand down." He called up the competing lordling
|
||
|
again, and asked: "What was the rank and condition of the
|
||
|
great-grandmother who conferred British nobility upon your
|
||
|
great house?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She was a king's leman and did climb to that splendid eminence
|
||
|
by her own unholpen merit from the sewer where she was born."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, this, indeed, is true nobility, this is the right and perfect
|
||
|
intermixture. The lieutenancy is yours, fair lord. Hold it not in
|
||
|
contempt; it is the humble step which will lead to grandeurs more
|
||
|
worthy of the splendor of an origin like to thine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was down in the bottomless pit of humiliation. I had promised
|
||
|
myself an easy and zenith-scouring triumph, and this was the outcome!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was almost ashamed to look my poor disappointed cadet in the
|
||
|
face. I told him to go home and be patient, this wasn't the end.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had a private audience with the king, and made a proposition.
|
||
|
I said it was quite right to officer that regiment with nobilities,
|
||
|
and he couldn't have done a wiser thing. It would also be a good
|
||
|
idea to add five hundred officers to it; in fact, add as many
|
||
|
officers as there were nobles and relatives of nobles in the
|
||
|
country, even if there should finally be five times as many officers
|
||
|
as privates in it; and thus make it the crack regiment, the envied
|
||
|
regiment, the King's Own regiment, and entitled to fight on its
|
||
|
own hook and in its own way, and go whither it would and come
|
||
|
when it pleased, in time of war, and be utterly swell and independent.
|
||
|
This would make that regiment the heart's desire of all the
|
||
|
nobility, and they would all be satisfied and happy. Then we
|
||
|
would make up the rest of the standing army out of commonplace
|
||
|
materials, and officer it with nobodies, as was proper--nobodies
|
||
|
selected on a basis of mere efficiency--and we would make this
|
||
|
regiment toe the line, allow it no aristocratic freedom from
|
||
|
restraint, and force it to do all the work and persistent hammering,
|
||
|
to the end that whenever the King's Own was tired and wanted to go
|
||
|
off for a change and rummage around amongst ogres and have a good
|
||
|
time, it could go without uneasiness, knowing that matters were in
|
||
|
safe hands behind it, and business going to be continued at the
|
||
|
old stand, same as usual. The king was charmed with the idea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I noticed that, it gave me a valuable notion. I thought
|
||
|
I saw my way out of an old and stubborn difficulty at last. You
|
||
|
see, the royalties of the Pendragon stock were a long-lived race
|
||
|
and very fruitful. Whenever a child was born to any of these
|
||
|
--and it was pretty often--there was wild joy in the nation's mouth,
|
||
|
and piteous sorrow in the nation's heart. The joy was questionable,
|
||
|
but the grief was honest. Because the event meant another call
|
||
|
for a Royal Grant. Long was the list of these royalties, and
|
||
|
they were a heavy and steadily increasing burden upon the treasury
|
||
|
and a menace to the crown. Yet Arthur could not believe this
|
||
|
latter fact, and he would not listen to any of my various projects
|
||
|
for substituting something in the place of the royal grants. If I
|
||
|
could have persuaded him to now and then provide a support for
|
||
|
one of these outlying scions from his own pocket, I could have
|
||
|
made a grand to-do over it, and it would have had a good effect
|
||
|
with the nation; but no, he wouldn't hear of such a thing. He had
|
||
|
something like a religious passion for royal grant; he seemed to
|
||
|
look upon it as a sort of sacred swag, and one could not irritate
|
||
|
him in any way so quickly and so surely as by an attack upon that
|
||
|
venerable institution. If I ventured to cautiously hint that there
|
||
|
was not another respectable family in England that would humble
|
||
|
itself to hold out the hat--however, that is as far as I ever got;
|
||
|
he always cut me short there, and peremptorily, too.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I believed I saw my chance at last. I would form this crack
|
||
|
regiment out of officers alone--not a single private. Half of it
|
||
|
should consist of nobles, who should fill all the places up to
|
||
|
Major-General, and serve gratis and pay their own expenses; and
|
||
|
they would be glad to do this when they should learn that the rest
|
||
|
of the regiment would consist exclusively of princes of the blood.
|
||
|
These princes of the blood should range in rank from Lieutenant-General
|
||
|
up to Field Marshal, and be gorgeously salaried and equipped and
|
||
|
fed by the state. Moreover--and this was the master stroke
|
||
|
--it should be decreed that these princely grandees should be always
|
||
|
addressed by a stunningly gaudy and awe-compelling title (which
|
||
|
I would presently invent), and they and they only in all England
|
||
|
should be so addressed. Finally, all princes of the blood should
|
||
|
have free choice; join that regiment, get that great title, and
|
||
|
renounce the royal grant, or stay out and receive a grant. Neatest
|
||
|
touch of all: unborn but imminent princes of the blood could be
|
||
|
_born_ into the regiment, and start fair, with good wages and a
|
||
|
permanent situation, upon due notice from the parents.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All the boys would join, I was sure of that; so, all existing
|
||
|
grants would be relinquished; that the newly born would always
|
||
|
join was equally certain. Within sixty days that quaint and
|
||
|
bizarre anomaly, the Royal Grant, would cease to be a living fact,
|
||
|
and take its place among the curiosities of the past.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXVI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE FIRST NEWSPAPER
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I told the king I was going out disguised as a petty freeman
|
||
|
to scour the country and familiarize myself with the humbler life
|
||
|
of the people, he was all afire with the novelty of the thing
|
||
|
in a minute, and was bound to take a chance in the adventure
|
||
|
himself--nothing should stop him--he would drop everything and
|
||
|
go along--it was the prettiest idea he had run across for many
|
||
|
a day. He wanted to glide out the back way and start at once;
|
||
|
but I showed him that that wouldn't answer. You see, he was billed
|
||
|
for the king's-evil--to touch for it, I mean--and it wouldn't be
|
||
|
right to disappoint the house and it wouldn't make a delay worth
|
||
|
considering, anyway, it was only a one-night stand. And I thought
|
||
|
he ought to tell the queen he was going away. He clouded up at
|
||
|
that and looked sad. I was sorry I had spoken, especially when
|
||
|
he said mournfully:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thou forgettest that Launcelot is here; and where Launcelot is,
|
||
|
she noteth not the going forth of the king, nor what day he returneth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, I changed the Subject. Yes, Guenever was beautiful,
|
||
|
it is true, but take her all around she was pretty slack. I never
|
||
|
meddled in these matters, they weren't my affair, but I did hate
|
||
|
to see the way things were going on, and I don't mind saying that
|
||
|
much. Many's the time she had asked me, "Sir Boss, hast seen
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot about?" but if ever she went fretting around for
|
||
|
the king I didn't happen to be around at the time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a very good lay-out for the king's-evil business--very
|
||
|
tidy and creditable. The king sat under a canopy of state; about
|
||
|
him were clustered a large body of the clergy in full canonicals.
|
||
|
Conspicuous, both for location and personal outfit, stood Marinel,
|
||
|
a hermit of the quack-doctor species, to introduce the sick. All
|
||
|
abroad over the spacious floor, and clear down to the doors,
|
||
|
in a thick jumble, lay or sat the scrofulous, under a strong light.
|
||
|
It was as good as a tableau; in fact, it had all the look of being
|
||
|
gotten up for that, though it wasn't. There were eight hundred
|
||
|
sick people present. The work was slow; it lacked the interest
|
||
|
of novelty for me, because I had seen the ceremonies before;
|
||
|
the thing soon became tedious, but the proprieties required me
|
||
|
to stick it out. The doctor was there for the reason that in all
|
||
|
such crowds there were many people who only imagined something
|
||
|
was the matter with them, and many who were consciously sound
|
||
|
but wanted the immortal honor of fleshly contact with a king, and
|
||
|
yet others who pretended to illness in order to get the piece of
|
||
|
coin that went with the touch. Up to this time this coin had been
|
||
|
a wee little gold piece worth about a third of a dollar. When you
|
||
|
consider how much that amount of money would buy, in that age
|
||
|
and country, and how usual it was to be scrofulous, when not dead,
|
||
|
you would understand that the annual king's-evil appropriation was
|
||
|
just the River and Harbor bill of that government for the grip it
|
||
|
took on the treasury and the chance it afforded for skinning the
|
||
|
surplus. So I had privately concluded to touch the treasury itself
|
||
|
for the king's-evil. I covered six-sevenths of the appropriation
|
||
|
into the treasury a week before starting from Camelot on my
|
||
|
adventures, and ordered that the other seventh be inflated into
|
||
|
five-cent nickels and delivered into the hands of the head clerk
|
||
|
of the King's Evil Department; a nickel to take the place of each
|
||
|
gold coin, you see, and do its work for it. It might strain the
|
||
|
nickel some, but I judged it could stand it. As a rule, I do not
|
||
|
approve of watering stock, but I considered it square enough
|
||
|
in this case, for it was just a gift, anyway. Of course, you can
|
||
|
water a gift as much as you want to; and I generally do. The old
|
||
|
gold and silver coins of the country were of ancient and unknown
|
||
|
origin, as a rule, but some of them were Roman; they were ill-shapen,
|
||
|
and seldom rounder than a moon that is a week past the full; they
|
||
|
were hammered, not minted, and they were so worn with use that
|
||
|
the devices upon them were as illegible as blisters, and looked
|
||
|
like them. I judged that a sharp, bright new nickel, with a
|
||
|
first-rate likeness of the king on one side of it and Guenever
|
||
|
on the other, and a blooming pious motto, would take the tuck out
|
||
|
of scrofula as handy as a nobler coin and please the scrofulous
|
||
|
fancy more; and I was right. This batch was the first it was
|
||
|
tried on, and it worked to a charm. The saving in expense was
|
||
|
a notable economy. You will see that by these figures: We touched
|
||
|
a trifle over 700 of the 800 patients; at former rates, this would
|
||
|
have cost the government about $240; at the new rate we pulled
|
||
|
through for about $35, thus saving upward of $200 at one swoop.
|
||
|
To appreciate the full magnitude of this stroke, consider these
|
||
|
other figures: the annual expenses of a national government amount
|
||
|
to the equivalent of a contribution of three days' average wages of
|
||
|
every individual of the population, counting every individual as
|
||
|
if he were a man. If you take a nation of 60,000,000, where average
|
||
|
wages are $2 per day, three days' wages taken from each individual
|
||
|
will provide $360,000,000 and pay the government's expenses. In my
|
||
|
day, in my own country, this money was collected from imposts,
|
||
|
and the citizen imagined that the foreign importer paid it, and it
|
||
|
made him comfortable to think so; whereas, in fact, it was paid
|
||
|
by the American people, and was so equally and exactly distributed
|
||
|
among them that the annual cost to the 100-millionaire and the
|
||
|
annual cost to the sucking child of the day-laborer was precisely
|
||
|
the same--each paid $6. Nothing could be equaler than that,
|
||
|
I reckon. Well, Scotland and Ireland were tributary to Arthur,
|
||
|
and the united populations of the British Islands amounted to
|
||
|
something less than 1,000,000. A mechanic's average wage was
|
||
|
3 cents a day, when he paid his own keep. By this rule the national
|
||
|
government's expenses were $90,000 a year, or about $250 a day.
|
||
|
Thus, by the substitution of nickels for gold on a king's-evil
|
||
|
day, I not only injured no one, dissatisfied no one, but pleased
|
||
|
all concerned and saved four-fifths of that day's national expense
|
||
|
into the bargain--a saving which would have been the equivalent
|
||
|
of $800,000 in my day in America. In making this substitution
|
||
|
I had drawn upon the wisdom of a very remote source--the wisdom
|
||
|
of my boyhood--for the true statesman does not despise any wisdom,
|
||
|
howsoever lowly may be its origin: in my boyhood I had always
|
||
|
saved my pennies and contributed buttons to the foreign missionary
|
||
|
cause. The buttons would answer the ignorant savage as well as
|
||
|
the coin, the coin would answer me better than the buttons; all
|
||
|
hands were happy and nobody hurt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Marinel took the patients as they came. He examined the candidate;
|
||
|
if he couldn't qualify he was warned off; if he could he was passed
|
||
|
along to the king. A priest pronounced the words, "They shall
|
||
|
lay their hands on the sick, and they shall recover." Then the king
|
||
|
stroked the ulcers, while the reading continued; finally, the
|
||
|
patient graduated and got his nickel--the king hanging it around
|
||
|
his neck himself--and was dismissed. Would you think that that
|
||
|
would cure? It certainly did. Any mummery will cure if the
|
||
|
patient's faith is strong in it. Up by Astolat there was a chapel
|
||
|
where the Virgin had once appeared to a girl who used to herd
|
||
|
geese around there--the girl said so herself--and they built the
|
||
|
chapel upon that spot and hung a picture in it representing the
|
||
|
occurrence--a picture which you would think it dangerous for a sick
|
||
|
person to approach; whereas, on the contrary, thousands of the lame
|
||
|
and the sick came and prayed before it every year and went away
|
||
|
whole and sound; and even the well could look upon it and live.
|
||
|
Of course, when I was told these things I did not believe them;
|
||
|
but when I went there and saw them I had to succumb. I saw the
|
||
|
cures effected myself; and they were real cures and not questionable.
|
||
|
I saw cripples whom I had seen around Camelot for years on crutches,
|
||
|
arrive and pray before that picture, and put down their crutches
|
||
|
and walk off without a limp. There were piles of crutches there
|
||
|
which had been left by such people as a testimony.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In other places people operated on a patient's mind, without saying
|
||
|
a word to him, and cured him. In others, experts assembled patients
|
||
|
in a room and prayed over them, and appealed to their faith, and
|
||
|
those patients went away cured. Wherever you find a king who can't
|
||
|
cure the king's-evil you can be sure that the most valuable
|
||
|
superstition that supports his throne--the subject's belief in
|
||
|
the divine appointment of his sovereign--has passed away. In my
|
||
|
youth the monarchs of England had ceased to touch for the evil,
|
||
|
but there was no occasion for this diffidence: they could have
|
||
|
cured it forty-nine times in fifty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, when the priest had been droning for three hours, and the
|
||
|
good king polishing the evidences, and the sick were still pressing
|
||
|
forward as plenty as ever, I got to feeling intolerably bored.
|
||
|
I was sitting by an open window not far from the canopy of state.
|
||
|
For the five hundredth time a patient stood forward to have his
|
||
|
repulsivenesses stroked; again those words were being droned out:
|
||
|
"they shall lay their hands on the sick"--when outside there rang
|
||
|
clear as a clarion a note that enchanted my soul and tumbled
|
||
|
thirteen worthless centuries about my ears: "Camelot _Weekly
|
||
|
Hosannah and Literary Volcano!_--latest irruption--only two cents
|
||
|
--all about the big miracle in the Valley of Holiness!" One greater
|
||
|
than kings had arrived--the newsboy. But I was the only person
|
||
|
in all that throng who knew the meaning of this mighty birth, and
|
||
|
what this imperial magician was come into the world to do.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I dropped a nickel out of the window and got my paper; the
|
||
|
Adam-newsboy of the world went around the corner to get my change;
|
||
|
is around the corner yet. It was delicious to see a newspaper
|
||
|
again, yet I was conscious of a secret shock when my eye fell upon
|
||
|
the first batch of display head-lines. I had lived in a clammy
|
||
|
atmosphere of reverence, respect, deference, so long that they
|
||
|
sent a quivery little cold wave through me:
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
HIGH TIMES IN THE VALLEY
|
||
|
|
||
|
OF HOLINESS!
|
||
|
|
||
|
----
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE WATER-WORKS CORKED!
|
||
|
|
||
|
----
|
||
|
|
||
|
BRER MERLIN WORKS HIS ARTS, BUT GETS
|
||
|
LEFT?
|
||
|
|
||
|
----
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the Boss scores on his first Innings!
|
||
|
|
||
|
----
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Miraculous Well Uncorked amid
|
||
|
awful outbursts of
|
||
|
|
||
|
INFERNAL FIRE AND SMOKE
|
||
|
ATHUNDER!
|
||
|
|
||
|
----
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE BUZZARD-ROOST ASTONISHED!
|
||
|
|
||
|
----
|
||
|
|
||
|
UNPARALLELED REJOIBINGS!
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
--and so on, and so on. Yes, it was too loud. Once I could have
|
||
|
enjoyed it and seen nothing out of the way about it, but now its
|
||
|
note was discordant. It was good Arkansas journalism, but this
|
||
|
was not Arkansas. Moreover, the next to the last line was calculated
|
||
|
to give offense to the hermits, and perhaps lose us their advertising.
|
||
|
Indeed, there was too lightsome a tone of flippancy all through
|
||
|
the paper. It was plain I had undergone a considerable change
|
||
|
without noticing it. I found myself unpleasantly affected by
|
||
|
pert little irreverencies which would have seemed but proper and
|
||
|
airy graces of speech at an earlier period of my life. There was an
|
||
|
abundance of the following breed of items, and they discomforted me:
|
||
|
|
||
|
LOCAL SMOKE AND CINDERS.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot met up with old King
|
||
|
Agrivance of Ireland unexpectedly last
|
||
|
weok over on the moor south of Sir
|
||
|
Balmoral le Merveilleuse's hog dasture.
|
||
|
The widow has been notified.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Expedition No. 3 will start adout the
|
||
|
first of mext month on a search f8r Sir
|
||
|
Sagramour le Desirous. It is in com-
|
||
|
and of the renowned Knight of the Red
|
||
|
Lawns, assissted by Sir Persant of Inde,
|
||
|
who is compete9t. intelligent, courte-
|
||
|
ous, and in every way a brick, and fur-
|
||
|
tHer assisted by Sir Palamides the Sara-
|
||
|
cen, who is no huckleberry hinself.
|
||
|
This is no pic-nic, these boys mean
|
||
|
busine&s.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The readers of the Hosannah will re-
|
||
|
gret to learn that the hadndsome and
|
||
|
popular Sir Charolais of Gaul, who dur-
|
||
|
ing his four weeks' stay at the Bull and
|
||
|
Halibut, this city, has won every heart
|
||
|
by his polished manners and elegant
|
||
|
cPnversation, will pUll out to-day for
|
||
|
home. Give us another call, Charley!
|
||
|
|
||
|
The bdsiness end of the funeral of
|
||
|
the late Sir Dalliance the duke's son of
|
||
|
Cornwall, killed in an encounter with
|
||
|
the Giant of the Knotted Bludgeon last
|
||
|
Tuesday on the borders of the Plain of
|
||
|
Enchantment was in the hands of the
|
||
|
ever affable and efficient Mumble,
|
||
|
prince of un3ertakers, then whom there
|
||
|
exists none by whom it were a more
|
||
|
satisfying pleasure to have the last sad
|
||
|
offices performed. Give him a trial.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cordial thanks of the Hosannah
|
||
|
office are due, from editor down to
|
||
|
devil, to the ever courteous and thought-
|
||
|
ful Lord High Stew d of the Palace's
|
||
|
Third Assistant V t for several sau-
|
||
|
ceTs of ice crEam a quality calculated
|
||
|
to make the ey of the recipients hu-
|
||
|
mid with grt ude; and it done it.
|
||
|
When this administration wants to
|
||
|
chalk up a desirable name for early
|
||
|
promotion, the Hosannah would like a
|
||
|
chance to sudgest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Demoiselle Irene Dewlap, of
|
||
|
South Astolat, is visiting her uncle, the
|
||
|
popular host of the Cattlemen's Board-
|
||
|
ing Ho&se, Liver Lane, this city.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Young Barker the bellows-mender is
|
||
|
hoMe again, and looks much improved
|
||
|
by his vacation round-up among the out-
|
||
|
lying smithies. See his ad.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course it was good enough journalism for a beginning; I knew
|
||
|
that quite well, and yet it was somehow disappointing. The
|
||
|
"Court Circular" pleased me better; indeed, its simple and dignified
|
||
|
respectfulness was a distinct refreshment to me after all those
|
||
|
disgraceful familiarities. But even it could have been improved.
|
||
|
Do what one may, there is no getting an air of variety into a court
|
||
|
circular, I acknowledge that. There is a profound monotonousness
|
||
|
about its facts that baffles and defeats one's sincerest efforts
|
||
|
to make them sparkle and enthuse. The best way to manage--in fact,
|
||
|
the only sensible way--is to disguise repetitiousness of fact under
|
||
|
variety of form: skin your fact each time and lay on a new cuticle
|
||
|
of words. It deceives the eye; you think it is a new fact; it
|
||
|
gives you the idea that the court is carrying on like everything;
|
||
|
this excites you, and you drain the whole column, with a good
|
||
|
appetite, and perhaps never notice that it's a barrel of soup made
|
||
|
out of a single bean. Clarence's way was good, it was simple,
|
||
|
it was dignified, it was direct and business-like; all I say is,
|
||
|
it was not the best way:
|
||
|
|
||
|
COURT CIRCULAR.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On Monday, the king rode in the park.
|
||
|
" Tuesday, " " "
|
||
|
" Wendesday " " "
|
||
|
" Thursday " " "
|
||
|
" Friday, " " "
|
||
|
" Saturday " " "
|
||
|
" Sunday, " " "
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, take the paper by and large, I was vastly pleased with it.
|
||
|
Little crudities of a mechanical sort were observable here and
|
||
|
there, but there were not enough of them to amount to anything,
|
||
|
and it was good enough Arkansas proof-reading, anyhow, and better
|
||
|
than was needed in Arthur's day and realm. As a rule, the grammar
|
||
|
was leaky and the construction more or less lame; but I did not
|
||
|
much mind these things. They are common defects of my own, and
|
||
|
one mustn't criticise other people on grounds where he can't stand
|
||
|
perpendicular himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was hungry enough for literature to want to take down the whole
|
||
|
paper at this one meal, but I got only a few bites, and then had
|
||
|
to postpone, because the monks around me besieged me so with eager
|
||
|
questions: What is this curious thing? What is it for? Is it a
|
||
|
handkerchief?--saddle blanket?--part of a shirt? What is it made of?
|
||
|
How thin it is, and how dainty and frail; and how it rattles.
|
||
|
Will it wear, do you think, and won't the rain injure it? Is it
|
||
|
writing that appears on it, or is it only ornamentation? They
|
||
|
suspected it was writing, because those among them who knew how
|
||
|
to read Latin and had a smattering of Greek, recognized some of
|
||
|
the letters, but they could make nothing out of the result as a
|
||
|
whole. I put my information in the simplest form I could:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a public journal; I will explain what that is, another time.
|
||
|
It is not cloth, it is made of paper; some time I will explain
|
||
|
what paper is. The lines on it are reading matter; and not written
|
||
|
by hand, but printed; by and by I will explain what printing is.
|
||
|
A thousand of these sheets have been made, all exactly like this,
|
||
|
in every minute detail--they can't be told apart." Then they all
|
||
|
broke out with exclamations of surprise and admiration:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A thousand! Verily a mighty work--a year's work for many men."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No--merely a day's work for a man and a boy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
They crossed themselves, and whiffed out a protective prayer or two.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah-h--a miracle, a wonder! Dark work of enchantment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I let it go at that. Then I read in a low voice, to as many as
|
||
|
could crowd their shaven heads within hearing distance, part of
|
||
|
the account of the miracle of the restoration of the well, and
|
||
|
was accompanied by astonished and reverent ejaculations all through:
|
||
|
"Ah-h-h!" "How true!" "Amazing, amazing!" "These be the very
|
||
|
haps as they happened, in marvelous exactness!" And might they
|
||
|
take this strange thing in their hands, and feel of it and examine
|
||
|
it?--they would be very careful. Yes. So they took it, handling
|
||
|
it as cautiously and devoutly as if it had been some holy thing
|
||
|
come from some supernatural region; and gently felt of its texture,
|
||
|
caressed its pleasant smooth surface with lingering touch, and
|
||
|
scanned the mysterious characters with fascinated eyes. These
|
||
|
grouped bent heads, these charmed faces, these speaking eyes
|
||
|
--how beautiful to me! For was not this my darling, and was not
|
||
|
all this mute wonder and interest and homage a most eloquent
|
||
|
tribute and unforced compliment to it? I knew, then, how a mother
|
||
|
feels when women, whether strangers or friends, take her new baby,
|
||
|
and close themselves about it with one eager impulse, and bend
|
||
|
their heads over it in a tranced adoration that makes all the rest
|
||
|
of the universe vanish out of their consciousness and be as if it
|
||
|
were not, for that time. I knew how she feels, and that there is
|
||
|
no other satisfied ambition, whether of king, conqueror, or poet,
|
||
|
that ever reaches half-way to that serene far summit or yields half
|
||
|
so divine a contentment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
During all the rest of the seance my paper traveled from group to
|
||
|
group all up and down and about that huge hall, and my happy eye
|
||
|
was upon it always, and I sat motionless, steeped in satisfaction,
|
||
|
drunk with enjoyment. Yes, this was heaven; I was tasting it once,
|
||
|
if I might never taste it more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXVII
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE YANKEE AND THE KING TRAVEL INCOGNITO
|
||
|
|
||
|
About bedtime I took the king to my private quarters to cut his
|
||
|
hair and help him get the hang of the lowly raiment he was to wear.
|
||
|
The high classes wore their hair banged across the forehead but
|
||
|
hanging to the shoulders the rest of the way around, whereas the
|
||
|
lowest ranks of commoners were banged fore and aft both; the slaves
|
||
|
were bangless, and allowed their hair free growth. So I inverted
|
||
|
a bowl over his head and cut away all the locks that hung below it.
|
||
|
I also trimmed his whiskers and mustache until they were only
|
||
|
about a half-inch long; and tried to do it inartistically, and
|
||
|
succeeded. It was a villainous disfigurement. When he got his
|
||
|
lubberly sandals on, and his long robe of coarse brown linen cloth,
|
||
|
which hung straight from his neck to his ankle-bones, he was no
|
||
|
longer the comeliest man in his kingdom, but one of the unhandsomest
|
||
|
and most commonplace and unattractive. We were dressed and barbered
|
||
|
alike, and could pass for small farmers, or farm bailiffs, or
|
||
|
shepherds, or carters; yes, or for village artisans, if we chose,
|
||
|
our costume being in effect universal among the poor, because of
|
||
|
its strength and cheapness. I don't mean that it was really cheap
|
||
|
to a very poor person, but I do mean that it was the cheapest
|
||
|
material there was for male attire--manufactured material, you
|
||
|
understand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We slipped away an hour before dawn, and by broad sun-up had made
|
||
|
eight or ten miles, and were in the midst of a sparsely settled
|
||
|
country. I had a pretty heavy knapsack; it was laden with
|
||
|
provisions--provisions for the king to taper down on, till he
|
||
|
could take to the coarse fare of the country without damage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I found a comfortable seat for the king by the roadside, and then
|
||
|
gave him a morsel or two to stay his stomach with. Then I said
|
||
|
I would find some water for him, and strolled away. Part of my
|
||
|
project was to get out of sight and sit down and rest a little
|
||
|
myself. It had always been my custom to stand when in his presence;
|
||
|
even at the council board, except upon those rare occasions when
|
||
|
the sitting was a very long one, extending over hours; then I had
|
||
|
a trifling little backless thing which was like a reversed culvert
|
||
|
and was as comfortable as the toothache. I didn't want to break
|
||
|
him in suddenly, but do it by degrees. We should have to sit
|
||
|
together now when in company, or people would notice; but it would
|
||
|
not be good politics for me to be playing equality with him when
|
||
|
there was no necessity for it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I found the water some three hundred yards away, and had been
|
||
|
resting about twenty minutes, when I heard voices. That is all
|
||
|
right, I thought--peasants going to work; nobody else likely to be
|
||
|
stirring this early. But the next moment these comers jingled into
|
||
|
sight around a turn of the road--smartly clad people of quality,
|
||
|
with luggage-mules and servants in their train! I was off like
|
||
|
a shot, through the bushes, by the shortest cut. For a while it
|
||
|
did seem that these people would pass the king before I could
|
||
|
get to him; but desperation gives you wings, you know, and I canted
|
||
|
my body forward, inflated my breast, and held my breath and flew.
|
||
|
I arrived. And in plenty good enough time, too.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pardon, my king, but it's no time for ceremony--jump! Jump to
|
||
|
your feet--some quality are coming!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is that a marvel? Let them come."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But my liege! You must not be seen sitting. Rise!--and stand in
|
||
|
humble posture while they pass. You are a peasant, you know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True--I had forgot it, so lost was I in planning of a huge war
|
||
|
with Gaul"--he was up by this time, but a farm could have got up
|
||
|
quicker, if there was any kind of a boom in real estate--"and
|
||
|
right-so a thought came randoming overthwart this majestic dream
|
||
|
the which--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A humbler attitude, my lord the king--and quick! Duck your head!
|
||
|
--more!--still more!--droop it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did his honest best, but lord, it was no great things. He looked
|
||
|
as humble as the leaning tower at Pisa. It is the most you could
|
||
|
say of it. Indeed, it was such a thundering poor success that
|
||
|
it raised wondering scowls all along the line, and a gorgeous
|
||
|
flunkey at the tail end of it raised his whip; but I jumped in
|
||
|
time and was under it when it fell; and under cover of the volley
|
||
|
of coarse laughter which followed, I spoke up sharply and warned
|
||
|
the king to take no notice. He mastered himself for the moment,
|
||
|
but it was a sore tax; he wanted to eat up the procession. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would end our adventures at the very start; and we, being
|
||
|
without weapons, could do nothing with that armed gang. If we
|
||
|
are going to succeed in our emprise, we must not only look the
|
||
|
peasant but act the peasant."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is wisdom; none can gainsay it. Let us go on, Sir Boss.
|
||
|
I will take note and learn, and do the best I may."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He kept his word. He did the best he could, but I've seen better.
|
||
|
If you have ever seen an active, heedless, enterprising child
|
||
|
going diligently out of one mischief and into another all day
|
||
|
long, and an anxious mother at its heels all the while, and just
|
||
|
saving it by a hair from drowning itself or breaking its neck with
|
||
|
each new experiment, you've seen the king and me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If I could have foreseen what the thing was going to be like,
|
||
|
I should have said, No, if anybody wants to make his living
|
||
|
exhibiting a king as a peasant, let him take the layout; I can
|
||
|
do better with a menagerie, and last longer. And yet, during
|
||
|
the first three days I never allowed him to enter a hut or other
|
||
|
dwelling. If he could pass muster anywhere during his early
|
||
|
novitiate it would be in small inns and on the road; so to these
|
||
|
places we confined ourselves. Yes, he certainly did the best he
|
||
|
could, but what of that? He didn't improve a bit that I could see.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was always frightening me, always breaking out with fresh
|
||
|
astonishers, in new and unexpected places. Toward evening on
|
||
|
the second day, what does he do but blandly fetch out a dirk
|
||
|
from inside his robe!
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Great guns, my liege, where did you get that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From a smuggler at the inn, yester eve."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What in the world possessed you to buy it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We have escaped divers dangers by wit--thy wit--but I have
|
||
|
bethought me that it were but prudence if I bore a weapon, too.
|
||
|
Thine might fail thee in some pinch."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But people of our condition are not allowed to carry arms. What
|
||
|
would a lord say--yes, or any other person of whatever condition
|
||
|
--if he caught an upstart peasant with a dagger on his person?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a lucky thing for us that nobody came along just then.
|
||
|
I persuaded him to throw the dirk away; and it was as easy as
|
||
|
persuading a child to give up some bright fresh new way of killing
|
||
|
itself. We walked along, silent and thinking. Finally the king said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When ye know that I meditate a thing inconvenient, or that hath
|
||
|
a peril in it, why do you not warn me to cease from that project?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a startling question, and a puzzler. I didn't quite know
|
||
|
how to take hold of it, or what to say, and so, of course, I ended
|
||
|
by saying the natural thing:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, sire, how can I know what your thoughts are?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king stopped dead in his tracks, and stared at me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believed thou wert greater than Merlin; and truly in magic
|
||
|
thou art. But prophecy is greater than magic. Merlin is a prophet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw I had made a blunder. I must get back my lost ground.
|
||
|
After a deep reflection and careful planning, I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sire, I have been misunderstood. I will explain. There are two
|
||
|
kinds of prophecy. One is the gift to foretell things that are but
|
||
|
a little way off, the other is the gift to foretell things that
|
||
|
are whole ages and centuries away. Which is the mightier gift,
|
||
|
do you think?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, the last, most surely!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True. Does Merlin possess it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Partly, yes. He foretold mysteries about my birth and future
|
||
|
kingship that were twenty years away."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Has he ever gone beyond that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He would not claim more, I think."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is probably his limit. All prophets have their limit. The limit
|
||
|
of some of the great prophets has been a hundred years."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These are few, I ween."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There have been two still greater ones, whose limit was four
|
||
|
hundred and six hundred years, and one whose limit compassed
|
||
|
even seven hundred and twenty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Gramercy, it is marvelous!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But what are these in comparison with me? They are nothing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What? Canst thou truly look beyond even so vast a stretch
|
||
|
of time as--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Seven hundred years? My liege, as clear as the vision of an eagle
|
||
|
does my prophetic eye penetrate and lay bare the future of this
|
||
|
world for nearly thirteen centuries and a half!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
My land, you should have seen the king's eyes spread slowly open,
|
||
|
and lift the earth's entire atmosphere as much as an inch! That
|
||
|
settled Brer Merlin. One never had any occasion to prove his
|
||
|
facts, with these people; all he had to do was to state them. It
|
||
|
never occurred to anybody to doubt the statement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, then," I continued, "I _could_ work both kinds of prophecy
|
||
|
--the long and the short--if I chose to take the trouble to keep
|
||
|
in practice; but I seldom exercise any but the long kind, because
|
||
|
the other is beneath my dignity. It is properer to Merlin's sort
|
||
|
--stump-tail prophets, as we call them in the profession. Of course,
|
||
|
I whet up now and then and flirt out a minor prophecy, but not
|
||
|
often--hardly ever, in fact. You will remember that there was
|
||
|
great talk, when you reached the Valley of Holiness, about my
|
||
|
having prophesied your coming and the very hour of your arrival,
|
||
|
two or three days beforehand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, yes, I mind it now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I could have done it as much as forty times easier, and
|
||
|
piled on a thousand times more detail into the bargain, if it had
|
||
|
been five hundred years away instead of two or three days."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How amazing that it should be so!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, a genuine expert can always foretell a thing that is five
|
||
|
hundred years away easier than he can a thing that's only five
|
||
|
hundred seconds off."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And yet in reason it should clearly be the other way; it should
|
||
|
be five hundred times as easy to foretell the last as the first,
|
||
|
for, indeed, it is so close by that one uninspired might almost
|
||
|
see it. In truth, the law of prophecy doth contradict the likelihoods,
|
||
|
most strangely making the difficult easy, and the easy difficult."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a wise head. A peasant's cap was no safe disguise for it;
|
||
|
you could know it for a king's under a diving-bell, if you could
|
||
|
hear it work its intellect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had a new trade now, and plenty of business in it. The king
|
||
|
was as hungry to find out everything that was going to happen
|
||
|
during the next thirteen centuries as if he were expecting to live
|
||
|
in them. From that time out, I prophesied myself bald-headed
|
||
|
trying to supply the demand. I have done some indiscreet things in
|
||
|
my day, but this thing of playing myself for a prophet was the
|
||
|
worst. Still, it had its ameliorations. A prophet doesn't have
|
||
|
to have any brains. They are good to have, of course, for the
|
||
|
ordinary exigencies of life, but they are no use in professional
|
||
|
work. It is the restfulest vocation there is. When the spirit of
|
||
|
prophecy comes upon you, you merely cake your intellect and lay it
|
||
|
off in a cool place for a rest, and unship your jaw and leave it
|
||
|
alone; it will work itself: the result is prophecy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Every day a knight-errant or so came along, and the sight of them
|
||
|
fired the king's martial spirit every time. He would have forgotten
|
||
|
himself, sure, and said something to them in a style a suspicious
|
||
|
shade or so above his ostensible degree, and so I always got him
|
||
|
well out of the road in time. Then he would stand and look with
|
||
|
all his eyes; and a proud light would flash from them, and his
|
||
|
nostrils would inflate like a war-horse's, and I knew he was
|
||
|
longing for a brush with them. But about noon of the third day
|
||
|
I had stopped in the road to take a precaution which had been
|
||
|
suggested by the whip-stroke that had fallen to my share two days
|
||
|
before; a precaution which I had afterward decided to leave untaken,
|
||
|
I was so loath to institute it; but now I had just had a fresh
|
||
|
reminder: while striding heedlessly along, with jaw spread and
|
||
|
intellect at rest, for I was prophesying, I stubbed my toe and
|
||
|
fell sprawling. I was so pale I couldn't think for a moment;
|
||
|
then I got softly and carefully up and unstrapped my knapsack.
|
||
|
I had that dynamite bomb in it, done up in wool in a box. It was
|
||
|
a good thing to have along; the time would come when I could do
|
||
|
a valuable miracle with it, maybe, but it was a nervous thing
|
||
|
to have about me, and I didn't like to ask the king to carry it.
|
||
|
Yet I must either throw it away or think up some safe way to get
|
||
|
along with its society. I got it out and slipped it into my scrip,
|
||
|
and just then here came a couple of knights. The king stood,
|
||
|
stately as a statue, gazing toward them--had forgotten himself again,
|
||
|
of course--and before I could get a word of warning out, it was
|
||
|
time for him to skip, and well that he did it, too. He supposed
|
||
|
they would turn aside. Turn aside to avoid trampling peasant dirt
|
||
|
under foot? When had he ever turned aside himself--or ever had
|
||
|
the chance to do it, if a peasant saw him or any other noble knight
|
||
|
in time to judiciously save him the trouble? The knights paid
|
||
|
no attention to the king at all; it was his place to look out
|
||
|
himself, and if he hadn't skipped he would have been placidly
|
||
|
ridden down, and laughed at besides.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king was in a flaming fury, and launched out his challenge
|
||
|
and epithets with a most royal vigor. The knights were some little
|
||
|
distance by now. They halted, greatly surprised, and turned in
|
||
|
their saddles and looked back, as if wondering if it might be worth
|
||
|
while to bother with such scum as we. Then they wheeled and
|
||
|
started for us. Not a moment must be lost. I started for _them_.
|
||
|
I passed them at a rattling gait, and as I went by I flung out a
|
||
|
hair-lifting soul-scorching thirteen-jointed insult which made
|
||
|
the king's effort poor and cheap by comparison. I got it out of
|
||
|
the nineteenth century where they know how. They had such headway
|
||
|
that they were nearly to the king before they could check up;
|
||
|
then, frantic with rage, they stood up their horses on their hind
|
||
|
hoofs and whirled them around, and the next moment here they came,
|
||
|
breast to breast. I was seventy yards off, then, and scrambling up
|
||
|
a great bowlder at the roadside. When they were within thirty
|
||
|
yards of me they let their long lances droop to a level, depressed
|
||
|
their mailed heads, and so, with their horse-hair plumes streaming
|
||
|
straight out behind, most gallant to see, this lightning express
|
||
|
came tearing for me! When they were within fifteen yards, I sent
|
||
|
that bomb with a sure aim, and it struck the ground just under
|
||
|
the horses' noses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, it was a neat thing, very neat and pretty to see. It resembled
|
||
|
a steamboat explosion on the Mississippi; and during the next
|
||
|
fifteen minutes we stood under a steady drizzle of microscopic
|
||
|
fragments of knights and hardware and horse-flesh. I say we,
|
||
|
for the king joined the audience, of course, as soon as he had got
|
||
|
his breath again. There was a hole there which would afford steady
|
||
|
work for all the people in that region for some years to come
|
||
|
--in trying to explain it, I mean; as for filling it up, that service
|
||
|
would be comparatively prompt, and would fall to the lot of a
|
||
|
select few--peasants of that seignory; and they wouldn't get
|
||
|
anything for it, either.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I explained it to the king myself. I said it was done with a
|
||
|
dynamite bomb. This information did him no damage, because it
|
||
|
left him as intelligent as he was before. However, it was a noble
|
||
|
miracle, in his eyes, and was another settler for Merlin. I thought
|
||
|
it well enough to explain that this was a miracle of so rare a sort
|
||
|
that it couldn't be done except when the atmospheric conditions
|
||
|
were just right. Otherwise he would be encoring it every time we
|
||
|
had a good subject, and that would be inconvenient, because I
|
||
|
hadn't any more bombs along.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXVIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
DRILLING THE KING
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the morning of the fourth day, when it was just sunrise, and we
|
||
|
had been tramping an hour in the chill dawn, I came to a resolution:
|
||
|
the king _must_ be drilled; things could not go on so, he must be
|
||
|
taken in hand and deliberately and conscientiously drilled, or we
|
||
|
couldn't ever venture to enter a dwelling; the very cats would know
|
||
|
this masquerader for a humbug and no peasant. So I called a halt
|
||
|
and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sire, as between clothes and countenance, you are all right, there
|
||
|
is no discrepancy; but as between your clothes and your bearing,
|
||
|
you are all wrong, there is a most noticeable discrepancy. Your
|
||
|
soldierly stride, your lordly port--these will not do. You stand
|
||
|
too straight, your looks are too high, too confident. The cares
|
||
|
of a kingdom do not stoop the shoulders, they do not droop the chin,
|
||
|
they do not depress the high level of the eye-glance, they do not
|
||
|
put doubt and fear in the heart and hang out the signs of them
|
||
|
in slouching body and unsure step. It is the sordid cares of
|
||
|
the lowly born that do these things. You must learn the trick;
|
||
|
you must imitate the trademarks of poverty, misery, oppression,
|
||
|
insult, and the other several and common inhumanities that sap
|
||
|
the manliness out of a man and make him a loyal and proper and
|
||
|
approved subject and a satisfaction to his masters, or the very
|
||
|
infants will know you for better than your disguise, and we shall go
|
||
|
to pieces at the first hut we stop at. Pray try to walk like this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king took careful note, and then tried an imitation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pretty fair--pretty fair. Chin a little lower, please--there, very
|
||
|
good. Eyes too high; pray don't look at the horizon, look at the
|
||
|
ground, ten steps in front of you. Ah--that is better, that is
|
||
|
very good. Wait, please; you betray too much vigor, too much
|
||
|
decision; you want more of a shamble. Look at me, please--this is
|
||
|
what I mean.... Now you are getting it; that is the idea--at least,
|
||
|
it sort of approaches it.... Yes, that is pretty fair. _But!_
|
||
|
There is a great big something wanting, I don't quite know what
|
||
|
it is. Please walk thirty yards, so that I can get a perspective
|
||
|
on the thing.... Now, then--your head's right, speed's right,
|
||
|
shoulders right, eyes right, chin right, gait, carriage, general
|
||
|
style right--everything's right! And yet the fact remains, the
|
||
|
aggregate's wrong. The account don't balance. Do it again,
|
||
|
please.... _Now_ I think I begin to see what it is. Yes, I've
|
||
|
struck it. You see, the genuine spiritlessness is wanting; that's
|
||
|
what's the trouble. It's all _amateur_--mechanical details all
|
||
|
right, almost to a hair; everything about the delusion perfect,
|
||
|
except that it don't delude."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, then, must one do, to prevail?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let me think... I can't seem to quite get at it. In fact, there
|
||
|
isn't anything that can right the matter but practice. This is
|
||
|
a good place for it: roots and stony ground to break up your
|
||
|
stately gait, a region not liable to interruption, only one field
|
||
|
and one hut in sight, and they so far away that nobody could
|
||
|
see us from there. It will be well to move a little off the road
|
||
|
and put in the whole day drilling you, sire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After the drill had gone on a little while, I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, sire, imagine that we are at the door of the hut yonder,
|
||
|
and the family are before us. Proceed, please--accost the head
|
||
|
of the house."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king unconsciously straightened up like a monument, and said,
|
||
|
with frozen austerity:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Varlet, bring a seat; and serve to me what cheer ye have."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, your grace, that is not well done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In what lacketh it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These people do not call _each other_ varlets."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nay, is that true?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; only those above them call them so."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then must I try again. I will call him villein."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No-no; for he may be a freeman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah--so. Then peradventure I should call him goodman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That would answer, your grace, but it would be still better if
|
||
|
you said friend, or brother."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Brother!--to dirt like that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, but _we_ are pretending to be dirt like that, too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is even true. I will say it. Brother, bring a seat, and
|
||
|
thereto what cheer ye have, withal. Now 'tis right."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not quite, not wholly right. You have asked for one, not _us_
|
||
|
--for one, not both; food for one, a seat for one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king looked puzzled--he wasn't a very heavy weight, intellectually.
|
||
|
His head was an hour-glass; it could stow an idea, but it had to do
|
||
|
it a grain at a time, not the whole idea at once.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would _you_ have a seat also--and sit?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I did not sit, the man would perceive that we were only pretending
|
||
|
to be equals--and playing the deception pretty poorly, too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is well and truly said! How wonderful is truth, come it in
|
||
|
whatsoever unexpected form it may! Yes, he must bring out seats
|
||
|
and food for both, and in serving us present not ewer and napkin
|
||
|
with more show of respect to the one than to the other."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And there is even yet a detail that needs correcting. He must
|
||
|
bring nothing outside; we will go in--in among the dirt, and
|
||
|
possibly other repulsive things,--and take the food with the
|
||
|
household, and after the fashion of the house, and all on equal
|
||
|
terms, except the man be of the serf class; and finally, there
|
||
|
will be no ewer and no napkin, whether he be serf or free. Please
|
||
|
walk again, my liege. There--it is better--it is the best yet;
|
||
|
but not perfect. The shoulders have known no ignobler burden
|
||
|
than iron mail, and they will not stoop."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Give me, then, the bag. I will learn the spirit that goeth
|
||
|
with burdens that have not honor. It is the spirit that stoopeth
|
||
|
the shoulders, I ween, and not the weight; for armor is heavy,
|
||
|
yet it is a proud burden, and a man standeth straight in it....
|
||
|
Nay, but me no buts, offer me no objections. I will have the thing.
|
||
|
Strap it upon my back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was complete now with that knapsack on, and looked as little
|
||
|
like a king as any man I had ever seen. But it was an obstinate
|
||
|
pair of shoulders; they could not seem to learn the trick of
|
||
|
stooping with any sort of deceptive naturalness. The drill went on,
|
||
|
I prompting and correcting:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, make believe you are in debt, and eaten up by relentless
|
||
|
creditors; you are out of work--which is horse-shoeing, let us
|
||
|
say--and can get none; and your wife is sick, your children are
|
||
|
crying because they are hungry--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so on, and so on. I drilled him as representing in turn all
|
||
|
sorts of people out of luck and suffering dire privations and
|
||
|
misfortunes. But lord, it was only just words, words--they meant
|
||
|
nothing in the world to him, I might just as well have whistled.
|
||
|
Words realize nothing, vivify nothing to you, unless you have
|
||
|
suffered in your own person the thing which the words try to
|
||
|
describe. There are wise people who talk ever so knowingly and
|
||
|
complacently about "the working classes," and satisfy themselves
|
||
|
that a day's hard intellectual work is very much harder than
|
||
|
a day's hard manual toil, and is righteously entitled to much
|
||
|
bigger pay. Why, they really think that, you know, because they
|
||
|
know all about the one, but haven't tried the other. But I know
|
||
|
all about both; and so far as I am concerned, there isn't money
|
||
|
enough in the universe to hire me to swing a pickaxe thirty days,
|
||
|
but I will do the hardest kind of intellectual work for just as
|
||
|
near nothing as you can cipher it down--and I will be satisfied, too.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Intellectual "work" is misnamed; it is a pleasure, a dissipation,
|
||
|
and is its own highest reward. The poorest paid architect,
|
||
|
engineer, general, author, sculptor, painter, lecturer, advocate,
|
||
|
legislator, actor, preacher, singer is constructively in heaven
|
||
|
when he is at work; and as for the musician with the fiddle-bow
|
||
|
in his hand who sits in the midst of a great orchestra with the
|
||
|
ebbing and flowing tides of divine sound washing over him--why,
|
||
|
certainly, he is at work, if you wish to call it that, but lord,
|
||
|
it's a sarcasm just the same. The law of work does seem utterly
|
||
|
unfair--but there it is, and nothing can change it: the higher
|
||
|
the pay in enjoyment the worker gets out of it, the higher shall
|
||
|
be his pay in cash, also. And it's also the very law of those
|
||
|
transparent swindles, transmissible nobility and kingship.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXIX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE SMALLPOX HUT
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we arrived at that hut at mid-afternoon, we saw no signs
|
||
|
of life about it. The field near by had been denuded of its crop
|
||
|
some time before, and had a skinned look, so exhaustively had
|
||
|
it been harvested and gleaned. Fences, sheds, everything had a
|
||
|
ruined look, and were eloquent of poverty. No animal was around
|
||
|
anywhere, no living thing in sight. The stillness was awful, it
|
||
|
was like the stillness of death. The cabin was a one-story one,
|
||
|
whose thatch was black with age, and ragged from lack of repair.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The door stood a trifle ajar. We approached it stealthily--on tiptoe
|
||
|
and at half-breath--for that is the way one's feeling makes him do,
|
||
|
at such a time. The king knocked. We waited. No answer. Knocked
|
||
|
again. No answer. I pushed the door softly open and looked in.
|
||
|
I made out some dim forms, and a woman started up from the ground
|
||
|
and stared at me, as one does who is wakened from sleep. Presently
|
||
|
she found her voice:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have mercy!" she pleaded. "All is taken, nothing is left."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have not come to take anything, poor woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are not a priest?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nor come not from the lord of the manor?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, I am a stranger."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, then, for the fear of God, who visits with misery and death
|
||
|
such as be harmless, tarry not here, but fly! This place is under
|
||
|
his curse--and his Church's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let me come in and help you--you are sick and in trouble."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was better used to the dim light now. I could see her hollow
|
||
|
eyes fixed upon me. I could see how emaciated she was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I tell you the place is under the Church's ban. Save yourself
|
||
|
--and go, before some straggler see thee here, and report it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Give yourself no trouble about me; I don't care anything for the
|
||
|
Church's curse. Let me help you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now all good spirits--if there be any such--bless thee for that
|
||
|
word. Would God I had a sup of water!--but hold, hold, forget
|
||
|
I said it, and fly; for there is that here that even he that
|
||
|
feareth not the Church must fear: this disease whereof we die.
|
||
|
Leave us, thou brave, good stranger, and take with thee such
|
||
|
whole and sincere blessing as them that be accursed can give."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But before this I had picked up a wooden bowl and was rushing
|
||
|
past the king on my way to the brook. It was ten yards away.
|
||
|
When I got back and entered, the king was within, and was opening
|
||
|
the shutter that closed the window-hole, to let in air and light.
|
||
|
The place was full of a foul stench. I put the bowl to the woman's
|
||
|
lips, and as she gripped it with her eager talons the shutter came
|
||
|
open and a strong light flooded her face. Smallpox!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sprang to the king, and said in his ear:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Out of the door on the instant, sire! the woman is dying of that
|
||
|
disease that wasted the skirts of Camelot two years ago."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did not budge.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of a truth I shall remain--and likewise help."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I whispered again:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"King, it must not be. You must go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye mean well, and ye speak not unwisely. But it were shame that
|
||
|
a king should know fear, and shame that belted knight should
|
||
|
withhold his hand where be such as need succor. Peace, I will
|
||
|
not go. It is you who must go. The Church's ban is not upon me,
|
||
|
but it forbiddeth you to be here, and she will deal with you with
|
||
|
a heavy hand an word come to her of your trespass."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a desperate place for him to be in, and might cost him his
|
||
|
life, but it was no use to argue with him. If he considered his
|
||
|
knightly honor at stake here, that was the end of argument; he
|
||
|
would stay, and nothing could prevent it; I was aware of that.
|
||
|
And so I dropped the subject. The woman spoke:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fair sir, of your kindness will ye climb the ladder there,
|
||
|
and bring me news of what ye find? Be not afraid to report,
|
||
|
for times can come when even a mother's heart is past breaking
|
||
|
--being already broke."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Abide," said the king, "and give the woman to eat. I will go."
|
||
|
And he put down the knapsack.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned to start, but the king had already started. He halted,
|
||
|
and looked down upon a man who lay in a dim light, and had not
|
||
|
noticed us thus far, or spoken.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it your husband?" the king asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is he asleep?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"God be thanked for that one charity, yes--these three hours.
|
||
|
Where shall I pay to the full, my gratitude! for my heart is
|
||
|
bursting with it for that sleep he sleepeth now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We will be careful. We will not wake him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, no, that ye will not, for he is dead."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dead?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, what triumph it is to know it! None can harm him, none
|
||
|
insult him more. He is in heaven now, and happy; or if not there,
|
||
|
he bides in hell and is content; for in that place he will find
|
||
|
neither abbot nor yet bishop. We were boy and girl together; we
|
||
|
were man and wife these five and twenty years, and never separated
|
||
|
till this day. Think how long that is to love and suffer together.
|
||
|
This morning was he out of his mind, and in his fancy we were
|
||
|
boy and girl again and wandering in the happy fields; and so in
|
||
|
that innocent glad converse wandered he far and farther, still
|
||
|
lightly gossiping, and entered into those other fields we know
|
||
|
not of, and was shut away from mortal sight. And so there was
|
||
|
no parting, for in his fancy I went with him; he knew not but
|
||
|
I went with him, my hand in his--my young soft hand, not this
|
||
|
withered claw. Ah, yes, to go, and know it not; to separate and
|
||
|
know it not; how could one go peace--fuller than that? It was
|
||
|
his reward for a cruel life patiently borne."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a slight noise from the direction of the dim corner where
|
||
|
the ladder was. It was the king descending. I could see that he
|
||
|
was bearing something in one arm, and assisting himself with the
|
||
|
other. He came forward into the light; upon his breast lay a
|
||
|
slender girl of fifteen. She was but half conscious; she was dying
|
||
|
of smallpox. Here was heroism at its last and loftiest possibility,
|
||
|
its utmost summit; this was challenging death in the open field
|
||
|
unarmed, with all the odds against the challenger, no reward set
|
||
|
upon the contest, and no admiring world in silks and cloth of gold
|
||
|
to gaze and applaud; and yet the king's bearing was as serenely
|
||
|
brave as it had always been in those cheaper contests where knight
|
||
|
meets knight in equal fight and clothed in protecting steel. He
|
||
|
was great now; sublimely great. The rude statues of his ancestors
|
||
|
in his palace should have an addition--I would see to that; and it
|
||
|
would not be a mailed king killing a giant or a dragon, like the
|
||
|
rest, it would be a king in commoner's garb bearing death in his
|
||
|
arms that a peasant mother might look her last upon her child and
|
||
|
be comforted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He laid the girl down by her mother, who poured out endearments
|
||
|
and caresses from an overflowing heart, and one could detect a
|
||
|
flickering faint light of response in the child's eyes, but that
|
||
|
was all. The mother hung over her, kissing her, petting her, and
|
||
|
imploring her to speak, but the lips only moved and no sound came.
|
||
|
I snatched my liquor flask from my knapsack, but the woman forbade
|
||
|
me, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No--she does not suffer; it is better so. It might bring her back
|
||
|
to life. None that be so good and kind as ye are would do her
|
||
|
that cruel hurt. For look you--what is left to live for? Her
|
||
|
brothers are gone, her father is gone, her mother goeth, the
|
||
|
Church's curse is upon her, and none may shelter or befriend her
|
||
|
even though she lay perishing in the road. She is desolate. I have
|
||
|
not asked you, good heart, if her sister be still on live, here
|
||
|
overhead; I had no need; ye had gone back, else, and not left
|
||
|
the poor thing forsaken--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She lieth at peace," interrupted the king, in a subdued voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would not change it. How rich is this day in happiness! Ah,
|
||
|
my Annis, thou shalt join thy sister soon--thou'rt on thy way,
|
||
|
and these be merciful friends that will not hinder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so she fell to murmuring and cooing over the girl again, and
|
||
|
softly stroking her face and hair, and kissing her and calling her
|
||
|
by endearing names; but there was scarcely sign of response now
|
||
|
in the glazing eyes. I saw tears well from the king's eyes, and
|
||
|
trickle down his face. The woman noticed them, too, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, I know that sign: thou'st a wife at home, poor soul, and
|
||
|
you and she have gone hungry to bed, many's the time, that the
|
||
|
little ones might have your crust; you know what poverty is, and
|
||
|
the daily insults of your betters, and the heavy hand of the Church
|
||
|
and the king."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king winced under this accidental home-shot, but kept still;
|
||
|
he was learning his part; and he was playing it well, too, for
|
||
|
a pretty dull beginner. I struck up a diversion. I offered the
|
||
|
woman food and liquor, but she refused both. She would allow
|
||
|
nothing to come between her and the release of death. Then I slipped
|
||
|
away and brought the dead child from aloft, and laid it by her.
|
||
|
This broke her down again, and there was another scene that was
|
||
|
full of heartbreak. By and by I made another diversion, and beguiled
|
||
|
her to sketch her story.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye know it well yourselves, having suffered it--for truly none
|
||
|
of our condition in Britain escape it. It is the old, weary tale.
|
||
|
We fought and struggled and succeeded; meaning by success, that
|
||
|
we lived and did not die; more than that is not to be claimed. No
|
||
|
troubles came that we could not outlive, till this year brought
|
||
|
them; then came they all at once, as one might say, and overwhelmed
|
||
|
us. Years ago the lord of the manor planted certain fruit trees on
|
||
|
our farm; in the best part of it, too--a grievous wrong and shame--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it was his right," interrupted the king.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None denieth that, indeed; an the law mean anything, what is
|
||
|
the lord's is his, and what is mine is his also. Our farm was
|
||
|
ours by lease, therefore 'twas likewise his, to do with it as he
|
||
|
would. Some little time ago, three of those trees were found hewn
|
||
|
down. Our three grown sons ran frightened to report the crime.
|
||
|
Well, in his lordship's dungeon there they lie, who saith there
|
||
|
shall they lie and rot till they confess. They have naught to
|
||
|
confess, being innocent, wherefore there will they remain until
|
||
|
they die. Ye know that right well, I ween. Think how this left us;
|
||
|
a man, a woman and two children, to gather a crop that was planted
|
||
|
by so much greater force, yes, and protect it night and day from
|
||
|
pigeons and prowling animals that be sacred and must not be hurt
|
||
|
by any of our sort. When my lord's crop was nearly ready for
|
||
|
the harvest, so also was ours; when his bell rang to call us to
|
||
|
his fields to harvest his crop for nothing, he would not allow that
|
||
|
I and my two girls should count for our three captive sons, but
|
||
|
for only two of them; so, for the lacking one were we daily fined.
|
||
|
All this time our own crop was perishing through neglect; and so
|
||
|
both the priest and his lordship fined us because their shares
|
||
|
of it were suffering through damage. In the end the fines ate up
|
||
|
our crop--and they took it all; they took it all and made us harvest
|
||
|
it for them, without pay or food, and we starving. Then the worst
|
||
|
came when I, being out of my mind with hunger and loss of my boys,
|
||
|
and grief to see my husband and my little maids in rags and misery
|
||
|
and despair, uttered a deep blasphemy--oh! a thousand of them!
|
||
|
--against the Church and the Church's ways. It was ten days ago.
|
||
|
I had fallen sick with this disease, and it was to the priest
|
||
|
I said the words, for he was come to chide me for lack of due
|
||
|
humility under the chastening hand of God. He carried my trespass
|
||
|
to his betters; I was stubborn; wherefore, presently upon my head
|
||
|
and upon all heads that were dear to me, fell the curse of Rome.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Since that day we are avoided, shunned with horror. None has
|
||
|
come near this hut to know whether we live or not. The rest of us
|
||
|
were taken down. Then I roused me and got up, as wife and mother
|
||
|
will. It was little they could have eaten in any case; it was
|
||
|
less than little they had to eat. But there was water, and I gave
|
||
|
them that. How they craved it! and how they blessed it! But the
|
||
|
end came yesterday; my strength broke down. Yesterday was the
|
||
|
last time I ever saw my husband and this youngest child alive.
|
||
|
I have lain here all these hours--these ages, ye may say--listening,
|
||
|
listening for any sound up there that--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She gave a sharp quick glance at her eldest daughter, then cried
|
||
|
out, "Oh, my darling!" and feebly gathered the stiffening form
|
||
|
to her sheltering arms. She had recognized the death-rattle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE TRAGEDY OF THE MANOR-HOUSE
|
||
|
|
||
|
At midnight all was over, and we sat in the presence of four
|
||
|
corpses. We covered them with such rags as we could find, and
|
||
|
started away, fastening the door behind us. Their home must be
|
||
|
these people's grave, for they could not have Christian burial,
|
||
|
or be admitted to consecrated ground. They were as dogs, wild
|
||
|
beasts, lepers, and no soul that valued its hope of eternal life
|
||
|
would throw it away by meddling in any sort with these rebuked and
|
||
|
smitten outcasts.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had not moved four steps when I caught a sound as of footsteps
|
||
|
upon gravel. My heart flew to my throat. We must not be seen
|
||
|
coming from that house. I plucked at the king's robe and we drew
|
||
|
back and took shelter behind the corner of the cabin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now we are safe," I said, "but it was a close call--so to speak.
|
||
|
If the night had been lighter he might have seen us, no doubt,
|
||
|
he seemed to be so near."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mayhap it is but a beast and not a man at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True. But man or beast, it will be wise to stay here a minute
|
||
|
and let it get by and out of the way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hark! It cometh hither."
|
||
|
|
||
|
True again. The step was coming toward us--straight toward the hut.
|
||
|
It must be a beast, then, and we might as well have saved our
|
||
|
trepidation. I was going to step out, but the king laid his hand
|
||
|
upon my arm. There was a moment of silence, then we heard a soft
|
||
|
knock on the cabin door. It made me shiver. Presently the knock
|
||
|
was repeated, and then we heard these words in a guarded voice:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mother! Father! Open--we have got free, and we bring news to
|
||
|
pale your cheeks but glad your hearts; and we may not tarry, but
|
||
|
must fly! And--but they answer not. Mother! father!--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I drew the king toward the other end of the hut and whispered:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come--now we can get to the road."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king hesitated, was going to demur; but just then we heard
|
||
|
the door give way, and knew that those desolate men were in the
|
||
|
presence of their dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, my liege! in a moment they will strike a light, and then
|
||
|
will follow that which it would break your heart to hear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did not hesitate this time. The moment we were in the road
|
||
|
I ran; and after a moment he threw dignity aside and followed.
|
||
|
I did not want to think of what was happening in the hut--I couldn't
|
||
|
bear it; I wanted to drive it out of my mind; so I struck into the
|
||
|
first subject that lay under that one in my mind:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have had the disease those people died of, and so have nothing
|
||
|
to fear; but if you have not had it also--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He broke in upon me to say he was in trouble, and it was his
|
||
|
conscience that was troubling him:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These young men have got free, they say--but _how_? It is not
|
||
|
likely that their lord hath set them free."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, no, I make no doubt they escaped."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is my trouble; I have a fear that this is so, and your
|
||
|
suspicion doth confirm it, you having the same fear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should not call it by that name though. I do suspect that they
|
||
|
escaped, but if they did, I am not sorry, certainly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not sorry, I _think_--but--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is it? What is there for one to be troubled about?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_If_ they did escape, then are we bound in duty to lay hands upon
|
||
|
them and deliver them again to their lord; for it is not seemly
|
||
|
that one of his quality should suffer a so insolent and high-handed
|
||
|
outrage from persons of their base degree."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There it was again. He could see only one side of it. He was
|
||
|
born so, educated so, his veins were full of ancestral blood that
|
||
|
was rotten with this sort of unconscious brutality, brought down
|
||
|
by inheritance from a long procession of hearts that had each done
|
||
|
its share toward poisoning the stream. To imprison these men
|
||
|
without proof, and starve their kindred, was no harm, for they were
|
||
|
merely peasants and subject to the will and pleasure of their lord,
|
||
|
no matter what fearful form it might take; but for these men to
|
||
|
break out of unjust captivity was insult and outrage, and a thing
|
||
|
not to be countenanced by any conscientious person who knew his
|
||
|
duty to his sacred caste.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I worked more than half an hour before I got him to change the
|
||
|
subject--and even then an outside matter did it for me. This was
|
||
|
a something which caught our eyes as we struck the summit of a
|
||
|
small hill--a red glow, a good way off.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's a fire," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fires interested me considerably, because I was getting a good
|
||
|
deal of an insurance business started, and was also training some
|
||
|
horses and building some steam fire-engines, with an eye to a paid
|
||
|
fire department by and by. The priests opposed both my fire and
|
||
|
life insurance, on the ground that it was an insolent attempt to
|
||
|
hinder the decrees of God; and if you pointed out that they did not
|
||
|
hinder the decrees in the least, but only modified the hard
|
||
|
consequences of them if you took out policies and had luck, they
|
||
|
retorted that that was gambling against the decrees of God, and was
|
||
|
just as bad. So they managed to damage those industries more
|
||
|
or less, but I got even on my Accident business. As a rule, a knight
|
||
|
is a lummox, and some times even a labrick, and hence open to pretty
|
||
|
poor arguments when they come glibly from a superstition-monger,
|
||
|
but even _he_ could see the practical side of a thing once in a while;
|
||
|
and so of late you couldn't clean up a tournament and pile the
|
||
|
result without finding one of my accident-tickets in every helmet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We stood there awhile, in the thick darkness and stillness, looking
|
||
|
toward the red blur in the distance, and trying to make out the
|
||
|
meaning of a far-away murmur that rose and fell fitfully on the
|
||
|
night. Sometimes it swelled up and for a moment seemed less
|
||
|
remote; but when we were hopefully expecting it to betray its cause
|
||
|
and nature, it dulled and sank again, carrying its mystery with it.
|
||
|
We started down the hill in its direction, and the winding road
|
||
|
plunged us at once into almost solid darkness--darkness that was
|
||
|
packed and crammed in between two tall forest walls. We groped
|
||
|
along down for half a mile, perhaps, that murmur growing more and
|
||
|
more distinct all the time. The coming storm threatening more and
|
||
|
more, with now and then a little shiver of wind, a faint show of
|
||
|
lightning, and dull grumblings of distant thunder. I was in the
|
||
|
lead. I ran against something--a soft heavy something which gave,
|
||
|
slightly, to the impulse of my weight; at the same moment the
|
||
|
lightning glared out, and within a foot of my face was the writhing
|
||
|
face of a man who was hanging from the limb of a tree! That is,
|
||
|
it seemed to be writhing, but it was not. It was a grewsome sight.
|
||
|
Straightway there was an ear-splitting explosion of thunder, and
|
||
|
the bottom of heaven fell out; the rain poured down in a deluge.
|
||
|
No matter, we must try to cut this man down, on the chance that
|
||
|
there might be life in him yet, mustn't we? The lightning came
|
||
|
quick and sharp now, and the place was alternately noonday and
|
||
|
midnight. One moment the man would be hanging before me in an
|
||
|
intense light, and the next he was blotted out again in the darkness.
|
||
|
I told the king we must cut him down. The king at once objected.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If he hanged himself, he was willing to lose him property to
|
||
|
his lord; so let him be. If others hanged him, belike they had
|
||
|
the right--let him hang."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But me no buts, but even leave him as he is. And for yet another
|
||
|
reason. When the lightning cometh again--there, look abroad."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Two others hanging, within fifty yards of us!
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is not weather meet for doing useless courtesies unto dead folk.
|
||
|
They are past thanking you. Come--it is unprofitable to tarry here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was reason in what he said, so we moved on. Within the next
|
||
|
mile we counted six more hanging forms by the blaze of the lightning,
|
||
|
and altogether it was a grisly excursion. That murmur was a murmur
|
||
|
no longer, it was a roar; a roar of men's voices. A man came flying
|
||
|
by now, dimly through the darkness, and other men chasing him.
|
||
|
They disappeared. Presently another case of the kind occurred,
|
||
|
and then another and another. Then a sudden turn of the road
|
||
|
brought us in sight of that fire--it was a large manor-house, and
|
||
|
little or nothing was left of it--and everywhere men were flying
|
||
|
and other men raging after them in pursuit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I warned the king that this was not a safe place for strangers.
|
||
|
We would better get away from the light, until matters should
|
||
|
improve. We stepped back a little, and hid in the edge of the
|
||
|
wood. From this hiding-place we saw both men and women hunted
|
||
|
by the mob. The fearful work went on until nearly dawn. Then,
|
||
|
the fire being out and the storm spent, the voices and flying
|
||
|
footsteps presently ceased, and darkness and stillness reigned again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We ventured out, and hurried cautiously away; and although we were
|
||
|
worn out and sleepy, we kept on until we had put this place some
|
||
|
miles behind us. Then we asked hospitality at the hut of a charcoal
|
||
|
burner, and got what was to be had. A woman was up and about, but
|
||
|
the man was still asleep, on a straw shake-down, on the clay floor.
|
||
|
The woman seemed uneasy until I explained that we were travelers
|
||
|
and had lost our way and been wandering in the woods all night.
|
||
|
She became talkative, then, and asked if we had heard of the
|
||
|
terrible goings-on at the manor-house of Abblasoure. Yes, we had
|
||
|
heard of them, but what we wanted now was rest and sleep. The
|
||
|
king broke in:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sell us the house and take yourselves away, for we be perilous
|
||
|
company, being late come from people that died of the Spotted Death."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was good of him, but unnecessary. One of the commonest decorations
|
||
|
of the nation was the waffle-iron face. I had early noticed that
|
||
|
the woman and her husband were both so decorated. She made us
|
||
|
entirely welcome, and had no fears; and plainly she was immensely
|
||
|
impressed by the king's proposition; for, of course, it was a good
|
||
|
deal of an event in her life to run across a person of the king's
|
||
|
humble appearance who was ready to buy a man's house for the sake
|
||
|
of a night's lodging. It gave her a large respect for us, and she
|
||
|
strained the lean possibilities of her hovel to the utmost to make
|
||
|
us comfortable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We slept till far into the afternoon, and then got up hungry enough to
|
||
|
make cotter fare quite palatable to the king, the more particularly
|
||
|
as it was scant in quantity. And also in variety; it consisted
|
||
|
solely of onions, salt, and the national black bread made out of
|
||
|
horse-feed. The woman told us about the affair of the evening
|
||
|
before. At ten or eleven at night, when everybody was in bed,
|
||
|
the manor-house burst into flames. The country-side swarmed to
|
||
|
the rescue, and the family were saved, with one exception, the
|
||
|
master. He did not appear. Everybody was frantic over this loss,
|
||
|
and two brave yeomen sacrificed their lives in ransacking the
|
||
|
burning house seeking that valuable personage. But after a while
|
||
|
he was found--what was left of him--which was his corpse. It was
|
||
|
in a copse three hundred yards away, bound, gagged, stabbed in a
|
||
|
dozen places.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Who had done this? Suspicion fell upon a humble family in the
|
||
|
neighborhood who had been lately treated with peculiar harshness
|
||
|
by the baron; and from these people the suspicion easily extended
|
||
|
itself to their relatives and familiars. A suspicion was enough;
|
||
|
my lord's liveried retainers proclaimed an instant crusade against
|
||
|
these people, and were promptly joined by the community in general.
|
||
|
The woman's husband had been active with the mob, and had not
|
||
|
returned home until nearly dawn. He was gone now to find out
|
||
|
what the general result had been. While we were still talking he
|
||
|
came back from his quest. His report was revolting enough. Eighteen
|
||
|
persons hanged or butchered, and two yeomen and thirteen prisoners
|
||
|
lost in the fire.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And how many prisoners were there altogether in the vaults?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thirteen."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then every one of them was lost?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But the people arrived in time to save the family; how is it they
|
||
|
could save none of the prisoners?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man looked puzzled, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would one unlock the vaults at such a time? Marry, some would
|
||
|
have escaped."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then you mean that nobody _did_ unlock them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None went near them, either to lock or unlock. It standeth to
|
||
|
reason that the bolts were fast; wherefore it was only needful
|
||
|
to establish a watch, so that if any broke the bonds he might not
|
||
|
escape, but be taken. None were taken."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Natheless, three did escape," said the king, "and ye will do well
|
||
|
to publish it and set justice upon their track, for these murthered
|
||
|
the baron and fired the house."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was just expecting he would come out with that. For a moment
|
||
|
the man and his wife showed an eager interest in this news and
|
||
|
an impatience to go out and spread it; then a sudden something
|
||
|
else betrayed itself in their faces, and they began to ask questions.
|
||
|
I answered the questions myself, and narrowly watched the effects
|
||
|
produced. I was soon satisfied that the knowledge of who these
|
||
|
three prisoners were had somehow changed the atmosphere; that
|
||
|
our hosts' continued eagerness to go and spread the news was now
|
||
|
only pretended and not real. The king did not notice the change,
|
||
|
and I was glad of that. I worked the conversation around toward
|
||
|
other details of the night's proceedings, and noted that these
|
||
|
people were relieved to have it take that direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The painful thing observable about all this business was the
|
||
|
alacrity with which this oppressed community had turned their
|
||
|
cruel hands against their own class in the interest of the common
|
||
|
oppressor. This man and woman seemed to feel that in a quarrel
|
||
|
between a person of their own class and his lord, it was the natural
|
||
|
and proper and rightful thing for that poor devil's whole caste
|
||
|
to side with the master and fight his battle for him, without ever
|
||
|
stopping to inquire into the rights or wrongs of the matter. This
|
||
|
man had been out helping to hang his neighbors, and had done his
|
||
|
work with zeal, and yet was aware that there was nothing against
|
||
|
them but a mere suspicion, with nothing back of it describable
|
||
|
as evidence, still neither he nor his wife seemed to see anything
|
||
|
horrible about it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was depressing--to a man with the dream of a republic in his
|
||
|
head. It reminded me of a time thirteen centuries away, when
|
||
|
the "poor whites" of our South who were always despised and
|
||
|
frequently insulted by the slave-lords around them, and who owed
|
||
|
their base condition simply to the presence of slavery in their
|
||
|
midst, were yet pusillanimously ready to side with the slave-lords
|
||
|
in all political moves for the upholding and perpetuating of
|
||
|
slavery, and did also finally shoulder their muskets and pour out
|
||
|
their lives in an effort to prevent the destruction of that very
|
||
|
institution which degraded them. And there was only one redeeming
|
||
|
feature connected with that pitiful piece of history; and that was,
|
||
|
that secretly the "poor white" did detest the slave-lord, and did
|
||
|
feel his own shame. That feeling was not brought to the surface,
|
||
|
but the fact that it was there and could have been brought out,
|
||
|
under favoring circumstances, was something--in fact, it was enough;
|
||
|
for it showed that a man is at bottom a man, after all, even if it
|
||
|
doesn't show on the outside.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, as it turned out, this charcoal burner was just the twin of
|
||
|
the Southern "poor white" of the far future. The king presently
|
||
|
showed impatience, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An ye prattle here all the day, justice will miscarry. Think ye
|
||
|
the criminals will abide in their father's house? They are fleeing,
|
||
|
they are not waiting. You should look to it that a party of horse
|
||
|
be set upon their track."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The woman paled slightly, but quite perceptibly, and the man looked
|
||
|
flustered and irresolute. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, friend, I will walk a little way with you, and explain which
|
||
|
direction I think they would try to take. If they were merely
|
||
|
resisters of the gabelle or some kindred absurdity I would try
|
||
|
to protect them from capture; but when men murder a person of
|
||
|
high degree and likewise burn his house, that is another matter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The last remark was for the king--to quiet him. On the road
|
||
|
the man pulled his resolution together, and began the march with
|
||
|
a steady gait, but there was no eagerness in it. By and by I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What relation were these men to you--cousins?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He turned as white as his layer of charcoal would let him, and
|
||
|
stopped, trembling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, my God, how know ye that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I didn't know it; it was a chance guess."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Poor lads, they are lost. And good lads they were, too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Were you actually going yonder to tell on them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He didn't quite know how to take that; but he said, hesitatingly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye-s."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then I think you are a damned scoundrel!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It made him as glad as if I had called him an angel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Say the good words again, brother! for surely ye mean that ye
|
||
|
would not betray me an I failed of my duty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Duty? There is no duty in the matter, except the duty to keep
|
||
|
still and let those men get away. They've done a righteous deed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked pleased; pleased, and touched with apprehension at the
|
||
|
same time. He looked up and down the road to see that no one
|
||
|
was coming, and then said in a cautious voice:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From what land come you, brother, that you speak such perilous
|
||
|
words, and seem not to be afraid?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are not perilous words when spoken to one of my own caste,
|
||
|
I take it. You would not tell anybody I said them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I? I would be drawn asunder by wild horses first."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, let me say my say. I have no fears of your repeating
|
||
|
it. I think devil's work has been done last night upon those
|
||
|
innocent poor people. That old baron got only what he deserved.
|
||
|
If I had my way, all his kind should have the same luck."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fear and depression vanished from the man's manner, and gratefulness
|
||
|
and a brave animation took their place:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even though you be a spy, and your words a trap for my undoing,
|
||
|
yet are they such refreshment that to hear them again and others
|
||
|
like to them, I would go to the gallows happy, as having had one
|
||
|
good feast at least in a starved life. And I will say my say now,
|
||
|
and ye may report it if ye be so minded. I helped to hang my
|
||
|
neighbors for that it were peril to my own life to show lack of
|
||
|
zeal in the master's cause; the others helped for none other reason.
|
||
|
All rejoice to-day that he is dead, but all do go about seemingly
|
||
|
sorrowing, and shedding the hypocrite's tear, for in that lies
|
||
|
safety. I have said the words, I have said the words! the only
|
||
|
ones that have ever tasted good in my mouth, and the reward of
|
||
|
that taste is sufficient. Lead on, an ye will, be it even to the
|
||
|
scaffold, for I am ready."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There it was, you see. A man is a man, at bottom. Whole ages
|
||
|
of abuse and oppression cannot crush the manhood clear out of him.
|
||
|
Whoever thinks it a mistake is himself mistaken. Yes, there is
|
||
|
plenty good enough material for a republic in the most degraded
|
||
|
people that ever existed--even the Russians; plenty of manhood
|
||
|
in them--even in the Germans--if one could but force it out of
|
||
|
its timid and suspicious privacy, to overthrow and trample in the
|
||
|
mud any throne that ever was set up and any nobility that ever
|
||
|
supported it. We should see certain things yet, let us hope and
|
||
|
believe. First, a modified monarchy, till Arthur's days were done,
|
||
|
then the destruction of the throne, nobility abolished, every
|
||
|
member of it bound out to some useful trade, universal suffrage
|
||
|
instituted, and the whole government placed in the hands of the
|
||
|
men and women of the nation there to remain. Yes, there was no
|
||
|
occasion to give up my dream yet a while.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXI
|
||
|
|
||
|
MARCO
|
||
|
|
||
|
We strolled along in a sufficiently indolent fashion now, and
|
||
|
talked. We must dispose of about the amount of time it ought
|
||
|
to take to go to the little hamlet of Abblasoure and put justice
|
||
|
on the track of those murderers and get back home again. And
|
||
|
meantime I had an auxiliary interest which had never paled yet,
|
||
|
never lost its novelty for me since I had been in Arthur's kingdom:
|
||
|
the behavior--born of nice and exact subdivisions of caste--of chance
|
||
|
passers-by toward each other. Toward the shaven monk who trudged
|
||
|
along with his cowl tilted back and the sweat washing down his
|
||
|
fat jowls, the coal-burner was deeply reverent; to the gentleman
|
||
|
he was abject; with the small farmer and the free mechanic he was
|
||
|
cordial and gossipy; and when a slave passed by with a countenance
|
||
|
respectfully lowered, this chap's nose was in the air--he couldn't
|
||
|
even see him. Well, there are times when one would like to hang
|
||
|
the whole human race and finish the farce.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently we struck an incident. A small mob of half-naked boys
|
||
|
and girls came tearing out of the woods, scared and shrieking.
|
||
|
The eldest among them were not more than twelve or fourteen years
|
||
|
old. They implored help, but they were so beside themselves that
|
||
|
we couldn't make out what the matter was. However, we plunged
|
||
|
into the wood, they skurrying in the lead, and the trouble was
|
||
|
quickly revealed: they had hanged a little fellow with a bark rope,
|
||
|
and he was kicking and struggling, in the process of choking to
|
||
|
death. We rescued him, and fetched him around. It was some more
|
||
|
human nature; the admiring little folk imitating their elders;
|
||
|
they were playing mob, and had achieved a success which promised
|
||
|
to be a good deal more serious than they had bargained for.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not a dull excursion for me. I managed to put in the time
|
||
|
very well. I made various acquaintanceships, and in my quality
|
||
|
of stranger was able to ask as many questions as I wanted to.
|
||
|
A thing which naturally interested me, as a statesman, was the
|
||
|
matter of wages. I picked up what I could under that head during
|
||
|
the afternoon. A man who hasn't had much experience, and doesn't
|
||
|
think, is apt to measure a nation's prosperity or lack of prosperity
|
||
|
by the mere size of the prevailing wages; if the wages be high, the
|
||
|
nation is prosperous; if low, it isn't. Which is an error. It
|
||
|
isn't what sum you get, it's how much you can buy with it, that's
|
||
|
the important thing; and it's that that tells whether your wages
|
||
|
are high in fact or only high in name. I could remember how it
|
||
|
was in the time of our great civil war in the nineteenth century.
|
||
|
In the North a carpenter got three dollars a day, gold valuation;
|
||
|
in the South he got fifty--payable in Confederate shinplasters
|
||
|
worth a dollar a bushel. In the North a suit of overalls cost
|
||
|
three dollars--a day's wages; in the South it cost seventy-five
|
||
|
--which was two days' wages. Other things were in proportion.
|
||
|
Consequently, wages were twice as high in the North as they were
|
||
|
in the South, because the one wage had that much more purchasing
|
||
|
power than the other had.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, I made various acquaintances in the hamlet and a thing that
|
||
|
gratified me a good deal was to find our new coins in circulation
|
||
|
--lots of milrays, lots of mills, lots of cents, a good many nickels,
|
||
|
and some silver; all this among the artisans and commonalty
|
||
|
generally; yes, and even some gold--but that was at the bank,
|
||
|
that is to say, the goldsmith's. I dropped in there while Marco,
|
||
|
the son of Marco, was haggling with a shopkeeper over a quarter
|
||
|
of a pound of salt, and asked for change for a twenty-dollar gold
|
||
|
piece. They furnished it--that is, after they had chewed the piece,
|
||
|
and rung it on the counter, and tried acid on it, and asked me
|
||
|
where I got it, and who I was, and where I was from, and where
|
||
|
I was going to, and when I expected to get there, and perhaps
|
||
|
a couple of hundred more questions; and when they got aground,
|
||
|
I went right on and furnished them a lot of information voluntarily;
|
||
|
told them I owned a dog, and his name was Watch, and my first wife
|
||
|
was a Free Will Baptist, and her grandfather was a Prohibitionist,
|
||
|
and I used to know a man who had two thumbs on each hand and a wart
|
||
|
on the inside of his upper lip, and died in the hope of a glorious
|
||
|
resurrection, and so on, and so on, and so on, till even that
|
||
|
hungry village questioner began to look satisfied, and also a shade
|
||
|
put out; but he had to respect a man of my financial strength,
|
||
|
and so he didn't give me any lip, but I noticed he took it out of
|
||
|
his underlings, which was a perfectly natural thing to do. Yes,
|
||
|
they changed my twenty, but I judged it strained the bank a little,
|
||
|
which was a thing to be expected, for it was the same as walking
|
||
|
into a paltry village store in the nineteenth century and requiring
|
||
|
the boss of it to change a two thousand-dollar bill for you all
|
||
|
of a sudden. He could do it, maybe; but at the same time he
|
||
|
would wonder how a small farmer happened to be carrying so much
|
||
|
money around in his pocket; which was probably this goldsmith's
|
||
|
thought, too; for he followed me to the door and stood there gazing
|
||
|
after me with reverent admiration.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our new money was not only handsomely circulating, but its language
|
||
|
was already glibly in use; that is to say, people had dropped
|
||
|
the names of the former moneys, and spoke of things as being worth
|
||
|
so many dollars or cents or mills or milrays now. It was very
|
||
|
gratifying. We were progressing, that was sure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I got to know several master mechanics, but about the most interesting
|
||
|
fellow among them was the blacksmith, Dowley. He was a live man
|
||
|
and a brisk talker, and had two journeymen and three apprentices,
|
||
|
and was doing a raging business. In fact, he was getting rich,
|
||
|
hand over fist, and was vastly respected. Marco was very proud of
|
||
|
having such a man for a friend. He had taken me there ostensibly
|
||
|
to let me see the big establishment which bought so much of his
|
||
|
charcoal, but really to let me see what easy and almost familiar
|
||
|
terms he was on with this great man. Dowley and I fraternized
|
||
|
at once; I had had just such picked men, splendid fellows, under
|
||
|
me in the Colt Arms Factory. I was bound to see more of him, so
|
||
|
I invited him to come out to Marco's Sunday, and dine with us.
|
||
|
Marco was appalled, and held his breath; and when the grandee
|
||
|
accepted, he was so grateful that he almost forgot to be astonished
|
||
|
at the condescension.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Marco's joy was exuberant--but only for a moment; then he grew
|
||
|
thoughtful, then sad; and when he heard me tell Dowley I should
|
||
|
have Dickon, the boss mason, and Smug, the boss wheelwright, out
|
||
|
there, too, the coal-dust on his face turned to chalk, and he lost
|
||
|
his grip. But I knew what was the matter with him; it was the
|
||
|
expense. He saw ruin before him; he judged that his financial
|
||
|
days were numbered. However, on our way to invite the others,
|
||
|
I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You must allow me to have these friends come; and you must also
|
||
|
allow me to pay the costs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His face cleared, and he said with spirit:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But not all of it, not all of it. Ye cannot well bear a burden
|
||
|
like to this alone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I stopped him, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now let's understand each other on the spot, old friend. I am
|
||
|
only a farm bailiff, it is true; but I am not poor, nevertheless.
|
||
|
I have been very fortunate this year--you would be astonished
|
||
|
to know how I have thriven. I tell you the honest truth when I say
|
||
|
I could squander away as many as a dozen feasts like this and never
|
||
|
care _that_ for the expense!" and I snapped my fingers. I could
|
||
|
see myself rise a foot at a time in Marco's estimation, and when
|
||
|
I fetched out those last words I was become a very tower for style
|
||
|
and altitude. "So you see, you must let me have my way. You
|
||
|
can't contribute a cent to this orgy, that's _settled_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's grand and good of you--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, it isn't. You've opened your house to Jones and me in the
|
||
|
most generous way; Jones was remarking upon it to-day, just before
|
||
|
you came back from the village; for although he wouldn't be likely
|
||
|
to say such a thing to you--because Jones isn't a talker, and is
|
||
|
diffident in society--he has a good heart and a grateful, and
|
||
|
knows how to appreciate it when he is well treated; yes, you and
|
||
|
your wife have been very hospitable toward us--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, brother, 'tis nothing--_such_ hospitality!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it _is_ something; the best a man has, freely given, is always
|
||
|
something, and is as good as a prince can do, and ranks right
|
||
|
along beside it--for even a prince can but do his best. And so
|
||
|
we'll shop around and get up this layout now, and don't you worry
|
||
|
about the expense. I'm one of the worst spendthrifts that ever
|
||
|
was born. Why, do you know, sometimes in a single week I spend
|
||
|
--but never mind about that--you'd never believe it anyway."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so we went gadding along, dropping in here and there, pricing
|
||
|
things, and gossiping with the shopkeepers about the riot, and now
|
||
|
and then running across pathetic reminders of it, in the persons of
|
||
|
shunned and tearful and houseless remnants of families whose homes
|
||
|
had been taken from them and their parents butchered or hanged.
|
||
|
The raiment of Marco and his wife was of coarse tow-linen and
|
||
|
linsey-woolsey respectively, and resembled township maps, it being
|
||
|
made up pretty exclusively of patches which had been added, township
|
||
|
by township, in the course of five or six years, until hardly a
|
||
|
hand's-breadth of the original garments was surviving and present.
|
||
|
Now I wanted to fit these people out with new suits, on account of
|
||
|
that swell company, and I didn't know just how to get at it
|
||
|
--with delicacy, until at last it struck me that as I had already
|
||
|
been liberal in inventing wordy gratitude for the king, it would
|
||
|
be just the thing to back it up with evidence of a substantial
|
||
|
sort; so I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And Marco, there's another thing which you must permit--out of
|
||
|
kindness for Jones--because you wouldn't want to offend him.
|
||
|
He was very anxious to testify his appreciation in some way, but
|
||
|
he is so diffident he couldn't venture it himself, and so he begged
|
||
|
me to buy some little things and give them to you and Dame Phyllis
|
||
|
and let him pay for them without your ever knowing they came from
|
||
|
him--you know how a delicate person feels about that sort of thing
|
||
|
--and so I said I would, and we would keep mum. Well, his idea
|
||
|
was, a new outfit of clothes for you both--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, it is wastefulness! It may not be, brother, it may not be.
|
||
|
Consider the vastness of the sum--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hang the vastness of the sum! Try to keep quiet for a moment,
|
||
|
and see how it would seem; a body can't get in a word edgeways,
|
||
|
you talk so much. You ought to cure that, Marco; it isn't good
|
||
|
form, you know, and it will grow on you if you don't check it.
|
||
|
Yes, we'll step in here now and price this man's stuff--and don't
|
||
|
forget to remember to not let on to Jones that you know he had
|
||
|
anything to do with it. You can't think how curiously sensitive
|
||
|
and proud he is. He's a farmer--pretty fairly well-to-do farmer
|
||
|
--and I'm his bailiff; _but_--the imagination of that man! Why,
|
||
|
sometimes when he forgets himself and gets to blowing off, you'd
|
||
|
think he was one of the swells of the earth; and you might listen
|
||
|
to him a hundred years and never take him for a farmer--especially if
|
||
|
he talked agriculture. He _thinks_ he's a Sheol of a farmer; thinks
|
||
|
he's old Grayback from Wayback; but between you and me privately
|
||
|
he don't know as much about farming as he does about running
|
||
|
a kingdom--still, whatever he talks about, you want to drop your
|
||
|
underjaw and listen, the same as if you had never heard such
|
||
|
incredible wisdom in all your life before, and were afraid you
|
||
|
might die before you got enough of it. That will please Jones."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It tickled Marco to the marrow to hear about such an odd character;
|
||
|
but it also prepared him for accidents; and in my experience when
|
||
|
you travel with a king who is letting on to be something else and
|
||
|
can't remember it more than about half the time, you can't take
|
||
|
too many precautions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was the best store we had come across yet; it had everything
|
||
|
in it, in small quantities, from anvils and drygoods all the way
|
||
|
down to fish and pinchbeck jewelry. I concluded I would bunch
|
||
|
my whole invoice right here, and not go pricing around any more.
|
||
|
So I got rid of Marco, by sending him off to invite the mason and
|
||
|
the wheelwright, which left the field free to me. For I never care
|
||
|
to do a thing in a quiet way; it's got to be theatrical or I don't
|
||
|
take any interest in it. I showed up money enough, in a careless
|
||
|
way, to corral the shopkeeper's respect, and then I wrote down
|
||
|
a list of the things I wanted, and handed it to him to see if he
|
||
|
could read it. He could, and was proud to show that he could.
|
||
|
He said he had been educated by a priest, and could both read
|
||
|
and write. He ran it through, and remarked with satisfaction that
|
||
|
it was a pretty heavy bill. Well, and so it was, for a little
|
||
|
concern like that. I was not only providing a swell dinner, but
|
||
|
some odds and ends of extras. I ordered that the things be carted
|
||
|
out and delivered at the dwelling of Marco, the son of Marco,
|
||
|
by Saturday evening, and send me the bill at dinner-time Sunday.
|
||
|
He said I could depend upon his promptness and exactitude, it was
|
||
|
the rule of the house. He also observed that he would throw in
|
||
|
a couple of miller-guns for the Marcos gratis--that everybody
|
||
|
was using them now. He had a mighty opinion of that clever
|
||
|
device. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And please fill them up to the middle mark, too; and add that
|
||
|
to the bill."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He would, with pleasure. He filled them, and I took them with
|
||
|
me. I couldn't venture to tell him that the miller-gun was a
|
||
|
little invention of my own, and that I had officially ordered that
|
||
|
every shopkeeper in the kingdom keep them on hand and sell them
|
||
|
at government price--which was the merest trifle, and the shopkeeper
|
||
|
got that, not the government. We furnished them for nothing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king had hardly missed us when we got back at nightfall. He
|
||
|
had early dropped again into his dream of a grand invasion of Gaul
|
||
|
with the whole strength of his kingdom at his back, and the afternoon
|
||
|
had slipped away without his ever coming to himself again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXII
|
||
|
|
||
|
DOWLEY'S HUMILIATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, when that cargo arrived toward sunset, Saturday afternoon,
|
||
|
I had my hands full to keep the Marcos from fainting. They were
|
||
|
sure Jones and I were ruined past help, and they blamed themselves
|
||
|
as accessories to this bankruptcy. You see, in addition to the
|
||
|
dinner-materials, which called for a sufficiently round sum,
|
||
|
I had bought a lot of extras for the future comfort of the family:
|
||
|
for instance, a big lot of wheat, a delicacy as rare to the tables
|
||
|
of their class as was ice-cream to a hermit's; also a sizeable
|
||
|
deal dinner-table; also two entire pounds of salt, which was
|
||
|
another piece of extravagance in those people's eyes; also crockery,
|
||
|
stools, the clothes, a small cask of beer, and so on. I instructed
|
||
|
the Marcos to keep quiet about this sumptuousness, so as to give
|
||
|
me a chance to surprise the guests and show off a little. Concerning
|
||
|
the new clothes, the simple couple were like children; they were up
|
||
|
and down, all night, to see if it wasn't nearly daylight, so that
|
||
|
they could put them on, and they were into them at last as much
|
||
|
as an hour before dawn was due. Then their pleasure--not to say
|
||
|
delirium--was so fresh and novel and inspiring that the sight of it
|
||
|
paid me well for the interruptions which my sleep had suffered.
|
||
|
The king had slept just as usual--like the dead. The Marcos could
|
||
|
not thank him for their clothes, that being forbidden; but they
|
||
|
tried every way they could think of to make him see how grateful
|
||
|
they were. Which all went for nothing: he didn't notice any change.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It turned out to be one of those rich and rare fall days which is
|
||
|
just a June day toned down to a degree where it is heaven to be
|
||
|
out of doors. Toward noon the guests arrived, and we assembled
|
||
|
under a great tree and were soon as sociable as old acquaintances.
|
||
|
Even the king's reserve melted a little, though it was some little
|
||
|
trouble to him to adjust himself to the name of Jones along at
|
||
|
first. I had asked him to try to not forget that he was a farmer;
|
||
|
but I had also considered it prudent to ask him to let the thing
|
||
|
stand at that, and not elaborate it any. Because he was just the
|
||
|
kind of person you could depend on to spoil a little thing like
|
||
|
that if you didn't warn him, his tongue was so handy, and his
|
||
|
spirit so willing, and his information so uncertain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Dowley was in fine feather, and I early got him started, and then
|
||
|
adroitly worked him around onto his own history for a text and
|
||
|
himself for a hero, and then it was good to sit there and hear him
|
||
|
hum. Self-made man, you know. They know how to talk. They do
|
||
|
deserve more credit than any other breed of men, yes, that is true;
|
||
|
and they are among the very first to find it out, too. He told how
|
||
|
he had begun life an orphan lad without money and without friends
|
||
|
able to help him; how he had lived as the slaves of the meanest
|
||
|
master lived; how his day's work was from sixteen to eighteen hours
|
||
|
long, and yielded him only enough black bread to keep him in a
|
||
|
half-fed condition; how his faithful endeavors finally attracted
|
||
|
the attention of a good blacksmith, who came near knocking him
|
||
|
dead with kindness by suddenly offering, when he was totally
|
||
|
unprepared, to take him as his bound apprentice for nine years
|
||
|
and give him board and clothes and teach him the trade--or "mystery"
|
||
|
as Dowley called it. That was his first great rise, his first
|
||
|
gorgeous stroke of fortune; and you saw that he couldn't yet speak
|
||
|
of it without a sort of eloquent wonder and delight that such a
|
||
|
gilded promotion should have fallen to the lot of a common human
|
||
|
being. He got no new clothing during his apprenticeship, but on
|
||
|
his graduation day his master tricked him out in spang-new tow-linens
|
||
|
and made him feel unspeakably rich and fine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I remember me of that day!" the wheelwright sang out, with
|
||
|
enthusiasm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I likewise!" cried the mason. "I would not believe they
|
||
|
were thine own; in faith I could not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nor other!" shouted Dowley, with sparkling eyes. "I was like
|
||
|
to lose my character, the neighbors wending I had mayhap been
|
||
|
stealing. It was a great day, a great day; one forgetteth not
|
||
|
days like that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, and his master was a fine man, and prosperous, and always
|
||
|
had a great feast of meat twice in the year, and with it white
|
||
|
bread, true wheaten bread; in fact, lived like a lord, so to speak.
|
||
|
And in time Dowley succeeded to the business and married the daughter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And now consider what is come to pass," said he, impressively.
|
||
|
"Two times in every month there is fresh meat upon my table."
|
||
|
He made a pause here, to let that fact sink home, then added
|
||
|
--"and eight times salt meat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is even true," said the wheelwright, with bated breath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know it of mine own knowledge," said the mason, in the same
|
||
|
reverent fashion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"On my table appeareth white bread every Sunday in the year,"
|
||
|
added the master smith, with solemnity. "I leave it to your own
|
||
|
consciences, friends, if this is not also true?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By my head, yes," cried the mason.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can testify it--and I do," said the wheelwright.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And as to furniture, ye shall say yourselves what mine equipment
|
||
|
is." He waved his hand in fine gesture of granting frank and
|
||
|
unhampered freedom of speech, and added: "Speak as ye are moved;
|
||
|
speak as ye would speak; an I were not here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye have five stools, and of the sweetest workmanship at that, albeit
|
||
|
your family is but three," said the wheelwright, with deep respect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And six wooden goblets, and six platters of wood and two of pewter
|
||
|
to eat and drink from withal," said the mason, impressively. "And
|
||
|
I say it as knowing God is my judge, and we tarry not here alway,
|
||
|
but must answer at the last day for the things said in the body,
|
||
|
be they false or be they sooth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now ye know what manner of man I am, brother Jones," said the
|
||
|
smith, with a fine and friendly condescension, "and doubtless ye
|
||
|
would look to find me a man jealous of his due of respect and
|
||
|
but sparing of outgo to strangers till their rating and quality be
|
||
|
assured, but trouble yourself not, as concerning that; wit ye well
|
||
|
ye shall find me a man that regardeth not these matters but is
|
||
|
willing to receive any he as his fellow and equal that carrieth
|
||
|
a right heart in his body, be his worldly estate howsoever modest.
|
||
|
And in token of it, here is my hand; and I say with my own mouth
|
||
|
we are equals--equals"--and he smiled around on the company with
|
||
|
the satisfaction of a god who is doing the handsome and gracious
|
||
|
thing and is quite well aware of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king took the hand with a poorly disguised reluctance, and
|
||
|
let go of it as willingly as a lady lets go of a fish; all of which
|
||
|
had a good effect, for it was mistaken for an embarrassment natural
|
||
|
to one who was being called upon by greatness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The dame brought out the table now, and set it under the tree.
|
||
|
It caused a visible stir of surprise, it being brand new and a
|
||
|
sumptuous article of deal. But the surprise rose higher still
|
||
|
when the dame, with a body oozing easy indifference at every pore,
|
||
|
but eyes that gave it all away by absolutely flaming with vanity,
|
||
|
slowly unfolded an actual simon-pure tablecloth and spread it.
|
||
|
That was a notch above even the blacksmith's domestic grandeurs,
|
||
|
and it hit him hard; you could see it. But Marco was in Paradise;
|
||
|
you could see that, too. Then the dame brought two fine new
|
||
|
stools--whew! that was a sensation; it was visible in the eyes of
|
||
|
every guest. Then she brought two more--as calmly as she could.
|
||
|
Sensation again--with awed murmurs. Again she brought two
|
||
|
--walking on air, she was so proud. The guests were petrified, and
|
||
|
the mason muttered:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is that about earthly pomps which doth ever move to reverence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the dame turned away, Marco couldn't help slapping on the climax
|
||
|
while the thing was hot; so he said with what was meant for a
|
||
|
languid composure but was a poor imitation of it:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These suffice; leave the rest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So there were more yet! It was a fine effect. I couldn't have
|
||
|
played the hand better myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From this out, the madam piled up the surprises with a rush that
|
||
|
fired the general astonishment up to a hundred and fifty in the
|
||
|
shade, and at the same time paralyzed expression of it down to
|
||
|
gasped "Oh's" and "Ah's," and mute upliftings of hands and eyes.
|
||
|
She fetched crockery--new, and plenty of it; new wooden goblets
|
||
|
and other table furniture; and beer, fish, chicken, a goose, eggs,
|
||
|
roast beef, roast mutton, a ham, a small roast pig, and a wealth
|
||
|
of genuine white wheaten bread. Take it by and large, that spread
|
||
|
laid everything far and away in the shade that ever that crowd had
|
||
|
seen before. And while they sat there just simply stupefied with
|
||
|
wonder and awe, I sort of waved my hand as if by accident, and
|
||
|
the storekeeper's son emerged from space and said he had come
|
||
|
to collect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's all right," I said, indifferently. "What is the amount?
|
||
|
give us the items."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then he read off this bill, while those three amazed men listened,
|
||
|
and serene waves of satisfaction rolled over my soul and alternate
|
||
|
waves of terror and admiration surged over Marco's:
|
||
|
|
||
|
2 pounds salt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 200
|
||
|
8 dozen pints beer, in the wood . . . . . 800
|
||
|
3 bushels wheat . . . . . . . . . . . . . 2,700
|
||
|
2 pounds fish . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 100
|
||
|
3 hens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 400
|
||
|
1 goose . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 400
|
||
|
3 dozen eggs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 150
|
||
|
1 roast of beef . . . . . . . . . . . . . 450
|
||
|
1 roast of mutton . . . . . . . . . . . . 400
|
||
|
1 ham . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 800
|
||
|
1 sucking pig . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 500
|
||
|
2 crockery dinner sets . . . . . . . . . 6,000
|
||
|
2 men's suits and underwear . . . . . . . 2,800
|
||
|
1 stuff and 1 linsey-woolsey gown
|
||
|
and underwear . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1,600
|
||
|
8 wooden goblets . . . . . . . . . . . . 800
|
||
|
Various table furniture . . . . . . . . .10,000
|
||
|
1 deal table . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 3,000
|
||
|
8 stools . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 4,000
|
||
|
2 miller guns, loaded . . . . . . . . . . 3,000
|
||
|
|
||
|
He ceased. There was a pale and awful silence. Not a limb stirred.
|
||
|
Not a nostril betrayed the passage of breath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is that all?" I asked, in a voice of the most perfect calmness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All, fair sir, save that certain matters of light moment are
|
||
|
placed together under a head hight sundries. If it would like
|
||
|
you, I will sepa--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is of no consequence," I said, accompanying the words with
|
||
|
a gesture of the most utter indifference; "give me the grand
|
||
|
total, please."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The clerk leaned against the tree to stay himself, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thirty-nine thousand one hundred and fifty milrays!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The wheelwright fell off his stool, the others grabbed the table
|
||
|
to save themselves, and there was a deep and general ejaculation of:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"God be with us in the day of disaster!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The clerk hastened to say:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My father chargeth me to say he cannot honorably require you
|
||
|
to pay it all at this time, and therefore only prayeth you--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I paid no more heed than if it were the idle breeze, but, with an
|
||
|
air of indifference amounting almost to weariness, got out my money
|
||
|
and tossed four dollars on to the table. Ah, you should have seen
|
||
|
them stare!
|
||
|
|
||
|
The clerk was astonished and charmed. He asked me to retain
|
||
|
one of the dollars as security, until he could go to town and
|
||
|
--I interrupted:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, and fetch back nine cents? Nonsense! Take the whole.
|
||
|
Keep the change."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was an amazed murmur to this effect:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Verily this being is _made_ of money! He throweth it away even
|
||
|
as if it were dirt."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The blacksmith was a crushed man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The clerk took his money and reeled away drunk with fortune. I said
|
||
|
to Marco and his wife:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good folk, here is a little trifle for you"--handing the miller-guns
|
||
|
as if it were a matter of no consequence, though each of them
|
||
|
contained fifteen cents in solid cash; and while the poor creatures
|
||
|
went to pieces with astonishment and gratitude, I turned to the
|
||
|
others and said as calmly as one would ask the time of day:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, if we are all ready, I judge the dinner is. Come, fall to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Ah, well, it was immense; yes, it was a daisy. I don't know that
|
||
|
I ever put a situation together better, or got happier spectacular
|
||
|
effects out of the materials available. The blacksmith--well, he
|
||
|
was simply mashed. Land! I wouldn't have felt what that man was
|
||
|
feeling, for anything in the world. Here he had been blowing and
|
||
|
bragging about his grand meat-feast twice a year, and his fresh
|
||
|
meat twice a month, and his salt meat twice a week, and his white
|
||
|
bread every Sunday the year round--all for a family of three; the
|
||
|
entire cost for the year not above 69.2.6 (sixty-nine cents, two
|
||
|
mills and six milrays), and all of a sudden here comes along a man
|
||
|
who slashes out nearly four dollars on a single blow-out; and not
|
||
|
only that, but acts as if it made him tired to handle such small
|
||
|
sums. Yes, Dowley was a good deal wilted, and shrunk-up and
|
||
|
collapsed; he had the aspect of a bladder-balloon that's been
|
||
|
stepped on by a cow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
SIXTH CENTURY POLITICAL ECONOMY
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, I made a dead set at him, and before the first third
|
||
|
of the dinner was reached, I had him happy again. It was easy
|
||
|
to do--in a country of ranks and castes. You see, in a country
|
||
|
where they have ranks and castes, a man isn't ever a man, he is
|
||
|
only part of a man, he can't ever get his full growth. You prove
|
||
|
your superiority over him in station, or rank, or fortune, and
|
||
|
that's the end of it--he knuckles down. You can't insult him
|
||
|
after that. No, I don't mean quite that; of course you _can_ insult
|
||
|
him, I only mean it's difficult; and so, unless you've got a lot
|
||
|
of useless time on your hands it doesn't pay to try. I had the
|
||
|
smith's reverence now, because I was apparently immensely prosperous
|
||
|
and rich; I could have had his adoration if I had had some little
|
||
|
gimcrack title of nobility. And not only his, but any commoner's
|
||
|
in the land, though he were the mightiest production of all the ages,
|
||
|
in intellect, worth, and character, and I bankrupt in all three.
|
||
|
This was to remain so, as long as England should exist in the
|
||
|
earth. With the spirit of prophecy upon me, I could look into
|
||
|
the future and see her erect statues and monuments to her unspeakable
|
||
|
Georges and other royal and noble clothes-horses, and leave unhonored
|
||
|
the creators of this world--after God--Gutenburg, Watt, Arkwright,
|
||
|
Whitney, Morse, Stephenson, Bell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king got his cargo aboard, and then, the talk not turning upon
|
||
|
battle, conquest, or iron-clad duel, he dulled down to drowsiness
|
||
|
and went off to take a nap. Mrs. Marco cleared the table, placed
|
||
|
the beer keg handy, and went away to eat her dinner of leavings
|
||
|
in humble privacy, and the rest of us soon drifted into matters
|
||
|
near and dear to the hearts of our sort--business and wages,
|
||
|
of course. At a first glance, things appeared to be exceeding
|
||
|
prosperous in this little tributary kingdom--whose lord was
|
||
|
King Bagdemagus--as compared with the state of things in my own
|
||
|
region. They had the "protection" system in full force here,
|
||
|
whereas we were working along down toward free-trade, by easy
|
||
|
stages, and were now about half way. Before long, Dowley and I
|
||
|
were doing all the talking, the others hungrily listening. Dowley
|
||
|
warmed to his work, snuffed an advantage in the air, and began
|
||
|
to put questions which he considered pretty awkward ones for me,
|
||
|
and they did have something of that look:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In your country, brother, what is the wage of a master bailiff,
|
||
|
master hind, carter, shepherd, swineherd?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Twenty-five milrays a day; that is to say, a quarter of a cent."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The smith's face beamed with joy. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With us they are allowed the double of it! And what may a mechanic
|
||
|
get--carpenter, dauber, mason, painter, blacksmith, wheelwright,
|
||
|
and the like?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"On the average, fifty milrays; half a cent a day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ho-ho! With us they are allowed a hundred! With us any good
|
||
|
mechanic is allowed a cent a day! I count out the tailor, but
|
||
|
not the others--they are all allowed a cent a day, and in driving
|
||
|
times they get more--yes, up to a hundred and ten and even fifteen
|
||
|
milrays a day. I've paid a hundred and fifteen myself, within
|
||
|
the week. 'Rah for protection--to Sheol with free-trade!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And his face shone upon the company like a sunburst. But I didn't
|
||
|
scare at all. I rigged up my pile-driver, and allowed myself
|
||
|
fifteen minutes to drive him into the earth--drive him _all_ in
|
||
|
--drive him in till not even the curve of his skull should show
|
||
|
above ground. Here is the way I started in on him. I asked:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you pay a pound for salt?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A hundred milrays."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We pay forty. What do you pay for beef and mutton--when you
|
||
|
buy it?" That was a neat hit; it made the color come.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It varieth somewhat, but not much; one may say seventy-five milrays
|
||
|
the pound."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_We_ pay thirty-three. What do you pay for eggs?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fifty milrays the dozen."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We pay twenty. What do you pay for beer?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It costeth us eight and one-half milrays the pint."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We get it for four; twenty-five bottles for a cent.
|
||
|
What do you pay for wheat?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At the rate of nine hundred milrays the bushel."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We pay four hundred. What do you pay for a man's tow-linen suit?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thirteen cents."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We pay six. What do you pay for a stuff gown for the wife of the
|
||
|
laborer or the mechanic?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We pay eight cents, four mills."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, observe the difference: you pay eight cents and four mills,
|
||
|
we pay only four cents." I prepared now to sock it to him. I said:
|
||
|
"Look here, dear friend, _what's become of your high wages you
|
||
|
were bragging so about a few minutes ago?_"--and I looked around
|
||
|
on the company with placid satisfaction, for I had slipped up
|
||
|
on him gradually and tied him hand and foot, you see, without his
|
||
|
ever noticing that he was being tied at all. "What's become of
|
||
|
those noble high wages of yours?--I seem to have knocked the
|
||
|
stuffing all out of them, it appears to me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But if you will believe me, he merely looked surprised, that
|
||
|
is all! he didn't grasp the situation at all, didn't know he had
|
||
|
walked into a trap, didn't discover that he was _in_ a trap. I could
|
||
|
have shot him, from sheer vexation. With cloudy eye and a struggling
|
||
|
intellect he fetched this out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, I seem not to understand. It is _proved_ that our wages
|
||
|
be double thine; how then may it be that thou'st knocked therefrom
|
||
|
the stuffing?--an miscall not the wonderly word, this being the
|
||
|
first time under grace and providence of God it hath been granted
|
||
|
me to hear it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I was stunned; partly with this unlooked-for stupidity on
|
||
|
his part, and partly because his fellows so manifestly sided with
|
||
|
him and were of his mind--if you might call it mind. My position
|
||
|
was simple enough, plain enough; how could it ever be simplified
|
||
|
more? However, I must try:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, look here, brother Dowley, don't you see? Your wages are
|
||
|
merely higher than ours in _name_, not in _fact_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hear him! They are the _double_--ye have confessed it yourself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes-yes, I don't deny that at all. But that's got nothing to do
|
||
|
with it; the _amount_ of the wages in mere coins, with meaningless
|
||
|
names attached to them to know them by, has got nothing to do
|
||
|
with it. The thing is, how much can you _buy_ with your wages?
|
||
|
--that's the idea. While it is true that with you a good mechanic
|
||
|
is allowed about three dollars and a half a year, and with us only
|
||
|
about a dollar and seventy-five--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There--ye're confessing it again, ye're confessing it again!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Confound it, I've never denied it, I tell you! What I say is
|
||
|
this. With us _half_ a dollar buys more than a _dollar_ buys
|
||
|
with you--and THEREFORE it stands to reason and the commonest
|
||
|
kind of common-sense, that our wages are _higher_ than yours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked dazed, and said, despairingly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Verily, I cannot make it out. Ye've just said ours are the
|
||
|
higher, and with the same breath ye take it back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, great Scott, isn't it possible to get such a simple thing
|
||
|
through your head? Now look here--let me illustrate. We pay
|
||
|
four cents for a woman's stuff gown, you pay 8.4.0, which is
|
||
|
four mills more than _double_. What do you allow a laboring
|
||
|
woman who works on a farm?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Two mills a day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very good; we allow but half as much; we pay her only a tenth
|
||
|
of a cent a day; and--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Again ye're conf--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wait! Now, you see, the thing is very simple; this time you'll
|
||
|
understand it. For instance, it takes your woman 42 days to earn
|
||
|
her gown, at 2 mills a day--7 weeks' work; but ours earns hers
|
||
|
in forty days--two days _short_ of 7 weeks. Your woman has a gown,
|
||
|
and her whole seven weeks wages are gone; ours has a gown, and
|
||
|
two days' wages left, to buy something else with. There--_now_
|
||
|
you understand it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked--well, he merely looked dubious, it's the most I can say;
|
||
|
so did the others. I waited--to let the thing work. Dowley spoke
|
||
|
at last--and betrayed the fact that he actually hadn't gotten away
|
||
|
from his rooted and grounded superstitions yet. He said, with
|
||
|
a trifle of hesitancy:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But--but--ye cannot fail to grant that two mills a day is better
|
||
|
than one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Shucks! Well, of course, I hated to give it up. So I chanced
|
||
|
another flyer:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let us suppose a case. Suppose one of your journeymen goes out
|
||
|
and buys the following articles:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"1 pound of salt;
|
||
|
1 dozen eggs;
|
||
|
1 dozen pints of beer;
|
||
|
1 bushel of wheat;
|
||
|
1 tow-linen suit;
|
||
|
5 pounds of beef;
|
||
|
5 pounds of mutton.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The lot will cost him 32 cents. It takes him 32 working days
|
||
|
to earn the money--5 weeks and 2 days. Let him come to us and
|
||
|
work 32 days at _half_ the wages; he can buy all those things for
|
||
|
a shade under 14 1/2 cents; they will cost him a shade under 29
|
||
|
days' work, and he will have about half a week's wages over. Carry
|
||
|
it through the year; he would save nearly a week's wages every
|
||
|
two months, _your_ man nothing; thus saving five or six weeks' wages
|
||
|
in a year, your man not a cent. _Now_ I reckon you understand that
|
||
|
'high wages' and 'low wages' are phrases that don't mean anything
|
||
|
in the world until you find out which of them will _buy_ the most!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a crusher.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But, alas! it didn't crush. No, I had to give it up. What those
|
||
|
people valued was _high wages_; it didn't seem to be a matter of
|
||
|
any consequence to them whether the high wages would buy anything
|
||
|
or not. They stood for "protection," and swore by it, which was
|
||
|
reasonable enough, because interested parties had gulled them into
|
||
|
the notion that it was protection which had created their high
|
||
|
wages. I proved to them that in a quarter of a century their wages
|
||
|
had advanced but 30 per cent., while the cost of living had gone
|
||
|
up 100; and that with us, in a shorter time, wages had advanced
|
||
|
40 per cent. while the cost of living had gone steadily down. But
|
||
|
it didn't do any good. Nothing could unseat their strange beliefs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I was smarting under a sense of defeat. Undeserved defeat,
|
||
|
but what of that? That didn't soften the smart any. And to think
|
||
|
of the circumstances! the first statesman of the age, the capablest
|
||
|
man, the best-informed man in the entire world, the loftiest
|
||
|
uncrowned head that had moved through the clouds of any political
|
||
|
firmament for centuries, sitting here apparently defeated in
|
||
|
argument by an ignorant country blacksmith! And I could see that
|
||
|
those others were sorry for me--which made me blush till I could
|
||
|
smell my whiskers scorching. Put yourself in my place; feel as mean
|
||
|
as I did, as ashamed as I felt--wouldn't _you_ have struck below the
|
||
|
belt to get even? Yes, you would; it is simply human nature.
|
||
|
Well, that is what I did. I am not trying to justify it; I'm only
|
||
|
saying that I was mad, and _anybody_ would have done it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, when I make up my mind to hit a man, I don't plan out
|
||
|
a love-tap; no, that isn't my way; as long as I'm going to hit him
|
||
|
at all, I'm going to hit him a lifter. And I don't jump at him
|
||
|
all of a sudden, and risk making a blundering half-way business
|
||
|
of it; no, I get away off yonder to one side, and work up on him
|
||
|
gradually, so that he never suspects that I'm going to hit him
|
||
|
at all; and by and by, all in a flash, he's flat on his back, and
|
||
|
he can't tell for the life of him how it all happened. That is
|
||
|
the way I went for brother Dowley. I started to talking lazy and
|
||
|
comfortable, as if I was just talking to pass the time; and the
|
||
|
oldest man in the world couldn't have taken the bearings of my
|
||
|
starting place and guessed where I was going to fetch up:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Boys, there's a good many curious things about law, and custom,
|
||
|
and usage, and all that sort of thing, when you come to look at it;
|
||
|
yes, and about the drift and progress of human opinion and movement,
|
||
|
too. There are written laws--they perish; but there are also
|
||
|
unwritten laws--_they_ are eternal. Take the unwritten law of wages:
|
||
|
it says they've got to advance, little by little, straight through
|
||
|
the centuries. And notice how it works. We know what wages are
|
||
|
now, here and there and yonder; we strike an average, and say that's
|
||
|
the wages of to-day. We know what the wages were a hundred years
|
||
|
ago, and what they were two hundred years ago; that's as far back
|
||
|
as we can get, but it suffices to give us the law of progress,
|
||
|
the measure and rate of the periodical augmentation; and so, without
|
||
|
a document to help us, we can come pretty close to determining
|
||
|
what the wages were three and four and five hundred years ago.
|
||
|
Good, so far. Do we stop there? No. We stop looking backward;
|
||
|
we face around and apply the law to the future. My friends, I can
|
||
|
tell you what people's wages are going to be at any date in the
|
||
|
future you want to know, for hundreds and hundreds of years."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, goodman, what!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. In seven hundred years wages will have risen to six times
|
||
|
what they are now, here in your region, and farm hands will be
|
||
|
allowed 3 cents a day, and mechanics 6."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would't I might die now and live then!" interrupted Smug, the
|
||
|
wheelwright, with a fine avaricious glow in his eye.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that isn't all; they'll get their board besides--such as it is:
|
||
|
it won't bloat them. Two hundred and fifty years later--pay attention
|
||
|
now--a mechanic's wages will be--mind you, this is law, not
|
||
|
guesswork; a mechanic's wages will then be _twenty_ cents a day!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a general gasp of awed astonishment, Dickon the mason
|
||
|
murmured, with raised eyes and hands:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"More than three weeks' pay for one day's work!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Riches!--of a truth, yes, riches!" muttered Marco, his breath
|
||
|
coming quick and short, with excitement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wages will keep on rising, little by little, little by little,
|
||
|
as steadily as a tree grows, and at the end of three hundred and
|
||
|
forty years more there'll be at least _one_ country where the
|
||
|
mechanic's average wage will be _two hundred_ cents a day!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It knocked them absolutely dumb! Not a man of them could get
|
||
|
his breath for upwards of two minutes. Then the coal-burner
|
||
|
said prayerfully:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Might I but live to see it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is the income of an earl!" said Smug.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An earl, say ye?" said Dowley; "ye could say more than that and
|
||
|
speak no lie; there's no earl in the realm of Bagdemagus that hath
|
||
|
an income like to that. Income of an earl--mf! it's the income
|
||
|
of an angel!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, then, that is what is going to happen as regards wages.
|
||
|
In that remote day, that man will earn, with _one_ week's work,
|
||
|
that bill of goods which it takes you upwards of _fifty_ weeks to
|
||
|
earn now. Some other pretty surprising things are going to happen,
|
||
|
too. Brother Dowley, who is it that determines, every spring,
|
||
|
what the particular wage of each kind of mechanic, laborer, and
|
||
|
servant shall be for that year?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sometimes the courts, sometimes the town council; but most of all,
|
||
|
the magistrate. Ye may say, in general terms, it is the magistrate
|
||
|
that fixes the wages."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Doesn't ask any of those poor devils to _help_ him fix their wages
|
||
|
for them, does he?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hm! That _were_ an idea! The master that's to pay him the money
|
||
|
is the one that's rightly concerned in that matter, ye will notice."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--but I thought the other man might have some little trifle
|
||
|
at stake in it, too; and even his wife and children, poor creatures.
|
||
|
The masters are these: nobles, rich men, the prosperous generally.
|
||
|
These few, who do no work, determine what pay the vast hive shall
|
||
|
have who _do_ work. You see? They're a 'combine'--a trade union,
|
||
|
to coin a new phrase--who band themselves together to force their
|
||
|
lowly brother to take what they choose to give. Thirteen hundred
|
||
|
years hence--so says the unwritten law--the 'combine' will be the
|
||
|
other way, and then how these fine people's posterity will fume
|
||
|
and fret and grit their teeth over the insolent tyranny of trade
|
||
|
unions! Yes, indeed! the magistrate will tranquilly arrange the
|
||
|
wages from now clear away down into the nineteenth century; and
|
||
|
then all of a sudden the wage-earner will consider that a couple
|
||
|
of thousand years or so is enough of this one-sided sort of thing;
|
||
|
and he will rise up and take a hand in fixing his wages himself.
|
||
|
Ah, he will have a long and bitter account of wrong and humiliation
|
||
|
to settle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do ye believe--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That he actually will help to fix his own wages? Yes, indeed.
|
||
|
And he will be strong and able, then."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Brave times, brave times, of a truth!" sneered the prosperous smith.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh,--and there's another detail. In that day, a master may hire
|
||
|
a man for only just one day, or one week, or one month at a time,
|
||
|
if he wants to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's true. Moreover, a magistrate won't be able to force a man
|
||
|
to work for a master a whole year on a stretch whether the man
|
||
|
wants to or not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will there be _no_ law or sense in that day?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Both of them, Dowley. In that day a man will be his own property,
|
||
|
not the property of magistrate and master. And he can leave town
|
||
|
whenever he wants to, if the wages don't suit him!--and they can't
|
||
|
put him in the pillory for it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perdition catch such an age!" shouted Dowley, in strong indignation.
|
||
|
"An age of dogs, an age barren of reverence for superiors and
|
||
|
respect for authority! The pillory--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, wait, brother; say no good word for that institution. I think
|
||
|
the pillory ought to be abolished."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A most strange idea. Why?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I'll tell you why. Is a man ever put in the pillory for
|
||
|
a capital crime?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it right to condemn a man to a slight punishment for a small
|
||
|
offense and then kill him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no answer. I had scored my first point! For the first
|
||
|
time, the smith wasn't up and ready. The company noticed it.
|
||
|
Good effect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You don't answer, brother. You were about to glorify the pillory
|
||
|
a while ago, and shed some pity on a future age that isn't going
|
||
|
to use it. I think the pillory ought to be abolished. What
|
||
|
usually happens when a poor fellow is put in the pillory for some
|
||
|
little offense that didn't amount to anything in the world? The
|
||
|
mob try to have some fun with him, don't they?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They begin by clodding him; and they laugh themselves to pieces
|
||
|
to see him try to dodge one clod and get hit with another?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then they throw dead cats at him, don't they?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, suppose he has a few personal enemies in that mob
|
||
|
and here and there a man or a woman with a secret grudge against
|
||
|
him--and suppose especially that he is unpopular in the community,
|
||
|
for his pride, or his prosperity, or one thing or another--stones
|
||
|
and bricks take the place of clods and cats presently, don't they?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is no doubt of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As a rule he is crippled for life, isn't he?--jaws broken, teeth
|
||
|
smashed out?--or legs mutilated, gangrened, presently cut off?
|
||
|
--or an eye knocked out, maybe both eyes?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is true, God knoweth it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And if he is unpopular he can depend on _dying_, right there in
|
||
|
the stocks, can't he?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He surely can! One may not deny it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I take it none of _you_ are unpopular--by reason of pride or
|
||
|
insolence, or conspicuous prosperity, or any of those things that
|
||
|
excite envy and malice among the base scum of a village? _You_
|
||
|
wouldn't think it much of a risk to take a chance in the stocks?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Dowley winced, visibly. I judged he was hit. But he didn't betray
|
||
|
it by any spoken word. As for the others, they spoke out plainly,
|
||
|
and with strong feeling. They said they had seen enough of the
|
||
|
stocks to know what a man's chance in them was, and they would
|
||
|
never consent to enter them if they could compromise on a quick
|
||
|
death by hanging.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, to change the subject--for I think I've established my
|
||
|
point that the stocks ought to be abolished. I think some of our
|
||
|
laws are pretty unfair. For instance, if I do a thing which ought
|
||
|
to deliver me to the stocks, and you know I did it and yet keep
|
||
|
still and don't report me, _you_ will get the stocks if anybody
|
||
|
informs on you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, but that would serve you but right," said Dowley, "for you
|
||
|
_must_ inform. So saith the law."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The others coincided.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, all right, let it go, since you vote me down. But there's
|
||
|
one thing which certainly isn't fair. The magistrate fixes a
|
||
|
mechanic's wage at one cent a day, for instance. The law says that
|
||
|
if any master shall venture, even under utmost press of business,
|
||
|
to pay anything _over_ that cent a day, even for a single day, he
|
||
|
shall be both fined and pilloried for it; and whoever knows he did
|
||
|
it and doesn't inform, they also shall be fined and pilloried. Now
|
||
|
it seems to me unfair, Dowley, and a deadly peril to all of us,
|
||
|
that because you thoughtlessly confessed, a while ago, that within
|
||
|
a week you have paid a cent and fifteen mil--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Oh, I tell _you_ it was a smasher! You ought to have seen them to
|
||
|
go to pieces, the whole gang. I had just slipped up on poor
|
||
|
smiling and complacent Dowley so nice and easy and softly, that
|
||
|
he never suspected anything was going to happen till the blow
|
||
|
came crashing down and knocked him all to rags.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A fine effect. In fact, as fine as any I ever produced, with so
|
||
|
little time to work it up in.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I saw in a moment that I had overdone the thing a little.
|
||
|
I was expecting to scare them, but I wasn't expecting to scare
|
||
|
them to death. They were mighty near it, though. You see they
|
||
|
had been a whole lifetime learning to appreciate the pillory; and
|
||
|
to have that thing staring them in the face, and every one of them
|
||
|
distinctly at the mercy of me, a stranger, if I chose to go and
|
||
|
report--well, it was awful, and they couldn't seem to recover
|
||
|
from the shock, they couldn't seem to pull themselves together.
|
||
|
Pale, shaky, dumb, pitiful? Why, they weren't any better than
|
||
|
so many dead men. It was very uncomfortable. Of course, I thought
|
||
|
they would appeal to me to keep mum, and then we would shake hands,
|
||
|
and take a drink all round, and laugh it off, and there an end.
|
||
|
But no; you see I was an unknown person, among a cruelly oppressed
|
||
|
and suspicious people, a people always accustomed to having advantage
|
||
|
taken of their helplessness, and never expecting just or kind
|
||
|
treatment from any but their own families and very closest intimates.
|
||
|
Appeal to _me_ to be gentle, to be fair, to be generous? Of course,
|
||
|
they wanted to, but they couldn't dare.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXIV
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE YANKEE AND THE KING SOLD AS SLAVES
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, what had I better do? Nothing in a hurry, sure. I must
|
||
|
get up a diversion; anything to employ me while I could think,
|
||
|
and while these poor fellows could have a chance to come to life
|
||
|
again. There sat Marco, petrified in the act of trying to get
|
||
|
the hang of his miller-gun--turned to stone, just in the attitude
|
||
|
he was in when my pile-driver fell, the toy still gripped in his
|
||
|
unconscious fingers. So I took it from him and proposed to explain
|
||
|
its mystery. Mystery! a simple little thing like that; and yet it
|
||
|
was mysterious enough, for that race and that age.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I never saw such an awkward people, with machinery; you see, they
|
||
|
were totally unused to it. The miller-gun was a little double-barreled
|
||
|
tube of toughened glass, with a neat little trick of a spring
|
||
|
to it, which upon pressure would let a shot escape. But the shot
|
||
|
wouldn't hurt anybody, it would only drop into your hand. In the
|
||
|
gun were two sizes--wee mustard-seed shot, and another sort that
|
||
|
were several times larger. They were money. The mustard-seed
|
||
|
shot represented milrays, the larger ones mills. So the gun was
|
||
|
a purse; and very handy, too; you could pay out money in the dark
|
||
|
with it, with accuracy; and you could carry it in your mouth; or
|
||
|
in your vest pocket, if you had one. I made them of several sizes
|
||
|
--one size so large that it would carry the equivalent of a dollar.
|
||
|
Using shot for money was a good thing for the government; the metal
|
||
|
cost nothing, and the money couldn't be counterfeited, for I was
|
||
|
the only person in the kingdom who knew how to manage a shot tower.
|
||
|
"Paying the shot" soon came to be a common phrase. Yes, and I knew
|
||
|
it would still be passing men's lips, away down in the nineteenth
|
||
|
century, yet none would suspect how and when it originated.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king joined us, about this time, mightily refreshed by his nap,
|
||
|
and feeling good. Anything could make me nervous now, I was so
|
||
|
uneasy--for our lives were in danger; and so it worried me to
|
||
|
detect a complacent something in the king's eye which seemed to
|
||
|
indicate that he had been loading himself up for a performance
|
||
|
of some kind or other; confound it, why must he go and choose
|
||
|
such a time as this?
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was right. He began, straight off, in the most innocently
|
||
|
artful, and transparent, and lubberly way, to lead up to the
|
||
|
subject of agriculture. The cold sweat broke out all over me.
|
||
|
I wanted to whisper in his ear, "Man, we are in awful danger!
|
||
|
every moment is worth a principality till we get back these men's
|
||
|
confidence; _don't_ waste any of this golden time." But of course
|
||
|
I couldn't do it. Whisper to him? It would look as if we were
|
||
|
conspiring. So I had to sit there and look calm and pleasant while
|
||
|
the king stood over that dynamite mine and mooned along about his
|
||
|
damned onions and things. At first the tumult of my own thoughts,
|
||
|
summoned by the danger-signal and swarming to the rescue from
|
||
|
every quarter of my skull, kept up such a hurrah and confusion
|
||
|
and fifing and drumming that I couldn't take in a word; but
|
||
|
presently when my mob of gathering plans began to crystallize
|
||
|
and fall into position and form line of battle, a sort of order and
|
||
|
quiet ensued and I caught the boom of the king's batteries, as if
|
||
|
out of remote distance:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--were not the best way, methinks, albeit it is not to be denied
|
||
|
that authorities differ as concerning this point, some contending
|
||
|
that the onion is but an unwholesome berry when stricken early
|
||
|
from the tree--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The audience showed signs of life, and sought each other's eyes
|
||
|
in a surprised and troubled way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--whileas others do yet maintain, with much show of reason, that
|
||
|
this is not of necessity the case, instancing that plums and other
|
||
|
like cereals do be always dug in the unripe state--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The audience exhibited distinct distress; yes, and also fear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--yet are they clearly wholesome, the more especially when one
|
||
|
doth assuage the asperities of their nature by admixture of the
|
||
|
tranquilizing juice of the wayward cabbage--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The wild light of terror began to glow in these men's eyes, and
|
||
|
one of them muttered, "These be errors, every one--God hath surely
|
||
|
smitten the mind of this farmer." I was in miserable apprehension;
|
||
|
I sat upon thorns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--and further instancing the known truth that in the case of
|
||
|
animals, the young, which may be called the green fruit of the
|
||
|
creature, is the better, all confessing that when a goat is ripe,
|
||
|
his fur doth heat and sore engame his flesh, the which defect,
|
||
|
taken in connection with his several rancid habits, and fulsome
|
||
|
appetites, and godless attitudes of mind, and bilious quality
|
||
|
of morals--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
They rose and went for him! With a fierce shout, "The one would
|
||
|
betray us, the other is mad! Kill them! Kill them!" they flung
|
||
|
themselves upon us. What joy flamed up in the king's eye! He
|
||
|
might be lame in agriculture, but this kind of thing was just in
|
||
|
his line. He had been fasting long, he was hungry for a fight.
|
||
|
He hit the blacksmith a crack under the jaw that lifted him clear
|
||
|
off his feet and stretched him flat on his back. "St. George for
|
||
|
Britain!" and he downed the wheelwright. The mason was big, but
|
||
|
I laid him out like nothing. The three gathered themselves up and
|
||
|
came again; went down again; came again; and kept on repeating
|
||
|
this, with native British pluck, until they were battered to jelly,
|
||
|
reeling with exhaustion, and so blind that they couldn't tell us
|
||
|
from each other; and yet they kept right on, hammering away with
|
||
|
what might was left in them. Hammering each other--for we stepped
|
||
|
aside and looked on while they rolled, and struggled, and gouged,
|
||
|
and pounded, and bit, with the strict and wordless attention to
|
||
|
business of so many bulldogs. We looked on without apprehension,
|
||
|
for they were fast getting past ability to go for help against us,
|
||
|
and the arena was far enough from the public road to be safe
|
||
|
from intrusion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, while they were gradually playing out, it suddenly occurred
|
||
|
to me to wonder what had become of Marco. I looked around; he
|
||
|
was nowhere to be seen. Oh, but this was ominous! I pulled the
|
||
|
king's sleeve, and we glided away and rushed for the hut. No Marco
|
||
|
there, no Phyllis there! They had gone to the road for help, sure.
|
||
|
I told the king to give his heels wings, and I would explain later.
|
||
|
We made good time across the open ground, and as we darted into
|
||
|
the shelter of the wood I glanced back and saw a mob of excited
|
||
|
peasants swarm into view, with Marco and his wife at their head.
|
||
|
They were making a world of noise, but that couldn't hurt anybody;
|
||
|
the wood was dense, and as soon as we were well into its depths
|
||
|
we would take to a tree and let them whistle. Ah, but then came
|
||
|
another sound--dogs! Yes, that was quite another matter. It
|
||
|
magnified our contract--we must find running water.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We tore along at a good gait, and soon left the sounds far behind
|
||
|
and modified to a murmur. We struck a stream and darted into it.
|
||
|
We waded swiftly down it, in the dim forest light, for as much
|
||
|
as three hundred yards, and then came across an oak with a great
|
||
|
bough sticking out over the water. We climbed up on this bough,
|
||
|
and began to work our way along it to the body of the tree; now
|
||
|
we began to hear those sounds more plainly; so the mob had struck
|
||
|
our trail. For a while the sounds approached pretty fast. And
|
||
|
then for another while they didn't. No doubt the dogs had found
|
||
|
the place where we had entered the stream, and were now waltzing
|
||
|
up and down the shores trying to pick up the trail again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we were snugly lodged in the tree and curtained with foliage,
|
||
|
the king was satisfied, but I was doubtful. I believed we could
|
||
|
crawl along a branch and get into the next tree, and I judged it
|
||
|
worth while to try. We tried it, and made a success of it, though
|
||
|
the king slipped, at the junction, and came near failing to connect.
|
||
|
We got comfortable lodgment and satisfactory concealment among
|
||
|
the foliage, and then we had nothing to do but listen to the hunt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently we heard it coming--and coming on the jump, too; yes,
|
||
|
and down both sides of the stream. Louder--louder--next minute
|
||
|
it swelled swiftly up into a roar of shoutings, barkings, tramplings,
|
||
|
and swept by like a cyclone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was afraid that the overhanging branch would suggest something
|
||
|
to them," said I, "but I don't mind the disappointment. Come,
|
||
|
my liege, it were well that we make good use of our time. We've
|
||
|
flanked them. Dark is coming on, presently. If we can cross the
|
||
|
stream and get a good start, and borrow a couple of horses from
|
||
|
somebody's pasture to use for a few hours, we shall be safe enough."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We started down, and got nearly to the lowest limb, when we seemed
|
||
|
to hear the hunt returning. We stopped to listen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," said I, "they're baffled, they've given it up, they're on
|
||
|
their way home. We will climb back to our roost again, and let
|
||
|
them go by."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So we climbed back. The king listened a moment and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They still search--I wit the sign. We did best to abide."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was right. He knew more about hunting than I did. The noise
|
||
|
approached steadily, but not with a rush. The king said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They reason that we were advantaged by no parlous start of them,
|
||
|
and being on foot are as yet no mighty way from where we took
|
||
|
the water."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, sire, that is about it, I am afraid, though I was hoping
|
||
|
better things."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The noise drew nearer and nearer, and soon the van was drifting
|
||
|
under us, on both sides of the water. A voice called a halt from
|
||
|
the other bank, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An they were so minded, they could get to yon tree by this branch
|
||
|
that overhangs, and yet not touch ground. Ye will do well to send
|
||
|
a man up it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, that we will do!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was obliged to admire my cuteness in foreseeing this very thing
|
||
|
and swapping trees to beat it. But, don't you know, there are
|
||
|
some things that can beat smartness and foresight? Awkwardness
|
||
|
and stupidity can. The best swordsman in the world doesn't need
|
||
|
to fear the second best swordsman in the world; no, the person
|
||
|
for him to be afraid of is some ignorant antagonist who has never
|
||
|
had a sword in his hand before; he doesn't do the thing he ought
|
||
|
to do, and so the expert isn't prepared for him; he does the thing
|
||
|
he ought not to do; and often it catches the expert out and ends
|
||
|
him on the spot. Well, how could I, with all my gifts, make any
|
||
|
valuable preparation against a near-sighted, cross-eyed, pudding-headed
|
||
|
clown who would aim himself at the wrong tree and hit the right
|
||
|
one? And that is what he did. He went for the wrong tree, which
|
||
|
was, of course, the right one by mistake, and up he started.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Matters were serious now. We remained still, and awaited developments.
|
||
|
The peasant toiled his difficult way up. The king raised himself
|
||
|
up and stood; he made a leg ready, and when the comer's head
|
||
|
arrived in reach of it there was a dull thud, and down went the man
|
||
|
floundering to the ground. There was a wild outbreak of anger
|
||
|
below, and the mob swarmed in from all around, and there we were
|
||
|
treed, and prisoners. Another man started up; the bridging bough
|
||
|
was detected, and a volunteer started up the tree that furnished
|
||
|
the bridge. The king ordered me to play Horatius and keep the
|
||
|
bridge. For a while the enemy came thick and fast; but no matter,
|
||
|
the head man of each procession always got a buffet that dislodged
|
||
|
him as soon as he came in reach. The king's spirits rose, his joy
|
||
|
was limitless. He said that if nothing occurred to mar the prospect
|
||
|
we should have a beautiful night, for on this line of tactics we
|
||
|
could hold the tree against the whole country-side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, the mob soon came to that conclusion themselves; wherefore
|
||
|
they called off the assault and began to debate other plans.
|
||
|
They had no weapons, but there were plenty of stones, and stones
|
||
|
might answer. We had no objections. A stone might possibly
|
||
|
penetrate to us once in a while, but it wasn't very likely; we were
|
||
|
well protected by boughs and foliage, and were not visible from
|
||
|
any good aiming point. If they would but waste half an hour in
|
||
|
stone-throwing, the dark would come to our help. We were feeling
|
||
|
very well satisfied. We could smile; almost laugh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But we didn't; which was just as well, for we should have been
|
||
|
interrupted. Before the stones had been raging through the leaves
|
||
|
and bouncing from the boughs fifteen minutes, we began to notice
|
||
|
a smell. A couple of sniffs of it was enough of an explanation
|
||
|
--it was smoke! Our game was up at last. We recognized that. When
|
||
|
smoke invites you, you have to come. They raised their pile of
|
||
|
dry brush and damp weeds higher and higher, and when they saw
|
||
|
the thick cloud begin to roll up and smother the tree, they broke
|
||
|
out in a storm of joy-clamors. I got enough breath to say:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Proceed, my liege; after you is manners."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king gasped:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Follow me down, and then back thyself against one side of the
|
||
|
trunk, and leave me the other. Then will we fight. Let each pile
|
||
|
his dead according to his own fashion and taste."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then he descended, barking and coughing, and I followed. I struck
|
||
|
the ground an instant after him; we sprang to our appointed places,
|
||
|
and began to give and take with all our might. The powwow and
|
||
|
racket were prodigious; it was a tempest of riot and confusion and
|
||
|
thick-falling blows. Suddenly some horsemen tore into the midst
|
||
|
of the crowd, and a voice shouted:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hold--or ye are dead men!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
How good it sounded! The owner of the voice bore all the marks of
|
||
|
a gentleman: picturesque and costly raiment, the aspect of command,
|
||
|
a hard countenance, with complexion and features marred by dissipation.
|
||
|
The mob fell humbly back, like so many spaniels. The gentleman
|
||
|
inspected us critically, then said sharply to the peasants:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What are ye doing to these people?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They be madmen, worshipful sir, that have come wandering we know
|
||
|
not whence, and--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye know not whence? Do ye pretend ye know them not?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Most honored sir, we speak but the truth. They are strangers
|
||
|
and unknown to any in this region; and they be the most violent
|
||
|
and bloodthirsty madmen that ever--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Peace! Ye know not what ye say. They are not mad. Who are ye?
|
||
|
And whence are ye? Explain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We are but peaceful strangers, sir," I said, "and traveling upon
|
||
|
our own concerns. We are from a far country, and unacquainted
|
||
|
here. We have purposed no harm; and yet but for your brave
|
||
|
interference and protection these people would have killed us.
|
||
|
As you have divined, sir, we are not mad; neither are we violent
|
||
|
or bloodthirsty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The gentleman turned to his retinue and said calmly: "Lash me
|
||
|
these animals to their kennels!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The mob vanished in an instant; and after them plunged the horsemen,
|
||
|
laying about them with their whips and pitilessly riding down such
|
||
|
as were witless enough to keep the road instead of taking to the
|
||
|
bush. The shrieks and supplications presently died away in the
|
||
|
distance, and soon the horsemen began to straggle back. Meantime
|
||
|
the gentleman had been questioning us more closely, but had dug
|
||
|
no particulars out of us. We were lavish of recognition of the
|
||
|
service he was doing us, but we revealed nothing more than that we
|
||
|
were friendless strangers from a far country. When the escort were
|
||
|
all returned, the gentleman said to one of his servants:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Bring the led-horses and mount these people."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, my lord."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were placed toward the rear, among the servants. We traveled
|
||
|
pretty fast, and finally drew rein some time after dark at a
|
||
|
roadside inn some ten or twelve miles from the scene of our
|
||
|
troubles. My lord went immediately to his room, after ordering
|
||
|
his supper, and we saw no more of him. At dawn in the morning
|
||
|
we breakfasted and made ready to start.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My lord's chief attendant sauntered forward at that moment with
|
||
|
indolent grace, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye have said ye should continue upon this road, which is our
|
||
|
direction likewise; wherefore my lord, the earl Grip, hath given
|
||
|
commandment that ye retain the horses and ride, and that certain
|
||
|
of us ride with ye a twenty mile to a fair town that hight Cambenet,
|
||
|
whenso ye shall be out of peril."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We could do nothing less than express our thanks and accept the
|
||
|
offer. We jogged along, six in the party, at a moderate and
|
||
|
comfortable gait, and in conversation learned that my lord Grip
|
||
|
was a very great personage in his own region, which lay a day's
|
||
|
journey beyond Cambenet. We loitered to such a degree that it was
|
||
|
near the middle of the forenoon when we entered the market square
|
||
|
of the town. We dismounted, and left our thanks once more for
|
||
|
my lord, and then approached a crowd assembled in the center of
|
||
|
the square, to see what might be the object of interest. It was the
|
||
|
remnant of that old peregrinating band of slaves! So they had
|
||
|
been dragging their chains about, all this weary time. That poor
|
||
|
husband was gone, and also many others; and some few purchases
|
||
|
had been added to the gang. The king was not interested, and
|
||
|
wanted to move along, but I was absorbed, and full of pity. I could
|
||
|
not take my eyes away from these worn and wasted wrecks of humanity.
|
||
|
There they sat, grounded upon the ground, silent, uncomplaining,
|
||
|
with bowed heads, a pathetic sight. And by hideous contrast, a
|
||
|
redundant orator was making a speech to another gathering not thirty
|
||
|
steps away, in fulsome laudation of "our glorious British liberties!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was boiling. I had forgotten I was a plebeian, I was remembering
|
||
|
I was a man. Cost what it might, I would mount that rostrum and--
|
||
|
|
||
|
Click! the king and I were handcuffed together! Our companions,
|
||
|
those servants, had done it; my lord Grip stood looking on. The
|
||
|
king burst out in a fury, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What meaneth this ill-mannered jest?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
My lord merely said to his head miscreant, coolly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Put up the slaves and sell them!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
_Slaves!_ The word had a new sound--and how unspeakably awful! The
|
||
|
king lifted his manacles and brought them down with a deadly force;
|
||
|
but my lord was out of the way when they arrived. A dozen of
|
||
|
the rascal's servants sprang forward, and in a moment we were
|
||
|
helpless, with our hands bound behind us. We so loudly and so
|
||
|
earnestly proclaimed ourselves freemen, that we got the interested
|
||
|
attention of that liberty-mouthing orator and his patriotic crowd,
|
||
|
and they gathered about us and assumed a very determined attitude.
|
||
|
The orator said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If, indeed, ye are freemen, ye have nought to fear--the God-given
|
||
|
liberties of Britain are about ye for your shield and shelter!
|
||
|
(Applause.) Ye shall soon see. Bring forth your proofs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What proofs?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Proof that ye are freemen."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Ah--I remembered! I came to myself; I said nothing. But the
|
||
|
king stormed out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thou'rt insane, man. It were better, and more in reason, that
|
||
|
this thief and scoundrel here prove that we are _not_ freemen."
|
||
|
|
||
|
You see, he knew his own laws just as other people so often know
|
||
|
the laws; by words, not by effects. They take a _meaning_, and get
|
||
|
to be very vivid, when you come to apply them to yourself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All hands shook their heads and looked disappointed; some turned
|
||
|
away, no longer interested. The orator said--and this time in the
|
||
|
tones of business, not of sentiment:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An ye do not know your country's laws, it were time ye learned
|
||
|
them. Ye are strangers to us; ye will not deny that. Ye may be
|
||
|
freemen, we do not deny that; but also ye may be slaves. The law
|
||
|
is clear: it doth not require the claimant to prove ye are slaves,
|
||
|
it requireth you to prove ye are not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear sir, give us only time to send to Astolat; or give us only
|
||
|
time to send to the Valley of Holiness--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Peace, good man, these are extraordinary requests, and you may
|
||
|
not hope to have them granted. It would cost much time, and would
|
||
|
unwarrantably inconvenience your master--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Master_, idiot!" stormed the king. "I have no master, I myself
|
||
|
am the m--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Silence, for God's sake!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I got the words out in time to stop the king. We were in trouble
|
||
|
enough already; it could not help us any to give these people
|
||
|
the notion that we were lunatics.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There is no use in stringing out the details. The earl put us up
|
||
|
and sold us at auction. This same infernal law had existed in
|
||
|
our own South in my own time, more than thirteen hundred years
|
||
|
later, and under it hundreds of freemen who could not prove that
|
||
|
they were freemen had been sold into lifelong slavery without
|
||
|
the circumstance making any particular impression upon me; but the
|
||
|
minute law and the auction block came into my personal experience,
|
||
|
a thing which had been merely improper before became suddenly
|
||
|
hellish. Well, that's the way we are made.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, we were sold at auction, like swine. In a big town and an
|
||
|
active market we should have brought a good price; but this place
|
||
|
was utterly stagnant and so we sold at a figure which makes me
|
||
|
ashamed, every time I think of it. The King of England brought
|
||
|
seven dollars, and his prime minister nine; whereas the king was
|
||
|
easily worth twelve dollars and I as easily worth fifteen. But
|
||
|
that is the way things always go; if you force a sale on a dull
|
||
|
market, I don't care what the property is, you are going to make
|
||
|
a poor business of it, and you can make up your mind to it. If
|
||
|
the earl had had wit enough to--
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, there is no occasion for my working my sympathies up
|
||
|
on his account. Let him go, for the present; I took his number,
|
||
|
so to speak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The slave-dealer bought us both, and hitched us onto that long
|
||
|
chain of his, and we constituted the rear of his procession. We
|
||
|
took up our line of march and passed out of Cambenet at noon;
|
||
|
and it seemed to me unaccountably strange and odd that the King
|
||
|
of England and his chief minister, marching manacled and fettered
|
||
|
and yoked, in a slave convoy, could move by all manner of idle men
|
||
|
and women, and under windows where sat the sweet and the lovely,
|
||
|
and yet never attract a curious eye, never provoke a single remark.
|
||
|
Dear, dear, it only shows that there is nothing diviner about a king
|
||
|
than there is about a tramp, after all. He is just a cheap and
|
||
|
hollow artificiality when you don't know he is a king. But reveal
|
||
|
his quality, and dear me it takes your very breath away to look
|
||
|
at him. I reckon we are all fools. Born so, no doubt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXV
|
||
|
|
||
|
A PITIFUL INCIDENT
|
||
|
|
||
|
It's a world of surprises. The king brooded; this was natural.
|
||
|
What would he brood about, should you say? Why, about the prodigious
|
||
|
nature of his fall, of course--from the loftiest place in the world
|
||
|
to the lowest; from the most illustrious station in the world to
|
||
|
the obscurest; from the grandest vocation among men to the basest.
|
||
|
No, I take my oath that the thing that graveled him most, to start
|
||
|
with, was not this, but the price he had fetched! He couldn't
|
||
|
seem to get over that seven dollars. Well, it stunned me so, when
|
||
|
I first found it out, that I couldn't believe it; it didn't seem
|
||
|
natural. But as soon as my mental sight cleared and I got a right
|
||
|
focus on it, I saw I was mistaken; it _was_ natural. For this
|
||
|
reason: a king is a mere artificiality, and so a king's feelings,
|
||
|
like the impulses of an automatic doll, are mere artificialities;
|
||
|
but as a man, he is a reality, and his feelings, as a man, are
|
||
|
real, not phantoms. It shames the average man to be valued below
|
||
|
his own estimate of his worth, and the king certainly wasn't
|
||
|
anything more than an average man, if he was up that high.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Confound him, he wearied me with arguments to show that in anything
|
||
|
like a fair market he would have fetched twenty-five dollars,
|
||
|
sure--a thing which was plainly nonsense, and full or the baldest
|
||
|
conceit; I wasn't worth it myself. But it was tender ground for
|
||
|
me to argue on. In fact, I had to simply shirk argument and do
|
||
|
the diplomatic instead. I had to throw conscience aside, and
|
||
|
brazenly concede that he ought to have brought twenty-five dollars;
|
||
|
whereas I was quite well aware that in all the ages, the world had
|
||
|
never seen a king that was worth half the money, and during the
|
||
|
next thirteen centuries wouldn't see one that was worth the fourth
|
||
|
of it. Yes, he tired me. If he began to talk about the crops;
|
||
|
or about the recent weather; or about the condition of politics;
|
||
|
or about dogs, or cats, or morals, or theology--no matter what
|
||
|
--I sighed, for I knew what was coming; he was going to get out of it
|
||
|
a palliation of that tiresome seven-dollar sale. Wherever we
|
||
|
halted where there was a crowd, he would give me a look which
|
||
|
said plainly: "if that thing could be tried over again now, with
|
||
|
this kind of folk, you would see a different result." Well, when
|
||
|
he was first sold, it secretly tickled me to see him go for seven
|
||
|
dollars; but before he was done with his sweating and worrying
|
||
|
I wished he had fetched a hundred. The thing never got a chance
|
||
|
to die, for every day, at one place or another, possible purchasers
|
||
|
looked us over, and, as often as any other way, their comment on
|
||
|
the king was something like this:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here's a two-dollar-and-a-half chump with a thirty-dollar style.
|
||
|
Pity but style was marketable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last this sort of remark produced an evil result. Our owner
|
||
|
was a practical person and he perceived that this defect must be
|
||
|
mended if he hoped to find a purchaser for the king. So he went
|
||
|
to work to take the style out of his sacred majesty. I could have
|
||
|
given the man some valuable advice, but I didn't; you mustn't
|
||
|
volunteer advice to a slave-driver unless you want to damage
|
||
|
the cause you are arguing for. I had found it a sufficiently
|
||
|
difficult job to reduce the king's style to a peasant's style,
|
||
|
even when he was a willing and anxious pupil; now then, to undertake
|
||
|
to reduce the king's style to a slave's style--and by force--go to!
|
||
|
it was a stately contract. Never mind the details--it will save me
|
||
|
trouble to let you imagine them. I will only remark that at the
|
||
|
end of a week there was plenty of evidence that lash and club
|
||
|
and fist had done their work well; the king's body was a sight
|
||
|
to see--and to weep over; but his spirit?--why, it wasn't even
|
||
|
phased. Even that dull clod of a slave-driver was able to see
|
||
|
that there can be such a thing as a slave who will remain a man
|
||
|
till he dies; whose bones you can break, but whose manhood you
|
||
|
can't. This man found that from his first effort down to his
|
||
|
latest, he couldn't ever come within reach of the king, but the
|
||
|
king was ready to plunge for him, and did it. So he gave up
|
||
|
at last, and left the king in possession of his style unimpaired.
|
||
|
The fact is, the king was a good deal more than a king, he was
|
||
|
a man; and when a man is a man, you can't knock it out of him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had a rough time for a month, tramping to and fro in the earth,
|
||
|
and suffering. And what Englishman was the most interested in
|
||
|
the slavery question by that time? His grace the king! Yes; from
|
||
|
being the most indifferent, he was become the most interested.
|
||
|
He was become the bitterest hater of the institution I had ever
|
||
|
heard talk. And so I ventured to ask once more a question which
|
||
|
I had asked years before and had gotten such a sharp answer that
|
||
|
I had not thought it prudent to meddle in the matter further.
|
||
|
Would he abolish slavery?
|
||
|
|
||
|
His answer was as sharp as before, but it was music this time;
|
||
|
I shouldn't ever wish to hear pleasanter, though the profanity
|
||
|
was not good, being awkwardly put together, and with the crash-word
|
||
|
almost in the middle instead of at the end, where, of course, it
|
||
|
ought to have been.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was ready and willing to get free now; I hadn't wanted to get
|
||
|
free any sooner. No, I cannot quite say that. I had wanted to,
|
||
|
but I had not been willing to take desperate chances, and had
|
||
|
always dissuaded the king from them. But now--ah, it was a new
|
||
|
atmosphere! Liberty would be worth any cost that might be put
|
||
|
upon it now. I set about a plan, and was straightway charmed
|
||
|
with it. It would require time, yes, and patience, too, a great
|
||
|
deal of both. One could invent quicker ways, and fully as sure
|
||
|
ones; but none that would be as picturesque as this; none that
|
||
|
could be made so dramatic. And so I was not going to give this
|
||
|
one up. It might delay us months, but no matter, I would carry
|
||
|
it out or break something.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now and then we had an adventure. One night we were overtaken
|
||
|
by a snow-storm while still a mile from the village we were making
|
||
|
for. Almost instantly we were shut up as in a fog, the driving
|
||
|
snow was so thick. You couldn't see a thing, and we were soon
|
||
|
lost. The slave-driver lashed us desperately, for he saw ruin
|
||
|
before him, but his lashings only made matters worse, for they
|
||
|
drove us further from the road and from likelihood of succor.
|
||
|
So we had to stop at last and slump down in the snow where we
|
||
|
were. The storm continued until toward midnight, then ceased.
|
||
|
By this time two of our feebler men and three of our women were
|
||
|
dead, and others past moving and threatened with death. Our
|
||
|
master was nearly beside himself. He stirred up the living, and
|
||
|
made us stand, jump, slap ourselves, to restore our circulation,
|
||
|
and he helped as well as he could with his whip.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now came a diversion. We heard shrieks and yells, and soon a
|
||
|
woman came running and crying; and seeing our group, she flung
|
||
|
herself into our midst and begged for protection. A mob of people
|
||
|
came tearing after her, some with torches, and they said she was a
|
||
|
witch who had caused several cows to die by a strange disease,
|
||
|
and practiced her arts by help of a devil in the form of a black
|
||
|
cat. This poor woman had been stoned until she hardly looked
|
||
|
human, she was so battered and bloody. The mob wanted to burn her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, now, what do you suppose our master did? When we closed
|
||
|
around this poor creature to shelter her, he saw his chance. He
|
||
|
said, burn her here, or they shouldn't have her at all. Imagine
|
||
|
that! They were willing. They fastened her to a post; they
|
||
|
brought wood and piled it about her; they applied the torch while
|
||
|
she shrieked and pleaded and strained her two young daughters
|
||
|
to her breast; and our brute, with a heart solely for business,
|
||
|
lashed us into position about the stake and warmed us into life
|
||
|
and commercial value by the same fire which took away the innocent
|
||
|
life of that poor harmless mother. That was the sort of master we
|
||
|
had. I took _his_ number. That snow-storm cost him nine of his
|
||
|
flock; and he was more brutal to us than ever, after that, for
|
||
|
many days together, he was so enraged over his loss.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had adventures all along. One day we ran into a procession.
|
||
|
And such a procession! All the riffraff of the kingdom seemed
|
||
|
to be comprehended in it; and all drunk at that. In the van was
|
||
|
a cart with a coffin in it, and on the coffin sat a comely young
|
||
|
girl of about eighteen suckling a baby, which she squeezed to her
|
||
|
breast in a passion of love every little while, and every little
|
||
|
while wiped from its face the tears which her eyes rained down
|
||
|
upon it; and always the foolish little thing smiled up at her,
|
||
|
happy and content, kneading her breast with its dimpled fat hand,
|
||
|
which she patted and fondled right over her breaking heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Men and women, boys and girls, trotted along beside or after
|
||
|
the cart, hooting, shouting profane and ribald remarks, singing
|
||
|
snatches of foul song, skipping, dancing--a very holiday of
|
||
|
hellions, a sickening sight. We had struck a suburb of London,
|
||
|
outside the walls, and this was a sample of one sort of London
|
||
|
society. Our master secured a good place for us near the gallows.
|
||
|
A priest was in attendance, and he helped the girl climb up, and
|
||
|
said comforting words to her, and made the under-sheriff provide
|
||
|
a stool for her. Then he stood there by her on the gallows, and
|
||
|
for a moment looked down upon the mass of upturned faces at his
|
||
|
feet, then out over the solid pavement of heads that stretched away
|
||
|
on every side occupying the vacancies far and near, and then began
|
||
|
to tell the story of the case. And there was pity in his voice
|
||
|
--how seldom a sound that was in that ignorant and savage land!
|
||
|
I remember every detail of what he said, except the words he said
|
||
|
it in; and so I change it into my own words:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Law is intended to mete out justice. Sometimes it fails. This
|
||
|
cannot be helped. We can only grieve, and be resigned, and pray
|
||
|
for the soul of him who falls unfairly by the arm of the law, and
|
||
|
that his fellows may be few. A law sends this poor young thing
|
||
|
to death--and it is right. But another law had placed her where
|
||
|
she must commit her crime or starve with her child--and before God
|
||
|
that law is responsible for both her crime and her ignominious death!
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A little while ago this young thing, this child of eighteen years,
|
||
|
was as happy a wife and mother as any in England; and her lips
|
||
|
were blithe with song, which is the native speech of glad and
|
||
|
innocent hearts. Her young husband was as happy as she; for he was
|
||
|
doing his whole duty, he worked early and late at his handicraft,
|
||
|
his bread was honest bread well and fairly earned, he was prospering,
|
||
|
he was furnishing shelter and sustenance to his family, he was
|
||
|
adding his mite to the wealth of the nation. By consent of a
|
||
|
treacherous law, instant destruction fell upon this holy home and
|
||
|
swept it away! That young husband was waylaid and impressed,
|
||
|
and sent to sea. The wife knew nothing of it. She sought him
|
||
|
everywhere, she moved the hardest hearts with the supplications
|
||
|
of her tears, the broken eloquence of her despair. Weeks dragged
|
||
|
by, she watching, waiting, hoping, her mind going slowly to wreck
|
||
|
under the burden of her misery. Little by little all her small
|
||
|
possessions went for food. When she could no longer pay her rent,
|
||
|
they turned her out of doors. She begged, while she had strength;
|
||
|
when she was starving at last, and her milk failing, she stole a
|
||
|
piece of linen cloth of the value of a fourth part of a cent,
|
||
|
thinking to sell it and save her child. But she was seen by the
|
||
|
owner of the cloth. She was put in jail and brought to trial.
|
||
|
The man testified to the facts. A plea was made for her, and her
|
||
|
sorrowful story was told in her behalf. She spoke, too, by
|
||
|
permission, and said she did steal the cloth, but that her mind
|
||
|
was so disordered of late by trouble that when she was overborne
|
||
|
with hunger all acts, criminal or other, swam meaningless through
|
||
|
her brain and she knew nothing rightly, except that she was so
|
||
|
hungry! For a moment all were touched, and there was disposition
|
||
|
to deal mercifully with her, seeing that she was so young and
|
||
|
friendless, and her case so piteous, and the law that robbed her
|
||
|
of her support to blame as being the first and only cause of her
|
||
|
transgression; but the prosecuting officer replied that whereas
|
||
|
these things were all true, and most pitiful as well, still there
|
||
|
was much small theft in these days, and mistimed mercy here would
|
||
|
be a danger to property--oh, my God, is there no property in ruined
|
||
|
homes, and orphaned babes, and broken hearts that British law
|
||
|
holds precious!--and so he must require sentence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When the judge put on his black cap, the owner of the stolen
|
||
|
linen rose trembling up, his lip quivering, his face as gray as
|
||
|
ashes; and when the awful words came, he cried out, 'Oh, poor
|
||
|
child, poor child, I did not know it was death!' and fell as a
|
||
|
tree falls. When they lifted him up his reason was gone; before
|
||
|
the sun was set, he had taken his own life. A kindly man; a man
|
||
|
whose heart was right, at bottom; add his murder to this that
|
||
|
is to be now done here; and charge them both where they belong
|
||
|
--to the rulers and the bitter laws of Britain. The time is come, my
|
||
|
child; let me pray over thee--not _for_ thee, dear abused poor heart
|
||
|
and innocent, but for them that be guilty of thy ruin and death,
|
||
|
who need it more."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After his prayer they put the noose around the young girl's neck,
|
||
|
and they had great trouble to adjust the knot under her ear,
|
||
|
because she was devouring the baby all the time, wildly kissing it,
|
||
|
and snatching it to her face and her breast, and drenching it
|
||
|
with tears, and half moaning, half shrieking all the while, and the
|
||
|
baby crowing, and laughing, and kicking its feet with delight over
|
||
|
what it took for romp and play. Even the hangman couldn't stand it,
|
||
|
but turned away. When all was ready the priest gently pulled and
|
||
|
tugged and forced the child out of the mother's arms, and stepped
|
||
|
quickly out of her reach; but she clasped her hands, and made a
|
||
|
wild spring toward him, with a shriek; but the rope--and the
|
||
|
under-sheriff--held her short. Then she went on her knees and
|
||
|
stretched out her hands and cried:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"One more kiss--oh, my God, one more, one more,--it is the dying
|
||
|
that begs it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She got it; she almost smothered the little thing. And when they
|
||
|
got it away again, she cried out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, my child, my darling, it will die! It has no home, it has
|
||
|
no father, no friend, no mother--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It has them all!" said that good priest. "All these will I be
|
||
|
to it till I die."
|
||
|
|
||
|
You should have seen her face then! Gratitude? Lord, what do
|
||
|
you want with words to express that? Words are only painted fire;
|
||
|
a look is the fire itself. She gave that look, and carried it away
|
||
|
to the treasury of heaven, where all things that are divine belong.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXVI
|
||
|
|
||
|
AN ENCOUNTER IN THE DARK
|
||
|
|
||
|
London--to a slave--was a sufficiently interesting place. It was
|
||
|
merely a great big village; and mainly mud and thatch. The streets
|
||
|
were muddy, crooked, unpaved. The populace was an ever flocking
|
||
|
and drifting swarm of rags, and splendors, of nodding plumes and
|
||
|
shining armor. The king had a palace there; he saw the outside
|
||
|
of it. It made him sigh; yes, and swear a little, in a poor
|
||
|
juvenile sixth century way. We saw knights and grandees whom
|
||
|
we knew, but they didn't know us in our rags and dirt and raw
|
||
|
welts and bruises, and wouldn't have recognized us if we had hailed
|
||
|
them, nor stopped to answer, either, it being unlawful to speak
|
||
|
with slaves on a chain. Sandy passed within ten yards of me on
|
||
|
a mule--hunting for me, I imagined. But the thing which clean
|
||
|
broke my heart was something which happened in front of our old
|
||
|
barrack in a square, while we were enduring the spectacle of a man
|
||
|
being boiled to death in oil for counterfeiting pennies. It was
|
||
|
the sight of a newsboy--and I couldn't get at him! Still, I had
|
||
|
one comfort--here was proof that Clarence was still alive and
|
||
|
banging away. I meant to be with him before long; the thought was
|
||
|
full of cheer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had one little glimpse of another thing, one day, which gave me
|
||
|
a great uplift. It was a wire stretching from housetop to housetop.
|
||
|
Telegraph or telephone, sure. I did very much wish I had a little
|
||
|
piece of it. It was just what I needed, in order to carry out my
|
||
|
project of escape. My idea was to get loose some night, along with
|
||
|
the king, then gag and bind our master, change clothes with him,
|
||
|
batter him into the aspect of a stranger, hitch him to the slave-chain,
|
||
|
assume possession of the property, march to Camelot, and--
|
||
|
|
||
|
But you get my idea; you see what a stunning dramatic surprise
|
||
|
I would wind up with at the palace. It was all feasible, if
|
||
|
I could only get hold of a slender piece of iron which I could
|
||
|
shape into a lock-pick. I could then undo the lumbering padlocks
|
||
|
with which our chains were fastened, whenever I might choose.
|
||
|
But I never had any luck; no such thing ever happened to fall
|
||
|
in my way. However, my chance came at last. A gentleman who
|
||
|
had come twice before to dicker for me, without result, or indeed
|
||
|
any approach to a result, came again. I was far from expecting
|
||
|
ever to belong to him, for the price asked for me from the time
|
||
|
I was first enslaved was exorbitant, and always provoked either
|
||
|
anger or derision, yet my master stuck stubbornly to it--twenty-two
|
||
|
dollars. He wouldn't bate a cent. The king was greatly admired,
|
||
|
because of his grand physique, but his kingly style was against
|
||
|
him, and he wasn't salable; nobody wanted that kind of a slave.
|
||
|
I considered myself safe from parting from him because of my
|
||
|
extravagant price. No, I was not expecting to ever belong to
|
||
|
this gentleman whom I have spoken of, but he had something which
|
||
|
I expected would belong to me eventually, if he would but visit
|
||
|
us often enough. It was a steel thing with a long pin to it, with
|
||
|
which his long cloth outside garment was fastened together in
|
||
|
front. There were three of them. He had disappointed me twice,
|
||
|
because he did not come quite close enough to me to make my project
|
||
|
entirely safe; but this time I succeeded; I captured the lower
|
||
|
clasp of the three, and when he missed it he thought he had lost
|
||
|
it on the way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had a chance to be glad about a minute, then straightway a chance
|
||
|
to be sad again. For when the purchase was about to fail, as usual,
|
||
|
the master suddenly spoke up and said what would be worded thus
|
||
|
--in modern English:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll tell you what I'll do. I'm tired supporting these two for
|
||
|
no good. Give me twenty-two dollars for this one, and I'll throw
|
||
|
the other one in."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king couldn't get his breath, he was in such a fury. He began
|
||
|
to choke and gag, and meantime the master and the gentleman moved
|
||
|
away discussing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An ye will keep the offer open--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Tis open till the morrow at this hour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then I will answer you at that time," said the gentleman, and
|
||
|
disappeared, the master following him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had a time of it to cool the king down, but I managed it.
|
||
|
I whispered in his ear, to this effect:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your grace _will_ go for nothing, but after another fashion. And
|
||
|
so shall I. To-night we shall both be free."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah! How is that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With this thing which I have stolen, I will unlock these locks
|
||
|
and cast off these chains to-night. When he comes about nine-thirty
|
||
|
to inspect us for the night, we will seize him, gag him, batter
|
||
|
him, and early in the morning we will march out of this town,
|
||
|
proprietors of this caravan of slaves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was as far as I went, but the king was charmed and satisfied.
|
||
|
That evening we waited patiently for our fellow-slaves to get
|
||
|
to sleep and signify it by the usual sign, for you must not take
|
||
|
many chances on those poor fellows if you can avoid it. It is
|
||
|
best to keep your own secrets. No doubt they fidgeted only about
|
||
|
as usual, but it didn't seem so to me. It seemed to me that they
|
||
|
were going to be forever getting down to their regular snoring.
|
||
|
As the time dragged on I got nervously afraid we shouldn't have
|
||
|
enough of it left for our needs; so I made several premature
|
||
|
attempts, and merely delayed things by it; for I couldn't seem
|
||
|
to touch a padlock, there in the dark, without starting a rattle
|
||
|
out of it which interrupted somebody's sleep and made him turn
|
||
|
over and wake some more of the gang.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But finally I did get my last iron off, and was a free man once
|
||
|
more. I took a good breath of relief, and reached for the king's
|
||
|
irons. Too late! in comes the master, with a light in one hand
|
||
|
and his heavy walking-staff in the other. I snuggled close among
|
||
|
the wallow of snorers, to conceal as nearly as possible that I was
|
||
|
naked of irons; and I kept a sharp lookout and prepared to spring
|
||
|
for my man the moment he should bend over me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But he didn't approach. He stopped, gazed absently toward our
|
||
|
dusky mass a minute, evidently thinking about something else;
|
||
|
then set down his light, moved musingly toward the door, and before
|
||
|
a body could imagine what he was going to do, he was out of the
|
||
|
door and had closed it behind him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Quick!" said the king. "Fetch him back!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, it was the thing to do, and I was up and out in a
|
||
|
moment. But, dear me, there were no lamps in those days, and
|
||
|
it was a dark night. But I glimpsed a dim figure a few steps
|
||
|
away. I darted for it, threw myself upon it, and then there was
|
||
|
a state of things and lively! We fought and scuffled and struggled,
|
||
|
and drew a crowd in no time. They took an immense interest in
|
||
|
the fight and encouraged us all they could, and, in fact, couldn't
|
||
|
have been pleasanter or more cordial if it had been their own
|
||
|
fight. Then a tremendous row broke out behind us, and as much
|
||
|
as half of our audience left us, with a rush, to invest some
|
||
|
sympathy in that. Lanterns began to swing in all directions;
|
||
|
it was the watch gathering from far and near. Presently a halberd
|
||
|
fell across my back, as a reminder, and I knew what it meant.
|
||
|
I was in custody. So was my adversary. We were marched off toward
|
||
|
prison, one on each side of the watchman. Here was disaster,
|
||
|
here was a fine scheme gone to sudden destruction! I tried to
|
||
|
imagine what would happen when the master should discover that
|
||
|
it was I who had been fighting him; and what would happen if they
|
||
|
jailed us together in the general apartment for brawlers and petty
|
||
|
law-breakers, as was the custom; and what might--
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just then my antagonist turned his face around in my direction,
|
||
|
the freckled light from the watchman's tin lantern fell on it,
|
||
|
and, by George, he was the wrong man!
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXVII
|
||
|
|
||
|
AN AWFUL PREDICAMENT
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sleep? It was impossible. It would naturally have been impossible
|
||
|
in that noisome cavern of a jail, with its mangy crowd of drunken,
|
||
|
quarrelsome, and song-singing rapscallions. But the thing that
|
||
|
made sleep all the more a thing not to be dreamed of, was my
|
||
|
racking impatience to get out of this place and find out the whole
|
||
|
size of what might have happened yonder in the slave-quarters
|
||
|
in consequence of that intolerable miscarriage of mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a long night, but the morning got around at last. I made
|
||
|
a full and frank explanation to the court. I said I was a slave,
|
||
|
the property of the great Earl Grip, who had arrived just after
|
||
|
dark at the Tabard inn in the village on the other side of the
|
||
|
water, and had stopped there over night, by compulsion, he being
|
||
|
taken deadly sick with a strange and sudden disorder. I had been
|
||
|
ordered to cross to the city in all haste and bring the best
|
||
|
physician; I was doing my best; naturally I was running with all
|
||
|
my might; the night was dark, I ran against this common person
|
||
|
here, who seized me by the throat and began to pummel me, although
|
||
|
I told him my errand, and implored him, for the sake of the great
|
||
|
earl my master's mortal peril--
|
||
|
|
||
|
The common person interrupted and said it was a lie; and was going
|
||
|
to explain how I rushed upon him and attacked him without a word--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Silence, sirrah!" from the court. "Take him hence and give him
|
||
|
a few stripes whereby to teach him how to treat the servant of
|
||
|
a nobleman after a different fashion another time. Go!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then the court begged my pardon, and hoped I would not fail
|
||
|
to tell his lordship it was in no wise the court's fault that this
|
||
|
high-handed thing had happened. I said I would make it all right,
|
||
|
and so took my leave. Took it just in time, too; he was starting
|
||
|
to ask me why I didn't fetch out these facts the moment I was
|
||
|
arrested. I said I would if I had thought of it--which was true
|
||
|
--but that I was so battered by that man that all my wit was knocked
|
||
|
out of me--and so forth and so on, and got myself away, still
|
||
|
mumbling. I didn't wait for breakfast. No grass grew under my
|
||
|
feet. I was soon at the slave quarters. Empty--everybody gone!
|
||
|
That is, everybody except one body--the slave-master's. It lay
|
||
|
there all battered to pulp; and all about were the evidences of
|
||
|
a terrific fight. There was a rude board coffin on a cart at
|
||
|
the door, and workmen, assisted by the police, were thinning a
|
||
|
road through the gaping crowd in order that they might bring it in.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I picked out a man humble enough in life to condescend to talk
|
||
|
with one so shabby as I, and got his account of the matter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There were sixteen slaves here. They rose against their master
|
||
|
in the night, and thou seest how it ended."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. How did it begin?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There was no witness but the slaves. They said the slave that
|
||
|
was most valuable got free of his bonds and escaped in some strange
|
||
|
way--by magic arts 'twas thought, by reason that he had no key,
|
||
|
and the locks were neither broke nor in any wise injured. When
|
||
|
the master discovered his loss, he was mad with despair, and threw
|
||
|
himself upon his people with his heavy stick, who resisted and
|
||
|
brake his back and in other and divers ways did give him hurts
|
||
|
that brought him swiftly to his end."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is dreadful. It will go hard with the slaves, no doubt,
|
||
|
upon the trial."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Marry, the trial is over."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Over!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would they be a week, think you--and the matter so simple? They
|
||
|
were not the half of a quarter of an hour at it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, I don't see how they could determine which were the guilty
|
||
|
ones in so short a time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Which_ ones? Indeed, they considered not particulars like to that.
|
||
|
They condemned them in a body. Wit ye not the law?--which men
|
||
|
say the Romans left behind them here when they went--that if one
|
||
|
slave killeth his master all the slaves of that man must die for it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True. I had forgotten. And when will these die?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Belike within a four and twenty hours; albeit some say they will
|
||
|
wait a pair of days more, if peradventure they may find the missing
|
||
|
one meantime."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The missing one! It made me feel uncomfortable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it likely they will find him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Before the day is spent--yes. They seek him everywhere. They
|
||
|
stand at the gates of the town, with certain of the slaves who
|
||
|
will discover him to them if he cometh, and none can pass out
|
||
|
but he will be first examined."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Might one see the place where the rest are confined?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The outside of it--yes. The inside of it--but ye will not want
|
||
|
to see that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I took the address of that prison for future reference and then
|
||
|
sauntered off. At the first second-hand clothing shop I came to,
|
||
|
up a back street, I got a rough rig suitable for a common seaman
|
||
|
who might be going on a cold voyage, and bound up my face with
|
||
|
a liberal bandage, saying I had a toothache. This concealed my
|
||
|
worst bruises. It was a transformation. I no longer resembled my
|
||
|
former self. Then I struck out for that wire, found it and
|
||
|
followed it to its den. It was a little room over a butcher's
|
||
|
shop--which meant that business wasn't very brisk in the telegraphic
|
||
|
line. The young chap in charge was drowsing at his table. I locked
|
||
|
the door and put the vast key in my bosom. This alarmed the young
|
||
|
fellow, and he was going to make a noise; but I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Save your wind; if you open your mouth you are dead, sure. Tackle
|
||
|
your instrument. Lively, now! Call Camelot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This doth amaze me! How should such as you know aught of such
|
||
|
matters as--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Call Camelot! I am a desperate man. Call Camelot, or get away
|
||
|
from the instrument and I will do it myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What--you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--certainly. Stop gabbling. Call the palace."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He made the call.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, then, call Clarence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Clarence _who_?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Never mind Clarence who. Say you want Clarence; you'll get
|
||
|
an answer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did so. We waited five nerve-straining minutes--ten minutes
|
||
|
--how long it did seem!--and then came a click that was as familiar
|
||
|
to me as a human voice; for Clarence had been my own pupil.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, my lad, vacate! They would have known _my_ touch, maybe,
|
||
|
and so your call was surest; but I'm all right now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He vacated the place and cocked his ear to listen--but it didn't
|
||
|
win. I used a cipher. I didn't waste any time in sociabilities
|
||
|
with Clarence, but squared away for business, straight-off--thus:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The king is here and in danger. We were captured and brought
|
||
|
here as slaves. We should not be able to prove our identity
|
||
|
--and the fact is, I am not in a position to try. Send a telegram
|
||
|
for the palace here which will carry conviction with it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His answer came straight back:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They don't know anything about the telegraph; they haven't had
|
||
|
any experience yet, the line to London is so new. Better not
|
||
|
venture that. They might hang you. Think up something else."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Might hang us! Little he knew how closely he was crowding the
|
||
|
facts. I couldn't think up anything for the moment. Then an idea
|
||
|
struck me, and I started it along:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Send five hundred picked knights with Launcelot in the lead; and
|
||
|
send them on the jump. Let them enter by the southwest gate, and
|
||
|
look out for the man with a white cloth around his right arm."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The answer was prompt:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They shall start in half an hour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All right, Clarence; now tell this lad here that I'm a friend
|
||
|
of yours and a dead-head; and that he must be discreet and say
|
||
|
nothing about this visit of mine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The instrument began to talk to the youth and I hurried away.
|
||
|
I fell to ciphering. In half an hour it would be nine o'clock.
|
||
|
Knights and horses in heavy armor couldn't travel very fast.
|
||
|
These would make the best time they could, and now that the ground
|
||
|
was in good condition, and no snow or mud, they would probably
|
||
|
make a seven-mile gait; they would have to change horses a couple
|
||
|
of times; they would arrive about six, or a little after; it would
|
||
|
still be plenty light enough; they would see the white cloth which
|
||
|
I should tie around my right arm, and I would take command. We
|
||
|
would surround that prison and have the king out in no time.
|
||
|
It would be showy and picturesque enough, all things considered,
|
||
|
though I would have preferred noonday, on account of the more
|
||
|
theatrical aspect the thing would have.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now, then, in order to increase the strings to my bow, I thought
|
||
|
I would look up some of those people whom I had formerly recognized,
|
||
|
and make myself known. That would help us out of our scrape,
|
||
|
without the knights. But I must proceed cautiously, for it was
|
||
|
a risky business. I must get into sumptuous raiment, and it
|
||
|
wouldn't do to run and jump into it. No, I must work up to it
|
||
|
by degrees, buying suit after suit of clothes, in shops wide apart,
|
||
|
and getting a little finer article with each change, until I should
|
||
|
finally reach silk and velvet, and be ready for my project. So
|
||
|
I started.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the scheme fell through like scat! The first corner I turned,
|
||
|
I came plump upon one of our slaves, snooping around with a watchman.
|
||
|
I coughed at the moment, and he gave me a sudden look that bit right
|
||
|
into my marrow. I judge he thought he had heard that cough before.
|
||
|
I turned immediately into a shop and worked along down the counter,
|
||
|
pricing things and watching out of the corner of my eye. Those
|
||
|
people had stopped, and were talking together and looking in at
|
||
|
the door. I made up my mind to get out the back way, if there
|
||
|
was a back way, and I asked the shopwoman if I could step out
|
||
|
there and look for the escaped slave, who was believed to be in
|
||
|
hiding back there somewhere, and said I was an officer in disguise,
|
||
|
and my pard was yonder at the door with one of the murderers in
|
||
|
charge, and would she be good enough to step there and tell him
|
||
|
he needn't wait, but had better go at once to the further end of
|
||
|
the back alley and be ready to head him off when I rousted him out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was blazing with eagerness to see one of those already celebrated
|
||
|
murderers, and she started on the errand at once. I slipped out
|
||
|
the back way, locked the door behind me, put the key in my pocket
|
||
|
and started off, chuckling to myself and comfortable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I had gone and spoiled it again, made another mistake.
|
||
|
A double one, in fact. There were plenty of ways to get rid of
|
||
|
that officer by some simple and plausible device, but no, I must
|
||
|
pick out a picturesque one; it is the crying defect of my character.
|
||
|
And then, I had ordered my procedure upon what the officer, being
|
||
|
human, would _naturally_ do; whereas when you are least expecting it,
|
||
|
a man will now and then go and do the very thing which it's _not_
|
||
|
natural for him to do. The natural thing for the officer to do,
|
||
|
in this case, was to follow straight on my heels; he would find
|
||
|
a stout oaken door, securely locked, between him and me; before
|
||
|
he could break it down, I should be far away and engaged in slipping
|
||
|
into a succession of baffling disguises which would soon get me
|
||
|
into a sort of raiment which was a surer protection from meddling
|
||
|
law-dogs in Britain than any amount of mere innocence and purity
|
||
|
of character. But instead of doing the natural thing, the officer
|
||
|
took me at my word, and followed my instructions. And so, as I
|
||
|
came trotting out of that cul de sac, full of satisfaction with my
|
||
|
own cleverness, he turned the corner and I walked right into his
|
||
|
handcuffs. If I had known it was a cul de sac--however, there
|
||
|
isn't any excusing a blunder like that, let it go. Charge it up
|
||
|
to profit and loss.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, I was indignant, and swore I had just come ashore from
|
||
|
a long voyage, and all that sort of thing--just to see, you know,
|
||
|
if it would deceive that slave. But it didn't. He knew me. Then
|
||
|
I reproached him for betraying me. He was more surprised than
|
||
|
hurt. He stretched his eyes wide, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, wouldst have me let thee, of all men, escape and not hang
|
||
|
with us, when thou'rt the very _cause_ of our hanging? Go to!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go to" was their way of saying "I should smile!" or "I like that!"
|
||
|
Queer talkers, those people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, there was a sort of bastard justice in his view of the case,
|
||
|
and so I dropped the matter. When you can't cure a disaster by
|
||
|
argument, what is the use to argue? It isn't my way. So I only said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You're not going to be hanged. None of us are."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Both men laughed, and the slave said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye have not ranked as a fool--before. You might better keep
|
||
|
your reputation, seeing the strain would not be for long."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will stand it, I reckon. Before to-morrow we shall be out
|
||
|
of prison, and free to go where we will, besides."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The witty officer lifted at his left ear with his thumb, made
|
||
|
a rasping noise in his throat, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Out of prison--yes--ye say true. And free likewise to go where
|
||
|
ye will, so ye wander not out of his grace the Devil's sultry realm."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I kept my temper, and said, indifferently:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now I suppose you really think we are going to hang within
|
||
|
a day or two."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I thought it not many minutes ago, for so the thing was decided
|
||
|
and proclaimed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, then you've changed your mind, is that it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Even that. I only _thought_, then; I _know_, now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I felt sarcastical, so I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, sapient servant of the law, condescend to tell us, then,
|
||
|
what you _know_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That ye will all be hanged _to-day_, at mid-afternoon! Oho! that
|
||
|
shot hit home! Lean upon me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fact is I did need to lean upon somebody. My knights couldn't
|
||
|
arrive in time. They would be as much as three hours too late.
|
||
|
Nothing in the world could save the King of England; nor me, which
|
||
|
was more important. More important, not merely to me, but to
|
||
|
the nation--the only nation on earth standing ready to blossom
|
||
|
into civilization. I was sick. I said no more, there wasn't
|
||
|
anything to say. I knew what the man meant; that if the missing
|
||
|
slave was found, the postponement would be revoked, the execution
|
||
|
take place to-day. Well, the missing slave was found.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXVIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
SIR LAUNCELOT AND KNIGHTS TO THE RESCUE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nearing four in the afternoon. The scene was just outside the
|
||
|
walls of London. A cool, comfortable, superb day, with a brilliant
|
||
|
sun; the kind of day to make one want to live, not die. The
|
||
|
multitude was prodigious and far-reaching; and yet we fifteen
|
||
|
poor devils hadn't a friend in it. There was something painful
|
||
|
in that thought, look at it how you might. There we sat, on our
|
||
|
tall scaffold, the butt of the hate and mockery of all those
|
||
|
enemies. We were being made a holiday spectacle. They had built
|
||
|
a sort of grand stand for the nobility and gentry, and these were
|
||
|
there in full force, with their ladies. We recognized a good
|
||
|
many of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The crowd got a brief and unexpected dash of diversion out of
|
||
|
the king. The moment we were freed of our bonds he sprang up,
|
||
|
in his fantastic rags, with face bruised out of all recognition, and
|
||
|
proclaimed himself Arthur, King of Britain, and denounced the
|
||
|
awful penalties of treason upon every soul there present if hair
|
||
|
of his sacred head were touched. It startled and surprised him
|
||
|
to hear them break into a vast roar of laughter. It wounded his
|
||
|
dignity, and he locked himself up in silence. Then, although
|
||
|
the crowd begged him to go on, and tried to provoke him to it
|
||
|
by catcalls, jeers, and shouts of:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let him speak! The king! The king! his humble subjects hunger
|
||
|
and thirst for words of wisdom out of the mouth of their master
|
||
|
his Serene and Sacred Raggedness!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it went for nothing. He put on all his majesty and sat under
|
||
|
this rain of contempt and insult unmoved. He certainly was great
|
||
|
in his way. Absently, I had taken off my white bandage and wound
|
||
|
it about my right arm. When the crowd noticed this, they began
|
||
|
upon me. They said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Doubtless this sailor-man is his minister--observe his costly
|
||
|
badge of office!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I let them go on until they got tired, and then I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, I am his minister, The Boss; and to-morrow you will hear
|
||
|
that from Camelot which--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I got no further. They drowned me out with joyous derision. But
|
||
|
presently there was silence; for the sheriffs of London, in their
|
||
|
official robes, with their subordinates, began to make a stir which
|
||
|
indicated that business was about to begin. In the hush which
|
||
|
followed, our crime was recited, the death warrant read, then
|
||
|
everybody uncovered while a priest uttered a prayer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then a slave was blindfolded; the hangman unslung his rope. There
|
||
|
lay the smooth road below us, we upon one side of it, the banked
|
||
|
multitude wailing its other side--a good clear road, and kept free
|
||
|
by the police--how good it would be to see my five hundred horsemen
|
||
|
come tearing down it! But no, it was out of the possibilities.
|
||
|
I followed its receding thread out into the distance--not a horseman
|
||
|
on it, or sign of one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a jerk, and the slave hung dangling; dangling and hideously
|
||
|
squirming, for his limbs were not tied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A second rope was unslung, in a moment another slave was dangling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In a minute a third slave was struggling in the air. It was
|
||
|
dreadful. I turned away my head a moment, and when I turned back
|
||
|
I missed the king! They were blindfolding him! I was paralyzed;
|
||
|
I couldn't move, I was choking, my tongue was petrified. They
|
||
|
finished blindfolding him, they led him under the rope. I couldn't
|
||
|
shake off that clinging impotence. But when I saw them put the
|
||
|
noose around his neck, then everything let go in me and I made
|
||
|
a spring to the rescue--and as I made it I shot one more glance
|
||
|
abroad--by George! here they came, a-tilting!--five hundred mailed
|
||
|
and belted knights on bicycles!
|
||
|
|
||
|
The grandest sight that ever was seen. Lord, how the plumes
|
||
|
streamed, how the sun flamed and flashed from the endless procession
|
||
|
of webby wheels!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I waved my right arm as Launcelot swept in--he recognized my rag
|
||
|
--I tore away noose and bandage, and shouted:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"On your knees, every rascal of you, and salute the king! Who
|
||
|
fails shall sup in hell to-night!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I always use that high style when I'm climaxing an effect. Well,
|
||
|
it was noble to see Launcelot and the boys swarm up onto that
|
||
|
scaffold and heave sheriffs and such overboard. And it was fine
|
||
|
to see that astonished multitude go down on their knees and beg
|
||
|
their lives of the king they had just been deriding and insulting.
|
||
|
And as he stood apart there, receiving this homage in rags,
|
||
|
I thought to myself, well, really there is something peculiarly
|
||
|
grand about the gait and bearing of a king, after all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was immensely satisfied. Take the whole situation all around,
|
||
|
it was one of the gaudiest effects I ever instigated.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And presently up comes Clarence, his own self! and winks, and
|
||
|
says, very modernly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good deal of a surprise, wasn't it? I knew you'd like it. I've
|
||
|
had the boys practicing this long time, privately; and just hungry
|
||
|
for a chance to show off."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXXIX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE YANKEE'S FIGHT WITH THE KNIGHTS
|
||
|
|
||
|
Home again, at Camelot. A morning or two later I found the paper,
|
||
|
damp from the press, by my plate at the breakfast table. I turned
|
||
|
to the advertising columns, knowing I should find something of
|
||
|
personal interest to me there. It was this:
|
||
|
|
||
|
DE PAR LE ROI.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Know that the great lord and illus-
|
||
|
trious Kni8ht, SIR SAGRAMOR LE
|
||
|
DESIROUS having condescended to
|
||
|
meet the King's Minister, Hank Mor-
|
||
|
gan, the which is surnamed The Boss,
|
||
|
for satisfgction of offence anciently given,
|
||
|
these wilL engage in the lists by
|
||
|
Camelot about the fourth hour of the
|
||
|
morning of the sixteenth day of this
|
||
|
next succeeding month. The battle
|
||
|
will be a l outrance, sith the said offence
|
||
|
was of a deadly sort, admitting of no
|
||
|
comPosition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
DE PAR LE ROI
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Clarence's editorial reference to this affair was to this effect:
|
||
|
|
||
|
It will be observed, by a gl7nce at our
|
||
|
advertising columns, that the commu-
|
||
|
nity is to be favored with a treat of un-
|
||
|
usual interest in the tournament line.
|
||
|
The n ames of the artists are warrant of
|
||
|
good enterTemment. The box-office
|
||
|
will be open at noon of the 13th; ad-
|
||
|
mission 3 cents, reserved seatsh 5; pro-
|
||
|
ceeds to go to the hospital fund The
|
||
|
royal pair and all the Court will be pres-
|
||
|
ent. With these exceptions, and the
|
||
|
press and the clergy, the free list is strict-
|
||
|
ly susPended. Parties are hereby warn-
|
||
|
ed against buying tickets of speculators;
|
||
|
they will not be good at the door.
|
||
|
Everybody knows and likes The Boss,
|
||
|
everybody knows and likes Sir Sag.;
|
||
|
come, let us give the lads a good send-
|
||
|
off. ReMember, the proceeds go to a
|
||
|
great and free charity, and one whose
|
||
|
broad begevolence stretches out its help-
|
||
|
ing hand, warm with the blood of a lov-
|
||
|
ing heart, to all that suffer, regardless of
|
||
|
race, creed, condition or color--the
|
||
|
only charity yet established in the earth
|
||
|
which has no politico-religious stop-
|
||
|
cock on its compassion, but says Here
|
||
|
flows the stream, let ALL come and
|
||
|
drink! Turn out, all hands! fetch along
|
||
|
your dou3hnuts and your gum-drops
|
||
|
and have a good time. Pie for sale on
|
||
|
the grounds, and rocks to crack it with;
|
||
|
and ciRcus-lemonade--three drops of
|
||
|
lime juice to a barrel of water.
|
||
|
|
||
|
N.B. This is the first tournament
|
||
|
under the new law, whidh allow each
|
||
|
combatant to use any weapon he may pre-
|
||
|
fer. You may want to make a note of that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Up to the day set, there was no talk in all Britain of anything
|
||
|
but this combat. All other topics sank into insignificance and
|
||
|
passed out of men's thoughts and interest. It was not because
|
||
|
a tournament was a great matter, it was not because Sir Sagramor
|
||
|
had found the Holy Grail, for he had not, but had failed; it was
|
||
|
not because the second (official) personage in the kingdom was
|
||
|
one of the duellists; no, all these features were commonplace.
|
||
|
Yet there was abundant reason for the extraordinary interest which
|
||
|
this coming fight was creating. It was born of the fact that all
|
||
|
the nation knew that this was not to be a duel between mere men,
|
||
|
so to speak, but a duel between two mighty magicians; a duel not
|
||
|
of muscle but of mind, not of human skill but of superhuman art
|
||
|
and craft; a final struggle for supremacy between the two master
|
||
|
enchanters of the age. It was realized that the most prodigious
|
||
|
achievements of the most renowned knights could not be worthy
|
||
|
of comparison with a spectacle like this; they could be but child's
|
||
|
play, contrasted with this mysterious and awful battle of the gods.
|
||
|
Yes, all the world knew it was going to be in reality a duel
|
||
|
between Merlin and me, a measuring of his magic powers against
|
||
|
mine. It was known that Merlin had been busy whole days and nights
|
||
|
together, imbuing Sir Sagramor's arms and armor with supernal
|
||
|
powers of offense and defense, and that he had procured for him
|
||
|
from the spirits of the air a fleecy veil which would render the
|
||
|
wearer invisible to his antagonist while still visible to other
|
||
|
men. Against Sir Sagramor, so weaponed and protected, a thousand
|
||
|
knights could accomplish nothing; against him no known enchantments
|
||
|
could prevail. These facts were sure; regarding them there was
|
||
|
no doubt, no reason for doubt. There was but one question: might
|
||
|
there be still other enchantments, _unknown_ to Merlin, which could
|
||
|
render Sir Sagramor's veil transparent to me, and make his enchanted
|
||
|
mail vulnerable to my weapons? This was the one thing to be
|
||
|
decided in the lists. Until then the world must remain in suspense.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So the world thought there was a vast matter at stake here, and
|
||
|
the world was right, but it was not the one they had in their
|
||
|
minds. No, a far vaster one was upon the cast of this die:
|
||
|
_the life of knight-errantry_. I was a champion, it was true, but
|
||
|
not the champion of the frivolous black arts, I was the champion
|
||
|
of hard unsentimental common-sense and reason. I was entering
|
||
|
the lists to either destroy knight-errantry or be its victim.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Vast as the show-grounds were, there were no vacant spaces in them
|
||
|
outside of the lists, at ten o'clock on the morning of the 16th.
|
||
|
The mammoth grand-stand was clothed in flags, streamers, and rich
|
||
|
tapestries, and packed with several acres of small-fry tributary
|
||
|
kings, their suites, and the British aristocracy; with our own
|
||
|
royal gang in the chief place, and each and every individual
|
||
|
a flashing prism of gaudy silks and velvets--well, I never saw
|
||
|
anything to begin with it but a fight between an Upper Mississippi
|
||
|
sunset and the aurora borealis. The huge camp of beflagged and
|
||
|
gay-colored tents at one end of the lists, with a stiff-standing
|
||
|
sentinel at every door and a shining shield hanging by him for
|
||
|
challenge, was another fine sight. You see, every knight was
|
||
|
there who had any ambition or any caste feeling; for my feeling
|
||
|
toward their order was not much of a secret, and so here was their
|
||
|
chance. If I won my fight with Sir Sagramor, others would have
|
||
|
the right to call me out as long as I might be willing to respond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Down at our end there were but two tents; one for me, and another
|
||
|
for my servants. At the appointed hour the king made a sign, and
|
||
|
the heralds, in their tabards, appeared and made proclamation,
|
||
|
naming the combatants and stating the cause of quarrel. There
|
||
|
was a pause, then a ringing bugle-blast, which was the signal for
|
||
|
us to come forth. All the multitude caught their breath, and
|
||
|
an eager curiosity flashed into every face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Out from his tent rode great Sir Sagramor, an imposing tower
|
||
|
of iron, stately and rigid, his huge spear standing upright in its
|
||
|
socket and grasped in his strong hand, his grand horse's face and
|
||
|
breast cased in steel, his body clothed in rich trappings that
|
||
|
almost dragged the ground--oh, a most noble picture. A great
|
||
|
shout went up, of welcome and admiration.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then out I came. But I didn't get any shout. There was
|
||
|
a wondering and eloquent silence for a moment, then a great wave
|
||
|
of laughter began to sweep along that human sea, but a warning
|
||
|
bugle-blast cut its career short. I was in the simplest and
|
||
|
comfortablest of gymnast costumes--flesh-colored tights from neck
|
||
|
to heel, with blue silk puffings about my loins, and bareheaded.
|
||
|
My horse was not above medium size, but he was alert, slender-limbed,
|
||
|
muscled with watchsprings, and just a greyhound to go. He was
|
||
|
a beauty, glossy as silk, and naked as he was when he was born,
|
||
|
except for bridle and ranger-saddle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The iron tower and the gorgeous bedquilt came cumbrously but
|
||
|
gracefully pirouetting down the lists, and we tripped lightly up
|
||
|
to meet them. We halted; the tower saluted, I responded; then
|
||
|
we wheeled and rode side by side to the grand-stand and faced
|
||
|
our king and queen, to whom we made obeisance. The queen exclaimed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alack, Sir Boss, wilt fight naked, and without lance or sword or--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the king checked her and made her understand, with a polite
|
||
|
phrase or two, that this was none of her business. The bugles
|
||
|
rang again; and we separated and rode to the ends of the lists,
|
||
|
and took position. Now old Merlin stepped into view and cast
|
||
|
a dainty web of gossamer threads over Sir Sagramor which turned
|
||
|
him into Hamlet's ghost; the king made a sign, the bugles blew,
|
||
|
Sir Sagramor laid his great lance in rest, and the next moment here
|
||
|
he came thundering down the course with his veil flying out behind,
|
||
|
and I went whistling through the air like an arrow to meet him
|
||
|
--cocking my ear the while, as if noting the invisible knight's
|
||
|
position and progress by hearing, not sight. A chorus of encouraging
|
||
|
shouts burst out for him, and one brave voice flung out a heartening
|
||
|
word for me--said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go it, slim Jim!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was an even bet that Clarence had procured that favor for me
|
||
|
--and furnished the language, too. When that formidable lance-point
|
||
|
was within a yard and a half of my breast I twitched my horse aside
|
||
|
without an effort, and the big knight swept by, scoring a blank.
|
||
|
I got plenty of applause that time. We turned, braced up, and
|
||
|
down we came again. Another blank for the knight, a roar of
|
||
|
applause for me. This same thing was repeated once more; and
|
||
|
it fetched such a whirlwind of applause that Sir Sagramor lost his
|
||
|
temper, and at once changed his tactics and set himself the task
|
||
|
of chasing me down. Why, he hadn't any show in the world at that;
|
||
|
it was a game of tag, with all the advantage on my side; I whirled
|
||
|
out of his path with ease whenever I chose, and once I slapped him
|
||
|
on the back as I went to the rear. Finally I took the chase into
|
||
|
my own hands; and after that, turn, or twist, or do what he would,
|
||
|
he was never able to get behind me again; he found himself always
|
||
|
in front at the end of his maneuver. So he gave up that business
|
||
|
and retired to his end of the lists. His temper was clear gone now,
|
||
|
and he forgot himself and flung an insult at me which disposed
|
||
|
of mine. I slipped my lasso from the horn of my saddle, and
|
||
|
grasped the coil in my right hand. This time you should have seen
|
||
|
him come!--it was a business trip, sure; by his gait there was
|
||
|
blood in his eye. I was sitting my horse at ease, and swinging
|
||
|
the great loop of my lasso in wide circles about my head; the
|
||
|
moment he was under way, I started for him; when the space between
|
||
|
us had narrowed to forty feet, I sent the snaky spirals of the rope
|
||
|
a-cleaving through the air, then darted aside and faced about and
|
||
|
brought my trained animal to a halt with all his feet braced under
|
||
|
him for a surge. The next moment the rope sprang taut and yanked
|
||
|
Sir Sagramor out of the saddle! Great Scott, but there was
|
||
|
a sensation!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Unquestionably, the popular thing in this world is novelty. These
|
||
|
people had never seen anything of that cowboy business before,
|
||
|
and it carried them clear off their feet with delight. From all
|
||
|
around and everywhere, the shout went up:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Encore! encore!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I wondered where they got the word, but there was no time to cipher
|
||
|
on philological matters, because the whole knight-errantry hive
|
||
|
was just humming now, and my prospect for trade couldn't have
|
||
|
been better. The moment my lasso was released and Sir Sagramor
|
||
|
had been assisted to his tent, I hauled in the slack, took my
|
||
|
station and began to swing my loop around my head again. I was
|
||
|
sure to have use for it as soon as they could elect a successor
|
||
|
for Sir Sagramor, and that couldn't take long where there were
|
||
|
so many hungry candidates. Indeed, they elected one straight off
|
||
|
--Sir Hervis de Revel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
_Bzz_! Here he came, like a house afire; I dodged: he passed like
|
||
|
a flash, with my horse-hair coils settling around his neck;
|
||
|
a second or so later, _fst_! his saddle was empty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I got another encore; and another, and another, and still another.
|
||
|
When I had snaked five men out, things began to look serious to
|
||
|
the ironclads, and they stopped and consulted together. As a
|
||
|
result, they decided that it was time to waive etiquette and send
|
||
|
their greatest and best against me. To the astonishment of that
|
||
|
little world, I lassoed Sir Lamorak de Galis, and after him
|
||
|
Sir Galahad. So you see there was simply nothing to be done now,
|
||
|
but play their right bower--bring out the superbest of the superb,
|
||
|
the mightiest of the mighty, the great Sir Launcelot himself!
|
||
|
|
||
|
A proud moment for me? I should think so. Yonder was Arthur,
|
||
|
King of Britain; yonder was Guenever; yes, and whole tribes of
|
||
|
little provincial kings and kinglets; and in the tented camp yonder,
|
||
|
renowned knights from many lands; and likewise the selectest body
|
||
|
known to chivalry, the Knights of the Table Round, the most
|
||
|
illustrious in Christendom; and biggest fact of all, the very sun
|
||
|
of their shining system was yonder couching his lance, the focal
|
||
|
point of forty thousand adoring eyes; and all by myself, here was
|
||
|
I laying for him. Across my mind flitted the dear image of a
|
||
|
certain hello-girl of West Hartford, and I wished she could see
|
||
|
me now. In that moment, down came the Invincible, with the rush
|
||
|
of a whirlwind--the courtly world rose to its feet and bent forward
|
||
|
--the fateful coils went circling through the air, and before you
|
||
|
could wink I was towing Sir Launcelot across the field on his
|
||
|
back, and kissing my hand to the storm of waving kerchiefs and
|
||
|
the thunder-crash of applause that greeted me!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Said I to myself, as I coiled my lariat and hung it on my saddle-horn,
|
||
|
and sat there drunk with glory, "The victory is perfect--no other
|
||
|
will venture against me--knight-errantry is dead." Now imagine my
|
||
|
astonishment--and everybody else's, too--to hear the peculiar
|
||
|
bugle-call which announces that another competitor is about to
|
||
|
enter the lists! There was a mystery here; I couldn't account for
|
||
|
this thing. Next, I noticed Merlin gliding away from me; and then
|
||
|
I noticed that my lasso was gone! The old sleight-of-hand expert
|
||
|
had stolen it, sure, and slipped it under his robe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The bugle blew again. I looked, and down came Sagramor riding
|
||
|
again, with his dust brushed off and his veil nicely re-arranged.
|
||
|
I trotted up to meet him, and pretended to find him by the sound
|
||
|
of his horse's hoofs. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thou'rt quick of ear, but it will not save thee from this!" and
|
||
|
he touched the hilt of his great sword. "An ye are not able to see
|
||
|
it, because of the influence of the veil, know that it is no cumbrous
|
||
|
lance, but a sword--and I ween ye will not be able to avoid it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His visor was up; there was death in his smile. I should never
|
||
|
be able to dodge his sword, that was plain. Somebody was going
|
||
|
to die this time. If he got the drop on me, I could name the
|
||
|
corpse. We rode forward together, and saluted the royalties.
|
||
|
This time the king was disturbed. He said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is thy strange weapon?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is stolen, sire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hast another at hand?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, sire, I brought only the one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then Merlin mixed in:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He brought but the one because there was but the one to bring.
|
||
|
There exists none other but that one. It belongeth to the king
|
||
|
of the Demons of the Sea. This man is a pretender, and ignorant,
|
||
|
else he had known that that weapon can be used in but eight bouts
|
||
|
only, and then it vanisheth away to its home under the sea."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then is he weaponless," said the king. "Sir Sagramore, ye will
|
||
|
grant him leave to borrow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I will lend!" said Sir Launcelot, limping up. "He is as
|
||
|
brave a knight of his hands as any that be on live, and he shall
|
||
|
have mine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He put his hand on his sword to draw it, but Sir Sagramor said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stay, it may not be. He shall fight with his own weapons; it
|
||
|
was his privilege to choose them and bring them. If he has erred,
|
||
|
on his head be it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Knight!" said the king. "Thou'rt overwrought with passion; it
|
||
|
disorders thy mind. Wouldst kill a naked man?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An he do it, he shall answer it to me," said Sir Launcelot.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will answer it to any he that desireth!" retorted Sir Sagramor hotly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Merlin broke in, rubbing his hands and smiling his lowdownest
|
||
|
smile of malicious gratification:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Tis well said, right well said! And 'tis enough of parleying,
|
||
|
let my lord the king deliver the battle signal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The king had to yield. The bugle made proclamation, and we turned
|
||
|
apart and rode to our stations. There we stood, a hundred yards
|
||
|
apart, facing each other, rigid and motionless, like horsed statues.
|
||
|
And so we remained, in a soundless hush, as much as a full minute,
|
||
|
everybody gazing, nobody stirring. It seemed as if the king could
|
||
|
not take heart to give the signal. But at last he lifted his hand,
|
||
|
the clear note of the bugle followed, Sir Sagramor's long blade
|
||
|
described a flashing curve in the air, and it was superb to see him
|
||
|
come. I sat still. On he came. I did not move. People got so
|
||
|
excited that they shouted to me:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fly, fly! Save thyself! This is murther!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I never budged so much as an inch till that thundering apparition
|
||
|
had got within fifteen paces of me; then I snatched a dragoon
|
||
|
revolver out of my holster, there was a flash and a roar, and
|
||
|
the revolver was back in the holster before anybody could tell
|
||
|
what had happened.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here was a riderless horse plunging by, and yonder lay Sir Sagramor,
|
||
|
stone dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The people that ran to him were stricken dumb to find that the life
|
||
|
was actually gone out of the man and no reason for it visible,
|
||
|
no hurt upon his body, nothing like a wound. There was a hole
|
||
|
through the breast of his chain-mail, but they attached no importance
|
||
|
to a little thing like that; and as a bullet wound there produces
|
||
|
but little blood, none came in sight because of the clothing and
|
||
|
swaddlings under the armor. The body was dragged over to let
|
||
|
the king and the swells look down upon it. They were stupefied
|
||
|
with astonishment naturally. I was requested to come and explain
|
||
|
the miracle. But I remained in my tracks, like a statue, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If it is a command, I will come, but my lord the king knows that
|
||
|
I am where the laws of combat require me to remain while any desire
|
||
|
to come against me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I waited. Nobody challenged. Then I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If there are any who doubt that this field is well and fairly won,
|
||
|
I do not wait for them to challenge me, I challenge them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a gallant offer," said the king, "and well beseems you.
|
||
|
Whom will you name first?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I name none, I challenge all! Here I stand, and dare the chivalry
|
||
|
of England to come against me--not by individuals, but in mass!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What!" shouted a score of knights.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have heard the challenge. Take it, or I proclaim you recreant
|
||
|
knights and vanquished, every one!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a "bluff" you know. At such a time it is sound judgment
|
||
|
to put on a bold face and play your hand for a hundred times what
|
||
|
it is worth; forty-nine times out of fifty nobody dares to "call,"
|
||
|
and you rake in the chips. But just this once--well, things looked
|
||
|
squally! In just no time, five hundred knights were scrambling
|
||
|
into their saddles, and before you could wink a widely scattering
|
||
|
drove were under way and clattering down upon me. I snatched
|
||
|
both revolvers from the holsters and began to measure distances
|
||
|
and calculate chances.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bang! One saddle empty. Bang! another one. Bang--bang, and
|
||
|
I bagged two. Well, it was nip and tuck with us, and I knew it.
|
||
|
If I spent the eleventh shot without convincing these people,
|
||
|
the twelfth man would kill me, sure. And so I never did feel
|
||
|
so happy as I did when my ninth downed its man and I detected
|
||
|
the wavering in the crowd which is premonitory of panic. An instant
|
||
|
lost now could knock out my last chance. But I didn't lose it.
|
||
|
I raised both revolvers and pointed them--the halted host stood
|
||
|
their ground just about one good square moment, then broke and fled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The day was mine. Knight-errantry was a doomed institution. The
|
||
|
march of civilization was begun. How did I feel? Ah, you never
|
||
|
could imagine it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And Brer Merlin? His stock was flat again. Somehow, every time
|
||
|
the magic of fol-de-rol tried conclusions with the magic of science,
|
||
|
the magic of fol-de-rol got left.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XL
|
||
|
|
||
|
THREE YEARS LATER
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I broke the back of knight-errantry that time, I no longer
|
||
|
felt obliged to work in secret. So, the very next day I exposed
|
||
|
my hidden schools, my mines, and my vast system of clandestine
|
||
|
factories and workshops to an astonished world. That is to say,
|
||
|
I exposed the nineteenth century to the inspection of the sixth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, it is always a good plan to follow up an advantage promptly.
|
||
|
The knights were temporarily down, but if I would keep them so
|
||
|
I must just simply paralyze them--nothing short of that would
|
||
|
answer. You see, I was "bluffing" that last time in the field;
|
||
|
it would be natural for them to work around to that conclusion,
|
||
|
if I gave them a chance. So I must not give them time; and I didn't.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I renewed my challenge, engraved it on brass, posted it up where
|
||
|
any priest could read it to them, and also kept it standing in
|
||
|
the advertising columns of the paper.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I not only renewed it, but added to its proportions. I said,
|
||
|
name the day, and I would take fifty assistants and stand up
|
||
|
_against the massed chivalry of the whole earth and destroy it_.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was not bluffing this time. I meant what I said; I could do
|
||
|
what I promised. There wasn't any way to misunderstand the language
|
||
|
of that challenge. Even the dullest of the chivalry perceived
|
||
|
that this was a plain case of "put up, or shut up." They were
|
||
|
wise and did the latter. In all the next three years they gave
|
||
|
me no trouble worth mentioning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Consider the three years sped. Now look around on England. A happy
|
||
|
and prosperous country, and strangely altered. Schools everywhere,
|
||
|
and several colleges; a number of pretty good newspapers. Even
|
||
|
authorship was taking a start; Sir Dinadan the Humorist was first
|
||
|
in the field, with a volume of gray-headed jokes which I had been
|
||
|
familiar with during thirteen centuries. If he had left out that
|
||
|
old rancid one about the lecturer I wouldn't have said anything;
|
||
|
but I couldn't stand that one. I suppressed the book and hanged
|
||
|
the author.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Slavery was dead and gone; all men were equal before the law;
|
||
|
taxation had been equalized. The telegraph, the telephone, the
|
||
|
phonograph, the typewriter, the sewing-machine, and all the thousand
|
||
|
willing and handy servants of steam and electricity were working
|
||
|
their way into favor. We had a steamboat or two on the Thames,
|
||
|
we had steam warships, and the beginnings of a steam commercial
|
||
|
marine; I was getting ready to send out an expedition to discover
|
||
|
America.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were building several lines of railway, and our line from
|
||
|
Camelot to London was already finished and in operation. I was
|
||
|
shrewd enough to make all offices connected with the passenger
|
||
|
service places of high and distinguished honor. My idea was
|
||
|
to attract the chivalry and nobility, and make them useful and keep
|
||
|
them out of mischief. The plan worked very well, the competition
|
||
|
for the places was hot. The conductor of the 4.33 express was
|
||
|
a duke; there wasn't a passenger conductor on the line below
|
||
|
the degree of earl. They were good men, every one, but they had
|
||
|
two defects which I couldn't cure, and so had to wink at: they
|
||
|
wouldn't lay aside their armor, and they would "knock down" fare
|
||
|
--I mean rob the company.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was hardly a knight in all the land who wasn't in some useful
|
||
|
employment. They were going from end to end of the country in all
|
||
|
manner of useful missionary capacities; their penchant for wandering,
|
||
|
and their experience in it, made them altogether the most effective
|
||
|
spreaders of civilization we had. They went clothed in steel and
|
||
|
equipped with sword and lance and battle-axe, and if they couldn't
|
||
|
persuade a person to try a sewing-machine on the installment plan,
|
||
|
or a melodeon, or a barbed-wire fence, or a prohibition journal,
|
||
|
or any of the other thousand and one things they canvassed for,
|
||
|
they removed him and passed on.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was very happy. Things were working steadily toward a secretly
|
||
|
longed-for point. You see, I had two schemes in my head which
|
||
|
were the vastest of all my projects. The one was to overthrow the
|
||
|
Catholic Church and set up the Protestant faith on its ruins
|
||
|
--not as an Established Church, but a go-as-you-please one; and
|
||
|
the other project was to get a decree issued by and by, commanding
|
||
|
that upon Arthur's death unlimited suffrage should be introduced,
|
||
|
and given to men and women alike--at any rate to all men, wise
|
||
|
or unwise, and to all mothers who at middle age should be found
|
||
|
to know nearly as much as their sons at twenty-one. Arthur was
|
||
|
good for thirty years yet, he being about my own age--that is
|
||
|
to say, forty--and I believed that in that time I could easily
|
||
|
have the active part of the population of that day ready and eager
|
||
|
for an event which should be the first of its kind in the history
|
||
|
of the world--a rounded and complete governmental revolution
|
||
|
without bloodshed. The result to be a republic. Well, I may
|
||
|
as well confess, though I do feel ashamed when I think of it:
|
||
|
I was beginning to have a base hankering to be its first president
|
||
|
myself. Yes, there was more or less human nature in me; I found
|
||
|
that out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Clarence was with me as concerned the revolution, but in a modified
|
||
|
way. His idea was a republic, without privileged orders, but with
|
||
|
a hereditary royal family at the head of it instead of an elective
|
||
|
chief magistrate. He believed that no nation that had ever known
|
||
|
the joy of worshiping a royal family could ever be robbed of it
|
||
|
and not fade away and die of melancholy. I urged that kings were
|
||
|
dangerous. He said, then have cats. He was sure that a royal
|
||
|
family of cats would answer every purpose. They would be as useful
|
||
|
as any other royal family, they would know as much, they would
|
||
|
have the same virtues and the same treacheries, the same disposition
|
||
|
to get up shindies with other royal cats, they would be laughably
|
||
|
vain and absurd and never know it, they would be wholly inexpensive;
|
||
|
finally, they would have as sound a divine right as any other
|
||
|
royal house, and "Tom VII, or Tom XI, or Tom XIV by the grace
|
||
|
of God King," would sound as well as it would when applied to
|
||
|
the ordinary royal tomcat with tights on. "And as a rule," said
|
||
|
he, in his neat modern English, "the character of these cats would
|
||
|
be considerably above the character of the average king, and this
|
||
|
would be an immense moral advantage to the nation, for the reason
|
||
|
that a nation always models its morals after its monarch's. The
|
||
|
worship of royalty being founded in unreason, these graceful and
|
||
|
harmless cats would easily become as sacred as any other royalties,
|
||
|
and indeed more so, because it would presently be noticed that
|
||
|
they hanged nobody, beheaded nobody, imprisoned nobody, inflicted
|
||
|
no cruelties or injustices of any sort, and so must be worthy of
|
||
|
a deeper love and reverence than the customary human king, and
|
||
|
would certainly get it. The eyes of the whole harried world would
|
||
|
soon be fixed upon this humane and gentle system, and royal butchers
|
||
|
would presently begin to disappear; their subjects would fill
|
||
|
the vacancies with catlings from our own royal house; we should
|
||
|
become a factory; we should supply the thrones of the world; within
|
||
|
forty years all Europe would be governed by cats, and we should
|
||
|
furnish the cats. The reign of universal peace would begin then,
|
||
|
to end no more forever.... Me-e-e-yow-ow-ow-ow--fzt!--wow!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hang him, I supposed he was in earnest, and was beginning to be
|
||
|
persuaded by him, until he exploded that cat-howl and startled me
|
||
|
almost out of my clothes. But he never could be in earnest. He
|
||
|
didn't know what it was. He had pictured a distinct and perfectly
|
||
|
rational and feasible improvement upon constitutional monarchy,
|
||
|
but he was too feather-headed to know it, or care anything about
|
||
|
it, either. I was going to give him a scolding, but Sandy came
|
||
|
flying in at that moment, wild with terror, and so choked with sobs
|
||
|
that for a minute she could not get her voice. I ran and took her
|
||
|
in my arms, and lavished caresses upon her and said, beseechingly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Speak, darling, speak! What is it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her head fell limp upon my bosom, and she gasped, almost inaudibly:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"HELLO-CENTRAL!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Quick!" I shouted to Clarence; "telephone the king's homeopath
|
||
|
to come!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
In two minutes I was kneeling by the child's crib, and Sandy was
|
||
|
dispatching servants here, there, and everywhere, all over the
|
||
|
palace. I took in the situation almost at a glance--membranous
|
||
|
croup! I bent down and whispered:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wake up, sweetheart! Hello-Central."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She opened her soft eyes languidly, and made out to say:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Papa."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was a comfort. She was far from dead yet. I sent for
|
||
|
preparations of sulphur, I rousted out the croup-kettle myself;
|
||
|
for I don't sit down and wait for doctors when Sandy or the child
|
||
|
is sick. I knew how to nurse both of them, and had had experience.
|
||
|
This little chap had lived in my arms a good part of its small life,
|
||
|
and often I could soothe away its troubles and get it to laugh
|
||
|
through the tear-dews on its eye-lashes when even its mother couldn't.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot, in his richest armor, came striding along the great
|
||
|
hall now on his way to the stock-board; he was president of the
|
||
|
stock-board, and occupied the Siege Perilous, which he had bought
|
||
|
of Sir Galahad; for the stock-board consisted of the Knights of
|
||
|
the Round Table, and they used the Round Table for business purposes
|
||
|
now. Seats at it were worth--well, you would never believe the
|
||
|
figure, so it is no use to state it. Sir Launcelot was a bear, and
|
||
|
he had put up a corner in one of the new lines, and was just getting
|
||
|
ready to squeeze the shorts to-day; but what of that? He was
|
||
|
the same old Launcelot, and when he glanced in as he was passing
|
||
|
the door and found out that his pet was sick, that was enough
|
||
|
for him; bulls and bears might fight it out their own way for all
|
||
|
him, he would come right in here and stand by little Hello-Central
|
||
|
for all he was worth. And that was what he did. He shied his
|
||
|
helmet into the corner, and in half a minute he had a new wick
|
||
|
in the alcohol lamp and was firing up on the croup-kettle. By this
|
||
|
time Sandy had built a blanket canopy over the crib, and everything
|
||
|
was ready.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot got up steam, he and I loaded up the kettle with
|
||
|
unslaked lime and carbolic acid, with a touch of lactic acid added
|
||
|
thereto, then filled the thing up with water and inserted the
|
||
|
steam-spout under the canopy. Everything was ship-shape now,
|
||
|
and we sat down on either side of the crib to stand our watch.
|
||
|
Sandy was so grateful and so comforted that she charged a couple
|
||
|
of church-wardens with willow-bark and sumach-tobacco for us,
|
||
|
and told us to smoke as much as we pleased, it couldn't get under
|
||
|
the canopy, and she was used to smoke, being the first lady in the
|
||
|
land who had ever seen a cloud blown. Well, there couldn't be
|
||
|
a more contented or comfortable sight than Sir Launcelot in his
|
||
|
noble armor sitting in gracious serenity at the end of a yard
|
||
|
of snowy church-warden. He was a beautiful man, a lovely man,
|
||
|
and was just intended to make a wife and children happy. But, of
|
||
|
course Guenever--however, it's no use to cry over what's done and
|
||
|
can't be helped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, he stood watch-and-watch with me, right straight through,
|
||
|
for three days and nights, till the child was out of danger; then
|
||
|
he took her up in his great arms and kissed her, with his plumes
|
||
|
falling about her golden head, then laid her softly in Sandy's
|
||
|
lap again and took his stately way down the vast hall, between
|
||
|
the ranks of admiring men-at-arms and menials, and so disappeared.
|
||
|
And no instinct warned me that I should never look upon him again
|
||
|
in this world! Lord, what a world of heart-break it is.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The doctors said we must take the child away, if we would coax
|
||
|
her back to health and strength again. And she must have sea-air.
|
||
|
So we took a man-of-war, and a suite of two hundred and sixty
|
||
|
persons, and went cruising about, and after a fortnight of this we
|
||
|
stepped ashore on the French coast, and the doctors thought it
|
||
|
would be a good idea to make something of a stay there. The little
|
||
|
king of that region offered us his hospitalities, and we were glad
|
||
|
to accept. If he had had as many conveniences as he lacked, we
|
||
|
should have been plenty comfortable enough; even as it was, we
|
||
|
made out very well, in his queer old castle, by the help of comforts
|
||
|
and luxuries from the ship.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the end of a month I sent the vessel home for fresh supplies,
|
||
|
and for news. We expected her back in three or four days. She
|
||
|
would bring me, along with other news, the result of a certain
|
||
|
experiment which I had been starting. It was a project of mine
|
||
|
to replace the tournament with something which might furnish an
|
||
|
escape for the extra steam of the chivalry, keep those bucks
|
||
|
entertained and out of mischief, and at the same time preserve
|
||
|
the best thing in them, which was their hardy spirit of emulation.
|
||
|
I had had a choice band of them in private training for some time,
|
||
|
and the date was now arriving for their first public effort.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This experiment was baseball. In order to give the thing vogue
|
||
|
from the start, and place it out of the reach of criticism, I chose
|
||
|
my nines by rank, not capacity. There wasn't a knight in either
|
||
|
team who wasn't a sceptered sovereign. As for material of this
|
||
|
sort, there was a glut of it always around Arthur. You couldn't
|
||
|
throw a brick in any direction and not cripple a king. Of course,
|
||
|
I couldn't get these people to leave off their armor; they wouldn't
|
||
|
do that when they bathed. They consented to differentiate the
|
||
|
armor so that a body could tell one team from the other, but that
|
||
|
was the most they would do. So, one of the teams wore chain-mail
|
||
|
ulsters, and the other wore plate-armor made of my new Bessemer
|
||
|
steel. Their practice in the field was the most fantastic thing I
|
||
|
ever saw. Being ball-proof, they never skipped out of the way,
|
||
|
but stood still and took the result; when a Bessemer was at the bat
|
||
|
and a ball hit him, it would bound a hundred and fifty yards
|
||
|
sometimes. And when a man was running, and threw himself on his
|
||
|
stomach to slide to his base, it was like an iron-clad coming into
|
||
|
port. At first I appointed men of no rank to act as umpires, but
|
||
|
I had to discontinue that. These people were no easier to please
|
||
|
than other nines. The umpire's first decision was usually his
|
||
|
last; they broke him in two with a bat, and his friends toted him
|
||
|
home on a shutter. When it was noticed that no umpire ever survived
|
||
|
a game, umpiring got to be unpopular. So I was obliged to appoint
|
||
|
somebody whose rank and lofty position under the government would
|
||
|
protect him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here are the names of the nines:
|
||
|
|
||
|
BESSEMERS ULSTERS
|
||
|
|
||
|
KING ARTHUR. EMPEROR LUCIUS.
|
||
|
KING LOT OF LOTHIAN. KING LOGRIS.
|
||
|
KING OF NORTHGALIS. KING MARHALT OF IRELAND.
|
||
|
KING MARSIL. KING MORGANORE.
|
||
|
KING OF LITTLE BRITAIN. KING MARK OF CORNWALL.
|
||
|
KING LABOR. KING NENTRES OF GARLOT.
|
||
|
KING PELLAM OF LISTENGESE. KING MELIODAS OF LIONES.
|
||
|
KING BAGDEMAGUS. KING OF THE LAKE.
|
||
|
KING TOLLEME LA FEINTES. THE SOWDAN OF SYRIA.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Umpire--CLARENCE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first public game would certainly draw fifty thousand people;
|
||
|
and for solid fun would be worth going around the world to see.
|
||
|
Everything would be favorable; it was balmy and beautiful spring
|
||
|
weather now, and Nature was all tailored out in her new clothes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XLI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE INTERDICT
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, my attention was suddenly snatched from such matters;
|
||
|
our child began to lose ground again, and we had to go to sitting
|
||
|
up with her, her case became so serious. We couldn't bear to allow
|
||
|
anybody to help in this service, so we two stood watch-and-watch,
|
||
|
day in and day out. Ah, Sandy, what a right heart she had, how
|
||
|
simple, and genuine, and good she was! She was a flawless wife
|
||
|
and mother; and yet I had married her for no other particular
|
||
|
reasons, except that by the customs of chivalry she was my property
|
||
|
until some knight should win her from me in the field. She had
|
||
|
hunted Britain over for me; had found me at the hanging-bout
|
||
|
outside of London, and had straightway resumed her old place at
|
||
|
my side in the placidest way and as of right. I was a New Englander,
|
||
|
and in my opinion this sort of partnership would compromise her,
|
||
|
sooner or later. She couldn't see how, but I cut argument short
|
||
|
and we had a wedding.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now I didn't know I was drawing a prize, yet that was what I did
|
||
|
draw. Within the twelvemonth I became her worshiper; and ours
|
||
|
was the dearest and perfectest comradeship that ever was. People
|
||
|
talk about beautiful friendships between two persons of the same
|
||
|
sex. What is the best of that sort, as compared with the friendship
|
||
|
of man and wife, where the best impulses and highest ideals of
|
||
|
both are the same? There is no place for comparison between
|
||
|
the two friendships; the one is earthly, the other divine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In my dreams, along at first, I still wandered thirteen centuries
|
||
|
away, and my unsatisfied spirit went calling and harking all up
|
||
|
and down the unreplying vacancies of a vanished world. Many a
|
||
|
time Sandy heard that imploring cry come from my lips in my sleep.
|
||
|
With a grand magnanimity she saddled that cry of mine upon our
|
||
|
child, conceiving it to be the name of some lost darling of mine.
|
||
|
It touched me to tears, and it also nearly knocked me off my feet,
|
||
|
too, when she smiled up in my face for an earned reward, and played
|
||
|
her quaint and pretty surprise upon me:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The name of one who was dear to thee is here preserved, here made
|
||
|
holy, and the music of it will abide alway in our ears. Now
|
||
|
thou'lt kiss me, as knowing the name I have given the child."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I didn't know it, all the same. I hadn't an idea in the
|
||
|
world; but it would have been cruel to confess it and spoil her
|
||
|
pretty game; so I never let on, but said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, I know, sweetheart--how dear and good it is of you, too!
|
||
|
But I want to hear these lips of yours, which are also mine, utter
|
||
|
it first--then its music will be perfect."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Pleased to the marrow, she murmured:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"HELLO-CENTRAL!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I didn't laugh--I am always thankful for that--but the strain
|
||
|
ruptured every cartilage in me, and for weeks afterward I could
|
||
|
hear my bones clack when I walked. She never found out her mistake.
|
||
|
The first time she heard that form of salute used at the telephone
|
||
|
she was surprised, and not pleased; but I told her I had given
|
||
|
order for it: that henceforth and forever the telephone must
|
||
|
always be invoked with that reverent formality, in perpetual honor
|
||
|
and remembrance of my lost friend and her small namesake. This
|
||
|
was not true. But it answered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, during two weeks and a half we watched by the crib, and in
|
||
|
our deep solicitude we were unconscious of any world outside of
|
||
|
that sick-room. Then our reward came: the center of the universe
|
||
|
turned the corner and began to mend. Grateful? It isn't the term.
|
||
|
There _isn't_ any term for it. You know that yourself, if you've
|
||
|
watched your child through the Valley of the Shadow and seen it
|
||
|
come back to life and sweep night out of the earth with one
|
||
|
all-illuminating smile that you could cover with your hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Why, we were back in this world in one instant! Then we looked
|
||
|
the same startled thought into each other's eyes at the same
|
||
|
moment; more than two weeks gone, and that ship not back yet!
|
||
|
|
||
|
In another minute I appeared in the presence of my train. They
|
||
|
had been steeped in troubled bodings all this time--their faces
|
||
|
showed it. I called an escort and we galloped five miles to a
|
||
|
hilltop overlooking the sea. Where was my great commerce that
|
||
|
so lately had made these glistening expanses populous and beautiful
|
||
|
with its white-winged flocks? Vanished, every one! Not a sail,
|
||
|
from verge to verge, not a smoke-bank--just a dead and empty
|
||
|
solitude, in place of all that brisk and breezy life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I went swiftly back, saying not a word to anybody. I told Sandy
|
||
|
this ghastly news. We could imagine no explanation that would
|
||
|
begin to explain. Had there been an invasion? an earthquake?
|
||
|
a pestilence? Had the nation been swept out of existence? But
|
||
|
guessing was profitless. I must go--at once. I borrowed the king's
|
||
|
navy--a "ship" no bigger than a steam launch--and was soon ready.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The parting--ah, yes, that was hard. As I was devouring the child
|
||
|
with last kisses, it brisked up and jabbered out its vocabulary!
|
||
|
--the first time in more than two weeks, and it made fools of us
|
||
|
for joy. The darling mispronunciations of childhood!--dear me,
|
||
|
there's no music that can touch it; and how one grieves when it
|
||
|
wastes away and dissolves into correctness, knowing it will never
|
||
|
visit his bereaved ear again. Well, how good it was to be able
|
||
|
to carry that gracious memory away with me!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I approached England the next morning, with the wide highway of
|
||
|
salt water all to myself. There were ships in the harbor, at
|
||
|
Dover, but they were naked as to sails, and there was no sign
|
||
|
of life about them. It was Sunday; yet at Canterbury the streets
|
||
|
were empty; strangest of all, there was not even a priest in sight,
|
||
|
and no stroke of a bell fell upon my ear. The mournfulness of
|
||
|
death was everywhere. I couldn't understand it. At last, in
|
||
|
the further edge of that town I saw a small funeral procession
|
||
|
--just a family and a few friends following a coffin--no priest;
|
||
|
a funeral without bell, book, or candle; there was a church there
|
||
|
close at hand, but they passed it by weeping, and did not enter it;
|
||
|
I glanced up at the belfry, and there hung the bell, shrouded in
|
||
|
black, and its tongue tied back. Now I knew! Now I understood
|
||
|
the stupendous calamity that had overtaken England. Invasion?
|
||
|
Invasion is a triviality to it. It was the INTERDICT!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked no questions; I didn't need to ask any. The Church had
|
||
|
struck; the thing for me to do was to get into a disguise, and
|
||
|
go warily. One of my servants gave me a suit of clothes, and
|
||
|
when we were safe beyond the town I put them on, and from that time
|
||
|
I traveled alone; I could not risk the embarrassment of company.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A miserable journey. A desolate silence everywhere. Even in
|
||
|
London itself. Traffic had ceased; men did not talk or laugh, or
|
||
|
go in groups, or even in couples; they moved aimlessly about, each
|
||
|
man by himself, with his head down, and woe and terror at his heart.
|
||
|
The Tower showed recent war-scars. Verily, much had been happening.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, I meant to take the train for Camelot. Train! Why,
|
||
|
the station was as vacant as a cavern. I moved on. The journey
|
||
|
to Camelot was a repetition of what I had already seen. The Monday
|
||
|
and the Tuesday differed in no way from the Sunday. I arrived
|
||
|
far in the night. From being the best electric-lighted town in
|
||
|
the kingdom and the most like a recumbent sun of anything you ever
|
||
|
saw, it was become simply a blot--a blot upon darkness--that is
|
||
|
to say, it was darker and solider than the rest of the darkness,
|
||
|
and so you could see it a little better; it made me feel as if
|
||
|
maybe it was symbolical--a sort of sign that the Church was going to
|
||
|
_keep_ the upper hand now, and snuff out all my beautiful civilization
|
||
|
just like that. I found no life stirring in the somber streets.
|
||
|
I groped my way with a heavy heart. The vast castle loomed black
|
||
|
upon the hilltop, not a spark visible about it. The drawbridge
|
||
|
was down, the great gate stood wide, I entered without challenge,
|
||
|
my own heels making the only sound I heard--and it was sepulchral
|
||
|
enough, in those huge vacant courts.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XLII
|
||
|
|
||
|
WAR!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I found Clarence alone in his quarters, drowned in melancholy;
|
||
|
and in place of the electric light, he had reinstituted the ancient
|
||
|
rag-lamp, and sat there in a grisly twilight with all curtains
|
||
|
drawn tight. He sprang up and rushed for me eagerly, saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, it's worth a billion milrays to look upon a live person again!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He knew me as easily as if I hadn't been disguised at all. Which
|
||
|
frightened me; one may easily believe that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Quick, now, tell me the meaning of this fearful disaster," I said.
|
||
|
"How did it come about?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, if there hadn't been any Queen Guenever, it wouldn't have
|
||
|
come so early; but it would have come, anyway. It would have
|
||
|
come on your own account by and by; by luck, it happened to come
|
||
|
on the queen's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_And_ Sir Launcelot's?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Just so."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Give me the details."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I reckon you will grant that during some years there has been
|
||
|
only one pair of eyes in these kingdoms that has not been looking
|
||
|
steadily askance at the queen and Sir Launcelot--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, King Arthur's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--and only one heart that was without suspicion--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--the king's; a heart that isn't capable of thinking evil
|
||
|
of a friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, the king might have gone on, still happy and unsuspecting,
|
||
|
to the end of his days, but for one of your modern improvements
|
||
|
--the stock-board. When you left, three miles of the London,
|
||
|
Canterbury and Dover were ready for the rails, and also ready and
|
||
|
ripe for manipulation in the stock-market. It was wildcat, and
|
||
|
everybody knew it. The stock was for sale at a give-away. What
|
||
|
does Sir Launcelot do, but--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, I know; he quietly picked up nearly all of it for a song;
|
||
|
then he bought about twice as much more, deliverable upon call;
|
||
|
and he was about to call when I left."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well, he did call. The boys couldn't deliver. Oh, he had
|
||
|
them--and he just settled his grip and squeezed them. They were
|
||
|
laughing in their sleeves over their smartness in selling stock
|
||
|
to him at 15 and 16 and along there that wasn't worth 10. Well,
|
||
|
when they had laughed long enough on that side of their mouths,
|
||
|
they rested-up that side by shifting the laugh to the other side.
|
||
|
That was when they compromised with the Invincible at 283!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good land!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He skinned them alive, and they deserved it--anyway, the whole
|
||
|
kingdom rejoiced. Well, among the flayed were Sir Agravaine and
|
||
|
Sir Mordred, nephews to the king. End of the first act. Act
|
||
|
second, scene first, an apartment in Carlisle castle, where the
|
||
|
court had gone for a few days' hunting. Persons present, the
|
||
|
whole tribe of the king's nephews. Mordred and Agravaine propose
|
||
|
to call the guileless Arthur's attention to Guenever and Sir
|
||
|
Launcelot. Sir Gawaine, Sir Gareth, and Sir Gaheris will have
|
||
|
nothing to do with it. A dispute ensues, with loud talk; in the
|
||
|
midst of it enter the king. Mordred and Agravaine spring their
|
||
|
devastating tale upon him. _Tableau_. A trap is laid for Launcelot,
|
||
|
by the king's command, and Sir Launcelot walks into it. He made
|
||
|
it sufficiently uncomfortable for the ambushed witnesses--to wit,
|
||
|
Mordred, Agravaine, and twelve knights of lesser rank, for he
|
||
|
killed every one of them but Mordred; but of course that couldn't
|
||
|
straighten matters between Launcelot and the king, and didn't."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, dear, only one thing could result--I see that. War, and
|
||
|
the knights of the realm divided into a king's party and a
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot's party."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--that was the way of it. The king sent the queen to the
|
||
|
stake, proposing to purify her with fire. Launcelot and his
|
||
|
knights rescued her, and in doing it slew certain good old friends
|
||
|
of yours and mine--in fact, some of the best we ever had; to wit,
|
||
|
Sir Belias le Orgulous, Sir Segwarides, Sir Griflet le Fils de Dieu,
|
||
|
Sir Brandiles, Sir Aglovale--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, you tear out my heartstrings."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--wait, I'm not done yet--Sir Tor, Sir Gauter, Sir Gillimer--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The very best man in my subordinate nine. What a handy right-fielder
|
||
|
he was!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--Sir Reynold's three brothers, Sir Damus, Sir Priamus, Sir Kay
|
||
|
the Stranger--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My peerless short-stop! I've seen him catch a daisy-cutter in
|
||
|
his teeth. Come, I can't stand this!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--Sir Driant, Sir Lambegus, Sir Herminde, Sir Pertilope,
|
||
|
Sir Perimones, and--whom do you think?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rush! Go on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir Gaheris, and Sir Gareth--both!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, incredible! Their love for Launcelot was indestructible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, it was an accident. They were simply onlookers; they were
|
||
|
unarmed, and were merely there to witness the queen's punishment.
|
||
|
Sir Launcelot smote down whoever came in the way of his blind fury,
|
||
|
and he killed these without noticing who they were. Here is an
|
||
|
instantaneous photograph one of our boys got of the battle; it's
|
||
|
for sale on every news-stand. There--the figures nearest the queen
|
||
|
are Sir Launcelot with his sword up, and Sir Gareth gasping his
|
||
|
latest breath. You can catch the agony in the queen's face through
|
||
|
the curling smoke. It's a rattling battle-picture."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, it is. We must take good care of it; its historical value
|
||
|
is incalculable. Go on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, the rest of the tale is just war, pure and simple. Launcelot
|
||
|
retreated to his town and castle of Joyous Gard, and gathered
|
||
|
there a great following of knights. The king, with a great host,
|
||
|
went there, and there was desperate fighting during several days,
|
||
|
and, as a result, all the plain around was paved with corpses
|
||
|
and cast-iron. Then the Church patched up a peace between Arthur
|
||
|
and Launcelot and the queen and everybody--everybody but Sir Gawaine.
|
||
|
He was bitter about the slaying of his brothers, Gareth and Gaheris,
|
||
|
and would not be appeased. He notified Launcelot to get him
|
||
|
thence, and make swift preparation, and look to be soon attacked.
|
||
|
So Launcelot sailed to his Duchy of Guienne with his following, and
|
||
|
Gawaine soon followed with an army, and he beguiled Arthur to go
|
||
|
with him. Arthur left the kingdom in Sir Mordred's hands until
|
||
|
you should return--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah--a king's customary wisdom!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. Sir Mordred set himself at once to work to make his kingship
|
||
|
permanent. He was going to marry Guenever, as a first move; but
|
||
|
she fled and shut herself up in the Tower of London. Mordred
|
||
|
attacked; the Bishop of Canterbury dropped down on him with the
|
||
|
Interdict. The king returned; Mordred fought him at Dover, at
|
||
|
Canterbury, and again at Barham Down. Then there was talk of peace
|
||
|
and a composition. Terms, Mordred to have Cornwall and Kent during
|
||
|
Arthur's life, and the whole kingdom afterward."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, upon my word! My dream of a republic to _be_ a dream, and
|
||
|
so remain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. The two armies lay near Salisbury. Gawaine--Gawaine's head
|
||
|
is at Dover Castle, he fell in the fight there--Gawaine appeared to
|
||
|
Arthur in a dream, at least his ghost did, and warned him to
|
||
|
refrain from conflict for a month, let the delay cost what it might.
|
||
|
But battle was precipitated by an accident. Arthur had given
|
||
|
order that if a sword was raised during the consultation over
|
||
|
the proposed treaty with Mordred, sound the trumpet and fall on!
|
||
|
for he had no confidence in Mordred. Mordred had given a similar
|
||
|
order to _his_ people. Well, by and by an adder bit a knight's heel;
|
||
|
the knight forgot all about the order, and made a slash at the
|
||
|
adder with his sword. Inside of half a minute those two prodigious
|
||
|
hosts came together with a crash! They butchered away all day.
|
||
|
Then the king--however, we have started something fresh since
|
||
|
you left--our paper has."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No? What is that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"War correspondence!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, that's good."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, the paper was booming right along, for the Interdict made
|
||
|
no impression, got no grip, while the war lasted. I had war
|
||
|
correspondents with both armies. I will finish that battle by
|
||
|
reading you what one of the boys says:
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Then the king looked about him, and then was he
|
||
|
ware of all his host and of all his good knights
|
||
|
were left no more on live but two knights, that
|
||
|
was Sir Lucan de Butlere, and his brother Sir
|
||
|
Bedivere: and they were full sore wounded. Jesu
|
||
|
mercy, said the king, where are all my noble
|
||
|
knights becomen? Alas that ever I should see this
|
||
|
doleful day. For now, said Arthur, I am come to
|
||
|
mine end. But would to God that I wist where were
|
||
|
that traitor Sir Mordred, that hath caused all
|
||
|
this mischief. Then was King Arthur ware where Sir
|
||
|
Mordred leaned upon his sword among a great heap
|
||
|
of dead men. Now give me my spear, said Arthur
|
||
|
unto Sir Lucan, for yonder I have espied the
|
||
|
traitor that all this woe hath wrought. Sir, let
|
||
|
him be, said Sir Lucan, for he is unhappy; and if
|
||
|
ye pass this unhappy day, ye shall be right well
|
||
|
revenged upon him. Good lord, remember ye of your
|
||
|
night's dream, and what the spirit of Sir Gawaine
|
||
|
told you this night, yet God of his great goodness
|
||
|
hath preserved you hitherto. Therefore, for God's
|
||
|
sake, my lord, leave off by this. For blessed be
|
||
|
God ye have won the field: for here we be three
|
||
|
on live, and with Sir Mordred is none on live.
|
||
|
And if ye leave off now, this wicked day of
|
||
|
destiny is past. Tide me death, betide me life,
|
||
|
saith the king, now I see him yonder alone, he
|
||
|
shall never escape mine hands, for at a better
|
||
|
avail shall I never have him. God speed you well,
|
||
|
said Sir Bedivere. Then the king gat his spear
|
||
|
in both his hands, and ran toward Sir Mordred
|
||
|
crying, Traitor, now is thy death day come. And
|
||
|
when Sir Mordred heard Sir Arthur, he ran until
|
||
|
him with his sword drawn in his hand. And then
|
||
|
King Arthur smote Sir Mordred under the shield,
|
||
|
with a foin of his spear throughout the body more
|
||
|
than a fathom. And when Sir Mordred felt that he
|
||
|
had his death's wound, he thrust himself, with
|
||
|
the might that he had, up to the butt of King
|
||
|
Arthur's spear. And right so he smote his father
|
||
|
Arthur with his sword holden in both his hands,
|
||
|
on the side of the head, that the sword pierced
|
||
|
the helmet and the brain-pan, and therewithal
|
||
|
Sir Mordred fell stark dead to the earth. And
|
||
|
the noble Arthur fell in a swoon to the earth,
|
||
|
and there he swooned oft-times--'"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is a good piece of war correspondence, Clarence; you are
|
||
|
a first-rate newspaper man. Well--is the king all right? Did
|
||
|
he get well?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Poor soul, no. He is dead."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was utterly stunned; it had not seemed to me that any wound
|
||
|
could be mortal to him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And the queen, Clarence?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is a nun, in Almesbury."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What changes! and in such a short while. It is inconceivable.
|
||
|
What next, I wonder?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can tell you what next."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stake our lives and stand by them!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean by that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Church is master now. The Interdict included you with Mordred;
|
||
|
it is not to be removed while you remain alive. The clans are
|
||
|
gathering. The Church has gathered all the knights that are left
|
||
|
alive, and as soon as you are discovered we shall have business
|
||
|
on our hands."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stuff! With our deadly scientific war-material; with our hosts
|
||
|
of trained--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Save your breath--we haven't sixty faithful left!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What are you saying? Our schools, our colleges, our vast
|
||
|
workshops, our--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When those knights come, those establishments will empty themselves
|
||
|
and go over to the enemy. Did you think you had educated the
|
||
|
superstition out of those people?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I certainly did think it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, you may unthink it. They stood every strain easily
|
||
|
--until the Interdict. Since then, they merely put on a bold
|
||
|
outside--at heart they are quaking. Make up your mind to it
|
||
|
--when the armies come, the mask will fall."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's hard news. We are lost. They will turn our own science
|
||
|
against us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No they won't."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Because I and a handful of the faithful have blocked that game.
|
||
|
I'll tell you what I've done, and what moved me to it. Smart as
|
||
|
you are, the Church was smarter. It was the Church that sent
|
||
|
you cruising--through her servants, the doctors."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Clarence!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is the truth. I know it. Every officer of your ship was
|
||
|
the Church's picked servant, and so was every man of the crew."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, come!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is just as I tell you. I did not find out these things at once,
|
||
|
but I found them out finally. Did you send me verbal information,
|
||
|
by the commander of the ship, to the effect that upon his return
|
||
|
to you, with supplies, you were going to leave Cadiz--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Cadiz! I haven't been at Cadiz at all!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"--going to leave Cadiz and cruise in distant seas indefinitely,
|
||
|
for the health of your family? Did you send me that word?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of course not. I would have written, wouldn't I?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Naturally. I was troubled and suspicious. When the commander
|
||
|
sailed again I managed to ship a spy with him. I have never
|
||
|
heard of vessel or spy since. I gave myself two weeks to hear
|
||
|
from you in. Then I resolved to send a ship to Cadiz. There was
|
||
|
a reason why I didn't."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What was that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Our navy had suddenly and mysteriously disappeared! Also, as
|
||
|
suddenly and as mysteriously, the railway and telegraph and
|
||
|
telephone service ceased, the men all deserted, poles were cut
|
||
|
down, the Church laid a ban upon the electric light! I had to be
|
||
|
up and doing--and straight off. Your life was safe--nobody in
|
||
|
these kingdoms but Merlin would venture to touch such a magician
|
||
|
as you without ten thousand men at his back--I had nothing to
|
||
|
think of but how to put preparations in the best trim against your
|
||
|
coming. I felt safe myself--nobody would be anxious to touch
|
||
|
a pet of yours. So this is what I did. From our various works
|
||
|
I selected all the men--boys I mean--whose faithfulness under
|
||
|
whatsoever pressure I could swear to, and I called them together
|
||
|
secretly and gave them their instructions. There are fifty-two of
|
||
|
them; none younger than fourteen, and none above seventeen years old."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why did you select boys?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Because all the others were born in an atmosphere of superstition
|
||
|
and reared in it. It is in their blood and bones. We imagined
|
||
|
we had educated it out of them; they thought so, too; the Interdict
|
||
|
woke them up like a thunderclap! It revealed them to themselves,
|
||
|
and it revealed them to me, too. With boys it was different. Such
|
||
|
as have been under our training from seven to ten years have had
|
||
|
no acquaintance with the Church's terrors, and it was among these
|
||
|
that I found my fifty-two. As a next move, I paid a private visit
|
||
|
to that old cave of Merlin's--not the small one--the big one--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, the one where we secretly established our first great electric
|
||
|
plant when I was projecting a miracle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Just so. And as that miracle hadn't become necessary then,
|
||
|
I thought it might be a good idea to utilize the plant now. I've
|
||
|
provisioned the cave for a siege--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A good idea, a first-rate idea."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think so. I placed four of my boys there as a guard--inside,
|
||
|
and out of sight. Nobody was to be hurt--while outside; but any
|
||
|
attempt to enter--well, we said just let anybody try it! Then
|
||
|
I went out into the hills and uncovered and cut the secret wires
|
||
|
which connected your bedroom with the wires that go to the dynamite
|
||
|
deposits under all our vast factories, mills, workshops, magazines,
|
||
|
etc., and about midnight I and my boys turned out and connected
|
||
|
that wire with the cave, and nobody but you and I suspects where
|
||
|
the other end of it goes to. We laid it under ground, of course, and
|
||
|
it was all finished in a couple of hours or so. We sha'n't have
|
||
|
to leave our fortress now when we want to blow up our civilization."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was the right move--and the natural one; military necessity,
|
||
|
in the changed condition of things. Well, what changes _have_ come!
|
||
|
We expected to be besieged in the palace some time or other, but
|
||
|
--however, go on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Next, we built a wire fence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wire fence?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. You dropped the hint of it yourself, two or three years ago."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, I remember--the time the Church tried her strength against
|
||
|
us the first time, and presently thought it wise to wait for a
|
||
|
hopefuler season. Well, how have you arranged the fence?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I start twelve immensely strong wires--naked, not insulated
|
||
|
--from a big dynamo in the cave--dynamo with no brushes except
|
||
|
a positive and a negative one--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, that's right."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The wires go out from the cave and fence in a circle of level
|
||
|
ground a hundred yards in diameter; they make twelve independent
|
||
|
fences, ten feet apart--that is to say, twelve circles within
|
||
|
circles--and their ends come into the cave again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Right; go on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The fences are fastened to heavy oaken posts only three feet apart,
|
||
|
and these posts are sunk five feet in the ground."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is good and strong."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. The wires have no ground-connection outside of the cave.
|
||
|
They go out from the positive brush of the dynamo; there is a
|
||
|
ground-connection through the negative brush; the other ends of
|
||
|
the wire return to the cave, and each is grounded independently."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no, that won't do!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's too expensive--uses up force for nothing. You don't want
|
||
|
any ground-connection except the one through the negative brush.
|
||
|
The other end of every wire must be brought back into the cave
|
||
|
and fastened independently, and _without_ any ground-connection.
|
||
|
Now, then, observe the economy of it. A cavalry charge hurls
|
||
|
itself against the fence; you are using no power, you are spending
|
||
|
no money, for there is only one ground-connection till those horses
|
||
|
come against the wire; the moment they touch it they form a
|
||
|
connection with the negative brush _through the ground_, and drop
|
||
|
dead. Don't you see?--you are using no energy until it is needed;
|
||
|
your lightning is there, and ready, like the load in a gun; but
|
||
|
it isn't costing you a cent till you touch it off. Oh, yes, the
|
||
|
single ground-connection--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of course! I don't know how I overlooked that. It's not only
|
||
|
cheaper, but it's more effectual than the other way, for if wires
|
||
|
break or get tangled, no harm is done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, especially if we have a tell-tale in the cave and disconnect
|
||
|
the broken wire. Well, go on. The gatlings?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--that's arranged. In the center of the inner circle, on a
|
||
|
spacious platform six feet high, I've grouped a battery of thirteen
|
||
|
gatling guns, and provided plenty of ammunition."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's it. They command every approach, and when the Church's
|
||
|
knights arrive, there's going to be music. The brow of the
|
||
|
precipice over the cave--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I've got a wire fence there, and a gatling. They won't drop any
|
||
|
rocks down on us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, and the glass-cylinder dynamite torpedoes?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's attended to. It's the prettiest garden that was ever
|
||
|
planted. It's a belt forty feet wide, and goes around the outer
|
||
|
fence--distance between it and the fence one hundred yards--kind of
|
||
|
neutral ground that space is. There isn't a single square yard
|
||
|
of that whole belt but is equipped with a torpedo. We laid them
|
||
|
on the surface of the ground, and sprinkled a layer of sand over
|
||
|
them. It's an innocent looking garden, but you let a man start
|
||
|
in to hoe it once, and you'll see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You tested the torpedoes?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I was going to, but--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But what? Why, it's an immense oversight not to apply a--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Test? Yes, I know; but they're all right; I laid a few in the
|
||
|
public road beyond our lines and they've been tested."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, that alters the case. Who did it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A Church committee."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How kind!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. They came to command us to make submission. You see they
|
||
|
didn't really come to test the torpedoes; that was merely an incident."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did the committee make a report?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, they made one. You could have heard it a mile."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Unanimous?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That was the nature of it. After that I put up some signs, for the
|
||
|
protection of future committees, and we have had no intruders since."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Clarence, you've done a world of work, and done it perfectly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We had plenty of time for it; there wasn't any occasion for hurry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We sat silent awhile, thinking. Then my mind was made up, and
|
||
|
I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, everything is ready; everything is shipshape, no detail is
|
||
|
wanting. I know what to do now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So do I; sit down and wait."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, _sir_! rise up and _strike_!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you mean it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, indeed! The _de_fensive isn't in my line, and the _of_fensive
|
||
|
is. That is, when I hold a fair hand--two-thirds as good a hand
|
||
|
as the enemy. Oh, yes, we'll rise up and strike; that's our game."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A hundred to one you are right. When does the performance begin?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Now!_ We'll proclaim the Republic."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, that _will_ precipitate things, sure enough!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will make them buzz, I tell you! England will be a hornets'
|
||
|
nest before noon to-morrow, if the Church's hand hasn't lost its
|
||
|
cunning--and we know it hasn't. Now you write and I'll dictate thus:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"PROCLAMATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
---
|
||
|
|
||
|
"BE IT KNOWN UNTO ALL. Whereas the king having died
|
||
|
and left no heir, it becomes my duty to continue the
|
||
|
executive authority vested in me, until a government
|
||
|
shall have been created and set in motion. The
|
||
|
monarchy has lapsed, it no longer exists. By
|
||
|
consequence, all political power has reverted to its
|
||
|
original source, the people of the nation. With the
|
||
|
monarchy, its several adjuncts died also; wherefore
|
||
|
there is no longer a nobility, no longer a privileged
|
||
|
class, no longer an Established Church; all men are
|
||
|
become exactly equal; they are upon one common
|
||
|
level, and religion is free. _A Republic is hereby
|
||
|
proclaimed_, as being the natural estate of a nation
|
||
|
when other authority has ceased. It is the duty of
|
||
|
the British people to meet together immediately,
|
||
|
and by their votes elect representatives and deliver
|
||
|
into their hands the government."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I signed it "The Boss," and dated it from Merlin's Cave.
|
||
|
Clarence said--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, that tells where we are, and invites them to call right away."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is the idea. We _strike_--by the Proclamation--then it's
|
||
|
their innings. Now have the thing set up and printed and posted,
|
||
|
right off; that is, give the order; then, if you've got a couple
|
||
|
of bicycles handy at the foot of the hill, ho for Merlin's Cave!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I shall be ready in ten minutes. What a cyclone there is going
|
||
|
to be to-morrow when this piece of paper gets to work!... It's a
|
||
|
pleasant old palace, this is; I wonder if we shall ever again
|
||
|
--but never mind about that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XLIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE BATTLE OF THE SAND BELT
|
||
|
|
||
|
In Merlin's Cave--Clarence and I and fifty-two fresh, bright,
|
||
|
well-educated, clean-minded young British boys. At dawn I sent
|
||
|
an order to the factories and to all our great works to stop
|
||
|
operations and remove all life to a safe distance, as everything
|
||
|
was going to be blown up by secret mines, "_and no telling at what
|
||
|
moment--therefore, vacate at once_." These people knew me, and
|
||
|
had confidence in my word. They would clear out without waiting
|
||
|
to part their hair, and I could take my own time about dating the
|
||
|
explosion. You couldn't hire one of them to go back during the
|
||
|
century, if the explosion was still impending.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had a week of waiting. It was not dull for me, because I was
|
||
|
writing all the time. During the first three days, I finished
|
||
|
turning my old diary into this narrative form; it only required
|
||
|
a chapter or so to bring it down to date. The rest of the week
|
||
|
I took up in writing letters to my wife. It was always my habit
|
||
|
to write to Sandy every day, whenever we were separate, and now
|
||
|
I kept up the habit for love of it, and of her, though I couldn't
|
||
|
do anything with the letters, of course, after I had written them.
|
||
|
But it put in the time, you see, and was almost like talking;
|
||
|
it was almost as if I was saying, "Sandy, if you and Hello-Central
|
||
|
were here in the cave, instead of only your photographs, what
|
||
|
good times we could have!" And then, you know, I could imagine
|
||
|
the baby goo-gooing something out in reply, with its fists in its
|
||
|
mouth and itself stretched across its mother's lap on its back,
|
||
|
and she a-laughing and admiring and worshipping, and now and then
|
||
|
tickling under the baby's chin to set it cackling, and then maybe
|
||
|
throwing in a word of answer to me herself--and so on and so on
|
||
|
--well, don't you know, I could sit there in the cave with my pen,
|
||
|
and keep it up, that way, by the hour with them. Why, it was
|
||
|
almost like having us all together again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had spies out every night, of course, to get news. Every report
|
||
|
made things look more and more impressive. The hosts were gathering,
|
||
|
gathering; down all the roads and paths of England the knights were
|
||
|
riding, and priests rode with them, to hearten these original
|
||
|
Crusaders, this being the Church's war. All the nobilities, big
|
||
|
and little, were on their way, and all the gentry. This was all
|
||
|
as was expected. We should thin out this sort of folk to such
|
||
|
a degree that the people would have nothing to do but just step
|
||
|
to the front with their republic and--
|
||
|
|
||
|
Ah, what a donkey I was! Toward the end of the week I began to get
|
||
|
this large and disenchanting fact through my head: that the mass
|
||
|
of the nation had swung their caps and shouted for the republic for
|
||
|
about one day, and there an end! The Church, the nobles, and
|
||
|
the gentry then turned one grand, all-disapproving frown upon them
|
||
|
and shriveled them into sheep! From that moment the sheep had
|
||
|
begun to gather to the fold--that is to say, the camps--and offer
|
||
|
their valueless lives and their valuable wool to the "righteous
|
||
|
cause." Why, even the very men who had lately been slaves were
|
||
|
in the "righteous cause," and glorifying it, praying for it,
|
||
|
sentimentally slabbering over it, just like all the other commoners.
|
||
|
Imagine such human muck as this; conceive of this folly!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, it was now "Death to the Republic!" everywhere--not a dissenting
|
||
|
voice. All England was marching against us! Truly, this was more
|
||
|
than I had bargained for.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I watched my fifty-two boys narrowly; watched their faces, their
|
||
|
walk, their unconscious attitudes: for all these are a language
|
||
|
--a language given us purposely that it may betray us in times of
|
||
|
emergency, when we have secrets which we want to keep. I knew
|
||
|
that that thought would keep saying itself over and over again
|
||
|
in their minds and hearts, _All England is marching against us!_
|
||
|
and ever more strenuously imploring attention with each repetition,
|
||
|
ever more sharply realizing itself to their imaginations, until
|
||
|
even in their sleep they would find no rest from it, but hear
|
||
|
the vague and flitting creatures of the dreams say, _All England_
|
||
|
--ALL ENGLAND!--_is marching against you_! I knew all this would
|
||
|
happen; I knew that ultimately the pressure would become so great
|
||
|
that it would compel utterance; therefore, I must be ready with an
|
||
|
answer at that time--an answer well chosen and tranquilizing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was right. The time came. They HAD to speak. Poor lads, it
|
||
|
was pitiful to see, they were so pale, so worn, so troubled. At
|
||
|
first their spokesman could hardly find voice or words; but he
|
||
|
presently got both. This is what he said--and he put it in the
|
||
|
neat modern English taught him in my schools:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We have tried to forget what we are--English boys! We have tried
|
||
|
to put reason before sentiment, duty before love; our minds
|
||
|
approve, but our hearts reproach us. While apparently it was
|
||
|
only the nobility, only the gentry, only the twenty-five or thirty
|
||
|
thousand knights left alive out of the late wars, we were of one
|
||
|
mind, and undisturbed by any troubling doubt; each and every one
|
||
|
of these fifty-two lads who stand here before you, said, 'They
|
||
|
have chosen--it is their affair.' But think!--the matter is
|
||
|
altered--_All England is marching against us_! Oh, sir, consider!
|
||
|
--reflect!--these people are our people, they are bone of our bone,
|
||
|
flesh of our flesh, we love them--do not ask us to destroy our nation!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, it shows the value of looking ahead, and being ready for
|
||
|
a thing when it happens. If I hadn't foreseen this thing and been
|
||
|
fixed, that boy would have had me!--I couldn't have said a word.
|
||
|
But I was fixed. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My boys, your hearts are in the right place, you have thought the
|
||
|
worthy thought, you have done the worthy thing. You are English
|
||
|
boys, you will remain English boys, and you will keep that name
|
||
|
unsmirched. Give yourselves no further concern, let your minds be
|
||
|
at peace. Consider this: while all England is marching against
|
||
|
us, who is in the van? Who, by the commonest rules of war, will
|
||
|
march in the front? Answer me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The mounted host of mailed knights."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True. They are thirty thousand strong. Acres deep they will march.
|
||
|
Now, observe: none but _they_ will ever strike the sand-belt! Then
|
||
|
there will be an episode! Immediately after, the civilian multitude
|
||
|
in the rear will retire, to meet business engagements elsewhere.
|
||
|
None but nobles and gentry are knights, and _none but these_ will
|
||
|
remain to dance to our music after that episode. It is absolutely
|
||
|
true that we shall have to fight nobody but these thirty thousand
|
||
|
knights. Now speak, and it shall be as you decide. Shall we
|
||
|
avoid the battle, retire from the field?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"NO!!!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The shout was unanimous and hearty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you--are you--well, afraid of these thirty thousand knights?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
That joke brought out a good laugh, the boys' troubles vanished
|
||
|
away, and they went gaily to their posts. Ah, they were a darling
|
||
|
fifty-two! As pretty as girls, too.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was ready for the enemy now. Let the approaching big day come
|
||
|
along--it would find us on deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The big day arrived on time. At dawn the sentry on watch in the
|
||
|
corral came into the cave and reported a moving black mass under
|
||
|
the horizon, and a faint sound which he thought to be military
|
||
|
music. Breakfast was just ready; we sat down and ate it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This over, I made the boys a little speech, and then sent out
|
||
|
a detail to man the battery, with Clarence in command of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sun rose presently and sent its unobstructed splendors over
|
||
|
the land, and we saw a prodigious host moving slowly toward us,
|
||
|
with the steady drift and aligned front of a wave of the sea.
|
||
|
Nearer and nearer it came, and more and more sublimely imposing
|
||
|
became its aspect; yes, all England was there, apparently. Soon
|
||
|
we could see the innumerable banners fluttering, and then the sun
|
||
|
struck the sea of armor and set it all aflash. Yes, it was a fine
|
||
|
sight; I hadn't ever seen anything to beat it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last we could make out details. All the front ranks, no telling
|
||
|
how many acres deep, were horsemen--plumed knights in armor.
|
||
|
Suddenly we heard the blare of trumpets; the slow walk burst into
|
||
|
a gallop, and then--well, it was wonderful to see! Down swept
|
||
|
that vast horse-shoe wave--it approached the sand-belt--my breath
|
||
|
stood still; nearer, nearer--the strip of green turf beyond the
|
||
|
yellow belt grew narrow--narrower still--became a mere ribbon in
|
||
|
front of the horses--then disappeared under their hoofs. Great
|
||
|
Scott! Why, the whole front of that host shot into the sky with
|
||
|
a thunder-crash, and became a whirling tempest of rags and fragments;
|
||
|
and along the ground lay a thick wall of smoke that hid what was
|
||
|
left of the multitude from our sight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Time for the second step in the plan of campaign! I touched
|
||
|
a button, and shook the bones of England loose from her spine!
|
||
|
|
||
|
In that explosion all our noble civilization-factories went up in
|
||
|
the air and disappeared from the earth. It was a pity, but it
|
||
|
was necessary. We could not afford to let the enemy turn our own
|
||
|
weapons against us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now ensued one of the dullest quarter-hours I had ever endured.
|
||
|
We waited in a silent solitude enclosed by our circles of wire,
|
||
|
and by a circle of heavy smoke outside of these. We couldn't
|
||
|
see over the wall of smoke, and we couldn't see through it. But
|
||
|
at last it began to shred away lazily, and by the end of another
|
||
|
quarter-hour the land was clear and our curiosity was enabled
|
||
|
to satisfy itself. No living creature was in sight! We now
|
||
|
perceived that additions had been made to our defenses. The
|
||
|
dynamite had dug a ditch more than a hundred feet wide, all around
|
||
|
us, and cast up an embankment some twenty-five feet high on both
|
||
|
borders of it. As to destruction of life, it was amazing. Moreover,
|
||
|
it was beyond estimate. Of course, we could not _count_ the dead,
|
||
|
because they did not exist as individuals, but merely as homogeneous
|
||
|
protoplasm, with alloys of iron and buttons.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No life was in sight, but necessarily there must have been some
|
||
|
wounded in the rear ranks, who were carried off the field under
|
||
|
cover of the wall of smoke; there would be sickness among the
|
||
|
others--there always is, after an episode like that. But there
|
||
|
would be no reinforcements; this was the last stand of the chivalry
|
||
|
of England; it was all that was left of the order, after the recent
|
||
|
annihilating wars. So I felt quite safe in believing that the
|
||
|
utmost force that could for the future be brought against us
|
||
|
would be but small; that is, of knights. I therefore issued a
|
||
|
congratulatory proclamation to my army in these words:
|
||
|
|
||
|
SOLDIERS, CHAMPIONS OF HUMAN LIBERTY AND EQUALITY:
|
||
|
Your General congratulates you! In the pride of his
|
||
|
strength and the vanity of his renown, an arrogant
|
||
|
enemy came against you. You were ready. The conflict
|
||
|
was brief; on your side, glorious. This mighty
|
||
|
victory, having been achieved utterly without loss,
|
||
|
stands without example in history. So long as the
|
||
|
planets shall continue to move in their orbits, the
|
||
|
BATTLE OF THE SAND-BELT will not perish out of the
|
||
|
memories of men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE BOSS.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I read it well, and the applause I got was very gratifying to me.
|
||
|
I then wound up with these remarks:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The war with the English nation, as a nation, is at an end.
|
||
|
The nation has retired from the field and the war. Before it can
|
||
|
be persuaded to return, war will have ceased. This campaign is
|
||
|
the only one that is going to be fought. It will be brief
|
||
|
--the briefest in history. Also the most destructive to life,
|
||
|
considered from the standpoint of proportion of casualties to
|
||
|
numbers engaged. We are done with the nation; henceforth we deal
|
||
|
only with the knights. English knights can be killed, but they
|
||
|
cannot be conquered. We know what is before us. While one of
|
||
|
these men remains alive, our task is not finished, the war is not
|
||
|
ended. We will kill them all." [Loud and long continued applause.]
|
||
|
|
||
|
I picketed the great embankments thrown up around our lines by
|
||
|
the dynamite explosion--merely a lookout of a couple of boys
|
||
|
to announce the enemy when he should appear again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Next, I sent an engineer and forty men to a point just beyond
|
||
|
our lines on the south, to turn a mountain brook that was there,
|
||
|
and bring it within our lines and under our command, arranging
|
||
|
it in such a way that I could make instant use of it in an emergency.
|
||
|
The forty men were divided into two shifts of twenty each, and
|
||
|
were to relieve each other every two hours. In ten hours the
|
||
|
work was accomplished.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was nightfall now, and I withdrew my pickets. The one who
|
||
|
had had the northern outlook reported a camp in sight, but visible
|
||
|
with the glass only. He also reported that a few knights had been
|
||
|
feeling their way toward us, and had driven some cattle across our
|
||
|
lines, but that the knights themselves had not come very near.
|
||
|
That was what I had been expecting. They were feeling us, you
|
||
|
see; they wanted to know if we were going to play that red terror
|
||
|
on them again. They would grow bolder in the night, perhaps.
|
||
|
I believed I knew what project they would attempt, because it was
|
||
|
plainly the thing I would attempt myself if I were in their places
|
||
|
and as ignorant as they were. I mentioned it to Clarence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think you are right," said he; "it is the obvious thing for
|
||
|
them to try."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then," I said, "if they do it they are doomed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They won't have the slightest show in the world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of course they won't."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's dreadful, Clarence. It seems an awful pity."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The thing disturbed me so that I couldn't get any peace of mind
|
||
|
for thinking of it and worrying over it. So, at last, to quiet
|
||
|
my conscience, I framed this message to the knights:
|
||
|
|
||
|
TO THE HONORABLE THE COMMANDER OF THE INSURGENT
|
||
|
CHIVALRY OF ENGLAND: YOU fight in vain. We know
|
||
|
your strength--if one may call it by that name.
|
||
|
We know that at the utmost you cannot bring
|
||
|
against us above five and twenty thousand knights.
|
||
|
Therefore, you have no chance--none whatever.
|
||
|
Reflect: we are well equipped, well fortified, we
|
||
|
number 54. Fifty-four what? Men? No, MINDS--the
|
||
|
capablest in the world; a force against which
|
||
|
mere animal might may no more hope to prevail than
|
||
|
may the idle waves of the sea hope to prevail
|
||
|
against the granite barriers of England. Be advised.
|
||
|
We offer you your lives; for the sake of your
|
||
|
families, do not reject the gift. We offer you
|
||
|
this chance, and it is the last: throw down your
|
||
|
arms; surrender unconditionally to the Republic,
|
||
|
and all will be forgiven.
|
||
|
|
||
|
(Signed) THE BOSS.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I read it to Clarence, and said I proposed to send it by a flag
|
||
|
of truce. He laughed the sarcastic laugh he was born with, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Somehow it seems impossible for you to ever fully realize what
|
||
|
these nobilities are. Now let us save a little time and trouble.
|
||
|
Consider me the commander of the knights yonder. Now, then,
|
||
|
you are the flag of truce; approach and deliver me your message,
|
||
|
and I will give you your answer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I humored the idea. I came forward under an imaginary guard of
|
||
|
the enemy's soldiers, produced my paper, and read it through.
|
||
|
For answer, Clarence struck the paper out of my hand, pursed up
|
||
|
a scornful lip and said with lofty disdain:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dismember me this animal, and return him in a basket to the
|
||
|
base-born knave who sent him; other answer have I none!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
How empty is theory in presence of fact! And this was just fact,
|
||
|
and nothing else. It was the thing that would have happened,
|
||
|
there was no getting around that. I tore up the paper and granted
|
||
|
my mistimed sentimentalities a permanent rest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then, to business. I tested the electric signals from the gatling
|
||
|
platform to the cave, and made sure that they were all right;
|
||
|
I tested and retested those which commanded the fences--these
|
||
|
were signals whereby I could break and renew the electric current
|
||
|
in each fence independently of the others at will. I placed the
|
||
|
brook-connection under the guard and authority of three of my
|
||
|
best boys, who would alternate in two-hour watches all night and
|
||
|
promptly obey my signal, if I should have occasion to give it
|
||
|
--three revolver-shots in quick succession. Sentry-duty was discarded
|
||
|
for the night, and the corral left empty of life; I ordered that
|
||
|
quiet be maintained in the cave, and the electric lights turned
|
||
|
down to a glimmer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as it was good and dark, I shut off the current from all
|
||
|
the fences, and then groped my way out to the embankment bordering
|
||
|
our side of the great dynamite ditch. I crept to the top of it
|
||
|
and lay there on the slant of the muck to watch. But it was
|
||
|
too dark to see anything. As for sounds, there were none. The
|
||
|
stillness was deathlike. True, there were the usual night-sounds
|
||
|
of the country--the whir of night-birds, the buzzing of insects,
|
||
|
the barking of distant dogs, the mellow lowing of far-off kine
|
||
|
--but these didn't seem to break the stillness, they only intensified
|
||
|
it, and added a grewsome melancholy to it into the bargain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I presently gave up looking, the night shut down so black, but
|
||
|
I kept my ears strained to catch the least suspicious sound, for
|
||
|
I judged I had only to wait, and I shouldn't be disappointed.
|
||
|
However, I had to wait a long time. At last I caught what you
|
||
|
may call in distinct glimpses of sound dulled metallic sound.
|
||
|
I pricked up my ears, then, and held my breath, for this was the
|
||
|
sort of thing I had been waiting for. This sound thickened, and
|
||
|
approached--from toward the north. Presently, I heard it at my
|
||
|
own level--the ridge-top of the opposite embankment, a hundred
|
||
|
feet or more away. Then I seemed to see a row of black dots appear
|
||
|
along that ridge--human heads? I couldn't tell; it mightn't be
|
||
|
anything at all; you can't depend on your eyes when your imagination
|
||
|
is out of focus. However, the question was soon settled. I heard
|
||
|
that metallic noise descending into the great ditch. It augmented
|
||
|
fast, it spread all along, and it unmistakably furnished me this
|
||
|
fact: an armed host was taking up its quarters in the ditch. Yes,
|
||
|
these people were arranging a little surprise party for us. We
|
||
|
could expect entertainment about dawn, possibly earlier.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I groped my way back to the corral now; I had seen enough. I went
|
||
|
to the platform and signaled to turn the current on to the two
|
||
|
inner fences. Then I went into the cave, and found everything
|
||
|
satisfactory there--nobody awake but the working-watch. I woke
|
||
|
Clarence and told him the great ditch was filling up with men,
|
||
|
and that I believed all the knights were coming for us in a body.
|
||
|
It was my notion that as soon as dawn approached we could expect
|
||
|
the ditch's ambuscaded thousands to swarm up over the embankment
|
||
|
and make an assault, and be followed immediately by the rest
|
||
|
of their army.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Clarence said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They will be wanting to send a scout or two in the dark to make
|
||
|
preliminary observations. Why not take the lightning off the
|
||
|
outer fences, and give them a chance?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I've already done it, Clarence. Did you ever know me to be
|
||
|
inhospitable?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, you are a good heart. I want to go and--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Be a reception committee? I will go, too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We crossed the corral and lay down together between the two inside
|
||
|
fences. Even the dim light of the cave had disordered our eyesight
|
||
|
somewhat, but the focus straightway began to regulate itself and
|
||
|
soon it was adjusted for present circumstances. We had had to feel
|
||
|
our way before, but we could make out to see the fence posts now.
|
||
|
We started a whispered conversation, but suddenly Clarence broke
|
||
|
off and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is what?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That thing yonder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What thing--where?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There beyond you a little piece--dark something--a dull shape
|
||
|
of some kind--against the second fence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I gazed and he gazed. I said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Could it be a man, Clarence?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, I think not. If you notice, it looks a lit--why, it _is_
|
||
|
a man!--leaning on the fence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I certainly believe it is; let us go and see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We crept along on our hands and knees until we were pretty close,
|
||
|
and then looked up. Yes, it was a man--a dim great figure in armor,
|
||
|
standing erect, with both hands on the upper wire--and, of course,
|
||
|
there was a smell of burning flesh. Poor fellow, dead as a
|
||
|
door-nail, and never knew what hurt him. He stood there like a
|
||
|
statue--no motion about him, except that his plumes swished about
|
||
|
a little in the night wind. We rose up and looked in through
|
||
|
the bars of his visor, but couldn't make out whether we knew him
|
||
|
or not--features too dim and shadowed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We heard muffled sounds approaching, and we sank down to the ground
|
||
|
where we were. We made out another knight vaguely; he was coming
|
||
|
very stealthily, and feeling his way. He was near enough now for
|
||
|
us to see him put out a hand, find an upper wire, then bend and
|
||
|
step under it and over the lower one. Now he arrived at the
|
||
|
first knight--and started slightly when he discovered him. He
|
||
|
stood a moment--no doubt wondering why the other one didn't move
|
||
|
on; then he said, in a low voice, "Why dreamest thou here, good
|
||
|
Sir Mar--" then he laid his hand on the corpse's shoulder--and just
|
||
|
uttered a little soft moan and sunk down dead. Killed by a dead
|
||
|
man, you see--killed by a dead friend, in fact. There was something
|
||
|
awful about it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
These early birds came scattering along after each other, about
|
||
|
one every five minutes in our vicinity, during half an hour.
|
||
|
They brought no armor of offense but their swords; as a rule,
|
||
|
they carried the sword ready in the hand, and put it forward and
|
||
|
found the wires with it. We would now and then see a blue spark
|
||
|
when the knight that caused it was so far away as to be invisible
|
||
|
to us; but we knew what had happened, all the same; poor fellow,
|
||
|
he had touched a charged wire with his sword and been electrocuted.
|
||
|
We had brief intervals of grim stillness, interrupted with piteous
|
||
|
regularity by the clash made by the falling of an iron-clad; and
|
||
|
this sort of thing was going on, right along, and was very creepy
|
||
|
there in the dark and lonesomeness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We concluded to make a tour between the inner fences. We elected
|
||
|
to walk upright, for convenience's sake; we argued that if discerned,
|
||
|
we should be taken for friends rather than enemies, and in any case
|
||
|
we should be out of reach of swords, and these gentry did not seem
|
||
|
to have any spears along. Well, it was a curious trip. Everywhere
|
||
|
dead men were lying outside the second fence--not plainly visible,
|
||
|
but still visible; and we counted fifteen of those pathetic
|
||
|
statues--dead knights standing with their hands on the upper wire.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One thing seemed to be sufficiently demonstrated: our current
|
||
|
was so tremendous that it killed before the victim could cry out.
|
||
|
Pretty soon we detected a muffled and heavy sound, and next moment
|
||
|
we guessed what it was. It was a surprise in force coming! I whispered
|
||
|
Clarence to go and wake the army, and notify it to wait in silence
|
||
|
in the cave for further orders. He was soon back, and we stood
|
||
|
by the inner fence and watched the silent lightning do its awful
|
||
|
work upon that swarming host. One could make out but little of
|
||
|
detail; but he could note that a black mass was piling itself up
|
||
|
beyond the second fence. That swelling bulk was dead men! Our
|
||
|
camp was enclosed with a solid wall of the dead--a bulwark,
|
||
|
a breastwork, of corpses, you may say. One terrible thing about
|
||
|
this thing was the absence of human voices; there were no cheers,
|
||
|
no war cries; being intent upon a surprise, these men moved as
|
||
|
noiselessly as they could; and always when the front rank was near
|
||
|
enough to their goal to make it proper for them to begin to get
|
||
|
a shout ready, of course they struck the fatal line and went down
|
||
|
without testifying.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sent a current through the third fence now; and almost immediately
|
||
|
through the fourth and fifth, so quickly were the gaps filled up.
|
||
|
I believed the time was come now for my climax; I believed that
|
||
|
that whole army was in our trap. Anyway, it was high time to find
|
||
|
out. So I touched a button and set fifty electric suns aflame
|
||
|
on the top of our precipice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Land, what a sight! We were enclosed in three walls of dead men!
|
||
|
All the other fences were pretty nearly filled with the living,
|
||
|
who were stealthily working their way forward through the wires.
|
||
|
The sudden glare paralyzed this host, petrified them, you may say,
|
||
|
with astonishment; there was just one instant for me to utilize
|
||
|
their immobility in, and I didn't lose the chance. You see, in
|
||
|
another instant they would have recovered their faculties, then
|
||
|
they'd have burst into a cheer and made a rush, and my wires
|
||
|
would have gone down before it; but that lost instant lost them
|
||
|
their opportunity forever; while even that slight fragment of time
|
||
|
was still unspent, I shot the current through all the fences and
|
||
|
struck the whole host dead in their tracks! _There_ was a groan
|
||
|
you could _hear_! It voiced the death-pang of eleven thousand men.
|
||
|
It swelled out on the night with awful pathos.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A glance showed that the rest of the enemy--perhaps ten thousand
|
||
|
strong--were between us and the encircling ditch, and pressing
|
||
|
forward to the assault. Consequently we had them _all!_ and had
|
||
|
them past help. Time for the last act of the tragedy. I fired
|
||
|
the three appointed revolver shots--which meant:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Turn on the water!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a sudden rush and roar, and in a minute the mountain
|
||
|
brook was raging through the big ditch and creating a river a
|
||
|
hundred feet wide and twenty-five deep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stand to your guns, men! Open fire!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The thirteen gatlings began to vomit death into the fated ten
|
||
|
thousand. They halted, they stood their ground a moment against
|
||
|
that withering deluge of fire, then they broke, faced about and
|
||
|
swept toward the ditch like chaff before a gale. A full fourth
|
||
|
part of their force never reached the top of the lofty embankment;
|
||
|
the three-fourths reached it and plunged over--to death by drowning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Within ten short minutes after we had opened fire, armed resistance
|
||
|
was totally annihilated, the campaign was ended, we fifty-four were
|
||
|
masters of England. Twenty-five thousand men lay dead around us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But how treacherous is fortune! In a little while--say an hour
|
||
|
--happened a thing, by my own fault, which--but I have no heart
|
||
|
to write that. Let the record end here.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XLIV
|
||
|
|
||
|
A POSTSCRIPT BY CLARENCE
|
||
|
|
||
|
I, Clarence, must write it for him. He proposed that we two
|
||
|
go out and see if any help could be accorded the wounded. I was
|
||
|
strenuous against the project. I said that if there were many,
|
||
|
we could do but little for them; and it would not be wise for us to
|
||
|
trust ourselves among them, anyway. But he could seldom be turned
|
||
|
from a purpose once formed; so we shut off the electric current
|
||
|
from the fences, took an escort along, climbed over the enclosing
|
||
|
ramparts of dead knights, and moved out upon the field. The first
|
||
|
wounded mall who appealed for help was sitting with his back
|
||
|
against a dead comrade. When The Boss bent over him and spoke
|
||
|
to him, the man recognized him and stabbed him. That knight was
|
||
|
Sir Meliagraunce, as I found out by tearing off his helmet. He
|
||
|
will not ask for help any more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We carried The Boss to the cave and gave his wound, which was
|
||
|
not very serious, the best care we could. In this service we had
|
||
|
the help of Merlin, though we did not know it. He was disguised
|
||
|
as a woman, and appeared to be a simple old peasant goodwife.
|
||
|
In this disguise, with brown-stained face and smooth shaven, he
|
||
|
had appeared a few days after The Boss was hurt and offered to cook
|
||
|
for us, saying her people had gone off to join certain new camps
|
||
|
which the enemy were forming, and that she was starving. The Boss
|
||
|
had been getting along very well, and had amused himself with
|
||
|
finishing up his record.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were glad to have this woman, for we were short handed. We
|
||
|
were in a trap, you see--a trap of our own making. If we stayed
|
||
|
where we were, our dead would kill us; if we moved out of our
|
||
|
defenses, we should no longer be invincible. We had conquered;
|
||
|
in turn we were conquered. The Boss recognized this; we all
|
||
|
recognized it. If we could go to one of those new camps and
|
||
|
patch up some kind of terms with the enemy--yes, but The Boss
|
||
|
could not go, and neither could I, for I was among the first that
|
||
|
were made sick by the poisonous air bred by those dead thousands.
|
||
|
Others were taken down, and still others. To-morrow--
|
||
|
|
||
|
_To-morrow._ It is here. And with it the end. About midnight
|
||
|
I awoke, and saw that hag making curious passes in the air about
|
||
|
The Boss's head and face, and wondered what it meant. Everybody
|
||
|
but the dynamo-watch lay steeped in sleep; there was no sound.
|
||
|
The woman ceased from her mysterious foolery, and started tip-toeing
|
||
|
toward the door. I called out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stop! What have you been doing?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She halted, and said with an accent of malicious satisfaction:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye were conquerors; ye are conquered! These others are perishing
|
||
|
--you also. Ye shall all die in this place--every one--except _him_.
|
||
|
He sleepeth now--and shall sleep thirteen centuries. I am Merlin!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then such a delirium of silly laughter overtook him that he reeled
|
||
|
about like a drunken man, and presently fetched up against one
|
||
|
of our wires. His mouth is spread open yet; apparently he is still
|
||
|
laughing. I suppose the face will retain that petrified laugh until
|
||
|
the corpse turns to dust.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Boss has never stirred--sleeps like a stone. If he does not
|
||
|
wake to-day we shall understand what kind of a sleep it is, and
|
||
|
his body will then be borne to a place in one of the remote recesses
|
||
|
of the cave where none will ever find it to desecrate it. As for
|
||
|
the rest of us--well, it is agreed that if any one of us ever
|
||
|
escapes alive from this place, he will write the fact here, and
|
||
|
loyally hide this Manuscript with The Boss, our dear good chief,
|
||
|
whose property it is, be he alive or dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE END OF THE MANUSCRIPT
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
FINAL P.S. BY M.T.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The dawn was come when I laid the Manuscript aside. The rain
|
||
|
had almost ceased, the world was gray and sad, the exhausted storm
|
||
|
was sighing and sobbing itself to rest. I went to the stranger's
|
||
|
room, and listened at his door, which was slightly ajar. I could
|
||
|
hear his voice, and so I knocked. There was no answer, but I still
|
||
|
heard the voice. I peeped in. The man lay on his back in bed,
|
||
|
talking brokenly but with spirit, and punctuating with his arms,
|
||
|
which he thrashed about, restlessly, as sick people do in delirium.
|
||
|
I slipped in softly and bent over him. His mutterings and
|
||
|
ejaculations went on. I spoke--merely a word, to call his attention.
|
||
|
His glassy eyes and his ashy face were alight in an instant with
|
||
|
pleasure, gratitude, gladness, welcome:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, Sandy, you are come at last--how I have longed for you! Sit
|
||
|
by me--do not leave me--never leave me again, Sandy, never again.
|
||
|
Where is your hand?--give it me, dear, let me hold it--there
|
||
|
--now all is well, all is peace, and I am happy again--_we_ are happy
|
||
|
again, isn't it so, Sandy? You are so dim, so vague, you are but
|
||
|
a mist, a cloud, but you are _here_, and that is blessedness sufficient;
|
||
|
and I have your hand; don't take it away--it is for only a little
|
||
|
while, I shall not require it long.... Was that the child?...
|
||
|
Hello-Central!... she doesn't answer. Asleep, perhaps? Bring her
|
||
|
when she wakes, and let me touch her hands, her face, her hair,
|
||
|
and tell her good-bye.... Sandy! Yes, you are there. I lost
|
||
|
myself a moment, and I thought you were gone.... Have I been
|
||
|
sick long? It must be so; it seems months to me. And such dreams!
|
||
|
such strange and awful dreams, Sandy! Dreams that were as real
|
||
|
as reality--delirium, of course, but _so_ real! Why, I thought
|
||
|
the king was dead, I thought you were in Gaul and couldn't get
|
||
|
home, I thought there was a revolution; in the fantastic frenzy
|
||
|
of these dreams, I thought that Clarence and I and a handful of
|
||
|
my cadets fought and exterminated the whole chivalry of England!
|
||
|
But even that was not the strangest. I seemed to be a creature
|
||
|
out of a remote unborn age, centuries hence, and even _that_ was
|
||
|
as real as the rest! Yes, I seemed to have flown back out of that
|
||
|
age into this of ours, and then forward to it again, and was set
|
||
|
down, a stranger and forlorn in that strange England, with an
|
||
|
abyss of thirteen centuries yawning between me and you! between
|
||
|
me and my home and my friends! between me and all that is dear
|
||
|
to me, all that could make life worth the living! It was awful
|
||
|
--awfuler than you can ever imagine, Sandy. Ah, watch by me, Sandy
|
||
|
--stay by me every moment--_don't_ let me go out of my mind again;
|
||
|
death is nothing, let it come, but not with those dreams, not with
|
||
|
the torture of those hideous dreams--I cannot endure _that_ again....
|
||
|
Sandy?..."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He lay muttering incoherently some little time; then for a time he
|
||
|
lay silent, and apparently sinking away toward death. Presently
|
||
|
his fingers began to pick busily at the coverlet, and by that sign
|
||
|
I knew that his end was at hand with the first suggestion of the
|
||
|
death-rattle in his throat he started up slightly, and seemed
|
||
|
to listen: then he said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A bugle?... It is the king! The drawbridge, there! Man the
|
||
|
battlements!--turn out the--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was getting up his last "effect"; but he never finished it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Connecticut Yankee in King Arthur's
|
||
|
Court, Complete, by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
|
||
|
|
||
|
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONNECTICUT YANKEE ***
|
||
|
|
||
|
***** This file should be named 86.txt or 86.zip *****
|
||
|
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
|
||
|
http://www.gutenberg.net/8/86/
|
||
|
|
||
|
Produced by David Widger and Janet Blenkinship
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
|
||
|
will be renamed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
|
||
|
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
|
||
|
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
|
||
|
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
|
||
|
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
|
||
|
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
|
||
|
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
|
||
|
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
|
||
|
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
|
||
|
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
|
||
|
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
|
||
|
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
|
||
|
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
|
||
|
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
|
||
|
redistribution.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
|
||
|
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
|
||
|
|
||
|
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
|
||
|
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
|
||
|
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
|
||
|
http://gutenberg.net/license).
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
electronic works
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
|
||
|
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
|
||
|
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
|
||
|
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
|
||
|
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
|
||
|
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
|
||
|
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
|
||
|
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
|
||
|
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
|
||
|
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
|
||
|
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
|
||
|
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
|
||
|
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
|
||
|
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
||
|
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
|
||
|
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
|
||
|
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
|
||
|
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
|
||
|
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
|
||
|
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
|
||
|
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
|
||
|
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
|
||
|
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
|
||
|
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
|
||
|
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
|
||
|
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
|
||
|
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
|
||
|
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
|
||
|
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
|
||
|
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
|
||
|
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
|
||
|
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
|
||
|
States.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
|
||
|
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
|
||
|
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
|
||
|
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
|
||
|
copied or distributed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
||
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
||
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
||
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
|
||
|
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
|
||
|
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
|
||
|
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
|
||
|
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
|
||
|
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
|
||
|
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
|
||
|
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
|
||
|
1.E.9.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
|
||
|
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
|
||
|
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
|
||
|
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
|
||
|
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
|
||
|
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
|
||
|
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
|
||
|
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
|
||
|
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
|
||
|
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm License.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
|
||
|
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
|
||
|
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
|
||
|
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
|
||
|
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
|
||
|
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
|
||
|
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
|
||
|
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
|
||
|
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
|
||
|
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
|
||
|
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
|
||
|
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
|
||
|
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
|
||
|
that
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
|
||
|
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
|
||
|
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
|
||
|
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
|
||
|
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
|
||
|
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
|
||
|
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
|
||
|
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
|
||
|
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
|
||
|
address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
|
||
|
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
|
||
|
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
|
||
|
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
License. You must require such a user to return or
|
||
|
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
|
||
|
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
|
||
|
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
|
||
|
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
|
||
|
of receipt of the work.
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
|
||
|
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
|
||
|
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
|
||
|
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
|
||
|
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
|
||
|
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
|
||
|
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
|
||
|
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
||
|
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
|
||
|
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
|
||
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
|
||
|
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
|
||
|
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
|
||
|
your equipment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
|
||
|
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
|
||
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
|
||
|
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
|
||
|
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
|
||
|
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
|
||
|
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
|
||
|
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
|
||
|
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
|
||
|
DAMAGE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
|
||
|
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
|
||
|
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
|
||
|
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
|
||
|
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
|
||
|
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
|
||
|
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
|
||
|
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
|
||
|
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
|
||
|
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
|
||
|
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
|
||
|
opportunities to fix the problem.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
|
||
|
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
|
||
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
|
||
|
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
|
||
|
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
|
||
|
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
|
||
|
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
|
||
|
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
|
||
|
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
|
||
|
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
|
||
|
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
|
||
|
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
|
||
|
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
|
||
|
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
|
||
|
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
|
||
|
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
|
||
|
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
|
||
|
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
|
||
|
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
|
||
|
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
|
||
|
people in all walks of life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
|
||
|
assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
|
||
|
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
|
||
|
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
|
||
|
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
|
||
|
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
|
||
|
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
|
||
|
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
||
|
Foundation
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
|
||
|
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
|
||
|
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
|
||
|
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
|
||
|
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
|
||
|
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
|
||
|
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
|
||
|
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
|
||
|
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
|
||
|
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
|
||
|
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
|
||
|
business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
|
||
|
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
|
||
|
page at http://pglaf.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
For additional contact information:
|
||
|
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
|
||
|
Chief Executive and Director
|
||
|
gbnewby@pglaf.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
|
||
|
Literary Archive Foundation
|
||
|
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
|
||
|
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
|
||
|
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
|
||
|
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
|
||
|
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
|
||
|
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
|
||
|
status with the IRS.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
|
||
|
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
|
||
|
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
|
||
|
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
|
||
|
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
|
||
|
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
|
||
|
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
|
||
|
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
|
||
|
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
|
||
|
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
|
||
|
approach us with offers to donate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
|
||
|
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
|
||
|
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
|
||
|
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
|
||
|
ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
|
||
|
donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
||
|
works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
|
||
|
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
|
||
|
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
|
||
|
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
|
||
|
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
|
||
|
|
||
|
http://www.gutenberg.net
|
||
|
|
||
|
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
|
||
|
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
|
||
|
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
|
||
|
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|